This is a modern-English version of The Return of Tarzan, originally written by Burroughs, Edgar Rice.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
![[Illustration]](images/cover.jpg)
The Return Of Tarzan
By Edgar Rice Burroughs
Contents
Chapter I
The Affair on the Liner
“Magnifique!” ejaculated the Countess de Coude, beneath her breath.
“Magnificent!” exclaimed the Countess de Coude, under her breath.
“Eh?” questioned the count, turning toward his young wife. “What is it that is magnificent?” and the count bent his eyes in various directions in quest of the object of her admiration.
“Eh?” asked the count, turning to his young wife. “What is it that is magnificent?” and the count looked around in different directions, searching for the object of her admiration.
“Oh, nothing at all, my dear,” replied the countess, a slight flush momentarily coloring her already pink cheek. “I was but recalling with admiration those stupendous skyscrapers, as they call them, of New York,” and the fair countess settled herself more comfortably in her steamer chair, and resumed the magazine which “nothing at all” had caused her to let fall upon her lap.
“Oh, nothing at all, my dear,” replied the countess, a slight blush briefly coloring her already pink cheek. “I was just reminiscing with admiration about those amazing skyscrapers, as they call them, in New York,” and the lovely countess settled herself more comfortably in her chair and picked up the magazine that “nothing at all” had caused her to drop into her lap.
Her husband again buried himself in his book, but not without a mild wonderment that three days out from New York his countess should suddenly have realized an admiration for the very buildings she had but recently characterized as horrid.
Her husband once again buried himself in his book, but he couldn't help feeling a bit surprised that three days out from New York, his countess suddenly developed an appreciation for the very buildings she had recently called awful.
Presently the count put down his book. “It is very tiresome, Olga,” he said. “I think that I shall hunt up some others who may be equally bored, and see if we cannot find enough for a game of cards.”
Currently, the count set down his book. “This is really boring, Olga,” he said. “I think I’ll look for a few others who might feel the same way and see if we can gather enough for a game of cards.”
“You are not very gallant, my husband,” replied the young woman, smiling, “but as I am equally bored I can forgive you. Go and play at your tiresome old cards, then, if you will.”
“You’re not very chivalrous, my husband,” the young woman replied with a smile, “but since I’m just as bored, I can forgive you. Go ahead and play your boring old cards, if you want.”
When he had gone she let her eyes wander slyly to the figure of a tall young man stretched lazily in a chair not far distant.
When he left, she let her gaze sneak over to a tall young man lounging in a chair not too far away.
“Magnifique!” she breathed once more.
“Amazing!” she breathed once more.
The Countess Olga de Coude was twenty. Her husband forty. She was a very faithful and loyal wife, but as she had had nothing whatever to do with the selection of a husband, it is not at all unlikely that she was not wildly and passionately in love with the one that fate and her titled Russian father had selected for her. However, simply because she was surprised into a tiny exclamation of approval at sight of a splendid young stranger it must not be inferred therefrom that her thoughts were in any way disloyal to her spouse. She merely admired, as she might have admired a particularly fine specimen of any species. Furthermore, the young man was unquestionably good to look at.
The Countess Olga de Coude was twenty. Her husband was forty. She was a very faithful and loyal wife, but since she had had no say in choosing a husband, it’s not surprising that she wasn’t madly and deeply in love with the man that fate and her titled Russian father had picked for her. However, just because she couldn’t help but let out a small sound of approval at the sight of a handsome young stranger, it shouldn’t be assumed that her thoughts were in any way disloyal to her husband. She simply admired him, just like she might appreciate a particularly beautiful example of any species. Plus, the young man was definitely good-looking.
As her furtive glance rested upon his profile he rose to leave the deck. The Countess de Coude beckoned to a passing steward. “Who is that gentleman?” she asked.
As her quick look landed on his profile, he got up to leave the deck. The Countess de Coude signaled to a passing steward. “Who is that guy?” she asked.
“He is booked, madam, as Monsieur Tarzan, of Africa,” replied the steward.
“He is booked, ma'am, as Monsieur Tarzan, from Africa,” replied the steward.
“Rather a large estate,” thought the girl, but now her interest was still further aroused.
“That's quite a big estate,” thought the girl, but now her interest was even more piqued.
As Tarzan walked slowly toward the smoking-room he came unexpectedly upon two men whispering excitedly just without. He would have vouchsafed them not even a passing thought but for the strangely guilty glance that one of them shot in his direction. They reminded Tarzan of melodramatic villains he had seen at the theaters in Paris. Both were very dark, and this, in connection with the shrugs and stealthy glances that accompanied their palpable intriguing, lent still greater force to the similarity.
As Tarzan walked slowly toward the smoking room, he unexpectedly came across two men whispering excitedly just outside. He wouldn't have given them a second thought, but one of them threw him a strangely guilty glance. They reminded Tarzan of the melodramatic villains he had seen in theaters in Paris. Both were very dark, and their shrugs and sneaky looks while they were obviously plotting only added to the resemblance.
Tarzan entered the smoking-room, and sought a chair a little apart from the others who were there. He felt in no mood for conversation, and as he sipped his absinth he let his mind run rather sorrowfully over the past few weeks of his life. Time and again he had wondered if he had acted wisely in renouncing his birthright to a man to whom he owed nothing. It is true that he liked Clayton, but—ah, but that was not the question. It was not for William Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke, that he had denied his birth. It was for the woman whom both he and Clayton had loved, and whom a strange freak of fate had given to Clayton instead of to him.
Tarzan walked into the smoking room and chose a chair a bit away from the others who were there. He wasn't really in the mood to chat, and as he sipped his absinthe, he let his thoughts wander sadly over the past few weeks of his life. Again and again, he wondered if he had made the right choice in giving up his birthright to a man he didn’t owe anything to. It’s true that he liked Clayton, but—oh, that wasn't the point. It wasn’t for William Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke, that he had given up his birthright. It was for the woman they both loved, who, by some strange twist of fate, had ended up with Clayton instead of him.
That she loved him made the thing doubly difficult to bear, yet he knew that he could have done nothing less than he did do that night within the little railway station in the far Wisconsin woods. To him her happiness was the first consideration of all, and his brief experience with civilization and civilized men had taught him that without money and position life to most of them was unendurable.
The fact that she loved him made it even harder to deal with, but he knew he couldn't have done anything different that night at the small train station in the remote Wisconsin woods. Her happiness was his top priority, and his limited experience with society and civilized people had shown him that, without money and status, life was unbearable for most of them.
Jane Porter had been born to both, and had Tarzan taken them away from her future husband it would doubtless have plunged her into a life of misery and torture. That she would have spurned Clayton once he had been stripped of both his title and his estates never for once occurred to Tarzan, for he credited to others the same honest loyalty that was so inherent a quality in himself. Nor, in this instance, had he erred. Could any one thing have further bound Jane Porter to her promise to Clayton it would have been in the nature of some such misfortune as this overtaking him.
Jane Porter had been born to both, and if Tarzan had taken them away from her future husband, it would definitely have thrown her into a life of misery and suffering. The thought that she would have rejected Clayton once he lost his title and estates never crossed Tarzan's mind, as he assumed that others possessed the same genuine loyalty that was a fundamental part of himself. And in this case, he was right. If anything could have further tied Jane Porter to her promise to Clayton, it would have been the kind of misfortune that happened to him.
Tarzan’s thoughts drifted from the past to the future. He tried to look forward with pleasurable sensations to his return to the jungle of his birth and boyhood; the cruel, fierce jungle in which he had spent twenty of his twenty-two years. But who or what of all the myriad jungle life would there be to welcome his return? Not one. Only Tantor, the elephant, could he call friend. The others would hunt him or flee from him as had been their way in the past.
Tarzan’s thoughts shifted from the past to the future. He tried to look ahead with excitement about returning to the jungle where he was born and grew up; the harsh, wild jungle where he had spent twenty out of his twenty-two years. But who or what from the countless creatures of the jungle would be there to greet him? No one. He could only consider Tantor, the elephant, a friend. The others would either hunt him or run away from him, just like they had done before.
Not even the apes of his own tribe would extend the hand of fellowship to him.
Not even the apes from his own group would offer him a friendly gesture.
If civilization had done nothing else for Tarzan of the Apes, it had to some extent taught him to crave the society of his own kind, and to feel with genuine pleasure the congenial warmth of companionship. And in the same ratio had it made any other life distasteful to him. It was difficult to imagine a world without a friend—without a living thing who spoke the new tongues which Tarzan had learned to love so well. And so it was that Tarzan looked with little relish upon the future he had mapped out for himself.
If civilization had done nothing else for Tarzan of the Apes, it had somewhat taught him to desire the company of others like himself and to genuinely enjoy the comforting warmth of friendship. At the same time, it had made any other kind of life unappealing to him. It was hard to picture a world without a friend—without a living being who spoke the new languages that Tarzan had grown to love so much. And so, Tarzan viewed the future he had planned for himself with little enthusiasm.
As he sat musing over his cigarette his eyes fell upon a mirror before him, and in it he saw reflected a table at which four men sat at cards. Presently one of them rose to leave, and then another approached, and Tarzan could see that he courteously offered to fill the vacant chair, that the game might not be interrupted. He was the smaller of the two whom Tarzan had seen whispering just outside the smoking-room.
As he sat thinking about his cigarette, his eyes landed on a mirror in front of him, and he saw a table where four men were playing cards. Soon, one of them got up to leave, and then another came over, and Tarzan noticed that he politely offered to take the empty seat so the game wouldn't be interrupted. He was the smaller of the two guys Tarzan had seen whispering just outside the smoking room.
It was this fact that aroused a faint spark of interest in Tarzan, and so as he speculated upon the future he watched in the mirror the reflection of the players at the table behind him. Aside from the man who had but just entered the game Tarzan knew the name of but one of the other players. It was he who sat opposite the new player, Count Raoul de Coude, whom an over-attentive steward had pointed out as one of the celebrities of the passage, describing him as a man high in the official family of the French minister of war.
It was this fact that sparked a hint of interest in Tarzan, so as he thought about the future, he watched in the mirror the reflection of the players at the table behind him. Besides the man who had just joined the game, Tarzan only knew the name of one other player. That was the one sitting across from the new player, Count Raoul de Coude, who an overly attentive steward had indicated as one of the notable figures on the journey, describing him as a man with a high position in the French minister of war's office.
Suddenly Tarzan’s attention was riveted upon the picture in the glass. The other swarthy plotter had entered, and was standing behind the count’s chair. Tarzan saw him turn and glance furtively about the room, but his eyes did not rest for a sufficient time upon the mirror to note the reflection of Tarzan’s watchful eyes. Stealthily the man withdrew something from his pocket. Tarzan could not discern what the object was, for the man’s hand covered it.
Suddenly, Tarzan's attention was focused on the image in the glass. The other dark-skinned conspirator had entered and was standing behind the count's chair. Tarzan saw him turn and glance nervously around the room, but he didn't look at the mirror long enough to notice Tarzan's watchful eyes. Slowly, the man pulled something from his pocket. Tarzan couldn't see what the object was because the man's hand was covering it.
Slowly the hand approached the count, and then, very deftly, the thing that was in it was transferred to the count’s pocket. The man remained standing where he could watch the Frenchman’s cards. Tarzan was puzzled, but he was all attention now, nor did he permit another detail of the incident to escape him.
Slowly, the hand moved towards the count, and then, with great skill, whatever it was in that hand was slipped into the count's pocket. The man stayed in a position where he could keep an eye on the Frenchman's cards. Tarzan was confused, but now he was fully focused, and he didn't let any details of the incident slip by him.
The play went on for some ten minutes after this, until the count won a considerable wager from him who had last joined the game, and then Tarzan saw the fellow back of the count’s chair nod his head to his confederate. Instantly the player arose and pointed a finger at the count.
The play continued for about ten minutes after that, until the count won a large bet from the most recent player to join the game, and then Tarzan noticed the guy behind the count's chair nodding to his accomplice. Without delay, the player stood up and pointed a finger at the count.
“Had I known that monsieur was a professional card sharp I had not been so ready to be drawn into the game,” he said.
“Had I known that the guy was a professional card shark, I wouldn't have been so quick to join the game,” he said.
Instantly the count and the two other players were upon their feet.
Immediately, the count and the two other players jumped to their feet.
De Coude’s face went white.
De Coude’s face turned pale.
“What do you mean, sir?” he cried. “Do you know to whom you speak?”
“What do you mean, sir?” he shouted. “Do you know who you’re talking to?”
“I know that I speak, for the last time, to one who cheats at cards,” replied the fellow.
“I know I'm speaking, for the last time, to someone who cheats at cards,” replied the guy.
The count leaned across the table, and struck the man full in the mouth with his open palm, and then the others closed in between them.
The count leaned over the table and slapped the man right in the mouth with his open hand, then the others moved in between them.
“There is some mistake, sir,” cried one of the other players. “Why, this is Count de Coude, of France.”
“There’s been a mistake, sir,” one of the other players shouted. “This is Count de Coude from France.”
“If I am mistaken,” said the accuser, “I shall gladly apologize; but before I do so first let monsieur le count explain the extra cards which I saw him drop into his side pocket.”
“If I'm wrong,” said the accuser, “I’ll be happy to apologize; but before I do, I’d like Monsieur le Count to explain the extra cards I saw him slip into his side pocket.”
And then the man whom Tarzan had seen drop them there turned to sneak from the room, but to his annoyance he found the exit barred by a tall, gray-eyed stranger.
And then the man that Tarzan had seen drop them there turned to slip out of the room, but to his irritation, he found the exit blocked by a tall, gray-eyed stranger.
“Pardon,” said the man brusquely, attempting to pass to one side.
“Excuse me,” the man said bluntly, trying to get by.
“Wait,” said Tarzan.
“Hold on,” said Tarzan.
“But why, monsieur?” exclaimed the other petulantly. “Permit me to pass, monsieur.”
“But why, sir?” the other exclaimed, annoyed. “Let me through, sir.”
“Wait,” said Tarzan. “I think that there is a matter in here that you may doubtless be able to explain.”
“Hold on,” said Tarzan. “I believe there’s something in here that you might be able to explain.”
The fellow had lost his temper by this time, and with a low oath seized Tarzan to push him to one side. The ape-man but smiled as he twisted the big fellow about and, grasping him by the collar of his coat, escorted him back to the table, struggling, cursing, and striking in futile remonstrance. It was Nikolas Rokoff’s first experience with the muscles that had brought their savage owner victorious through encounters with Numa, the lion, and Terkoz, the great bull ape.
The guy had lost his cool by this point and, with a quiet curse, grabbed Tarzan to shove him aside. The ape-man merely smiled as he turned the big guy around, and, grabbing him by the collar of his coat, led him back to the table, while he struggled, swore, and threw punches in a pointless protest. This was Nikolas Rokoff’s first encounter with the strength that had helped its savage owner come out on top against Numa, the lion, and Terkoz, the massive bull ape.
The man who had accused De Coude, and the two others who had been playing, stood looking expectantly at the count. Several other passengers had drawn toward the scene of the altercation, and all awaited the dénouement.
The man who accused De Coude and the two others who had been playing stood watching the count with anticipation. Several other passengers had gathered around to see what would happen next, and everyone was waiting for the conclusion.
“The fellow is crazy,” said the count. “Gentlemen, I implore that one of you search me.”
“The guy is out of his mind,” said the count. “Gentlemen, I urge one of you to check me.”
“The accusation is ridiculous.” This from one of the players.
"The accusation is ridiculous." This came from one of the players.
“You have but to slip your hand in the count’s coat pocket and you will see that the accusation is quite serious,” insisted the accuser. And then, as the others still hesitated to do so: “Come, I shall do it myself if no other will,” and he stepped forward toward the count.
“You just need to slip your hand into the count’s coat pocket, and you’ll see that the accusation is very serious,” the accuser insisted. And then, as the others still hesitated: “Come on, I’ll do it myself if no one else will,” and he stepped forward toward the count.
“No, monsieur,” said De Coude. “I will submit to a search only at the hands of a gentleman.”
“No, sir,” said De Coude. “I will only allow a search if it's conducted by a gentleman.”
“It is unnecessary to search the count. The cards are in his pocket. I myself saw them placed there.”
“It’s not necessary to look for the count. The cards are in his pocket. I saw him put them there myself.”
All turned in surprise toward this new speaker, to behold a very well-built young man urging a resisting captive toward them by the scruff of his neck.
Everyone turned in surprise toward the new speaker, seeing a strong young man dragging a struggling captive toward them by the back of his neck.
“It is a conspiracy,” cried De Coude angrily. “There are no cards in my coat,” and with that he ran his hand into his pocket. As he did so tense silence reigned in the little group. The count went dead white, and then very slowly he withdrew his hand, and in it were three cards.
“It’s a conspiracy,” De Coude shouted angrily. “There are no cards in my coat,” and with that, he reached into his pocket. As he did, a tense silence fell over the small group. The count went pale, and then very slowly, he pulled his hand back, revealing three cards.
He looked at them in mute and horrified surprise, and slowly the red of mortification suffused his face. Expressions of pity and contempt tinged the features of those who looked on at the death of a man’s honor.
He stared at them in stunned and horrified disbelief, and gradually the shame turned his face red. Looks of pity and disdain marked the faces of those witnessing the death of a man's dignity.
“It is a conspiracy, monsieur.” It was the gray-eyed stranger who spoke. “Gentlemen,” he continued, “monsieur le count did not know that those cards were in his pocket. They were placed there without his knowledge as he sat at play. From where I sat in that chair yonder I saw the reflection of it all in the mirror before me. This person whom I just intercepted in an effort to escape placed the cards in the count’s pocket.”
“It’s a setup, sir.” The gray-eyed stranger spoke. “Gentlemen,” he continued, “the count had no idea those cards were in his pocket. They were slipped in there while he was playing, without him knowing. From where I was sitting in that chair over there, I saw the whole thing reflected in the mirror in front of me. This person I just caught trying to escape put the cards in the count’s pocket.”
De Coude had glanced from Tarzan to the man in his grasp.
De Coude had looked from Tarzan to the man he was holding.
“Mon Dieu, Nikolas!” he cried. “You?”
“Oh my God, Nikolas!” he exclaimed. “It’s you?”
Then he turned to his accuser, and eyed him intently for a moment.
Then he looked at his accuser and stared at him closely for a moment.
“And you, monsieur, I did not recognize you without your beard. It quite disguises you, Paulvitch. I see it all now. It is quite clear, gentlemen.”
“And you, sir, I didn’t recognize you without your beard. It really disguises you, Paulvitch. I see it all now. It’s all very clear, gentlemen.”
“What shall we do with them, monsieur?” asked Tarzan. “Turn them over to the captain?”
“What should we do with them, sir?” asked Tarzan. “Should we hand them over to the captain?”
“No, my friend,” said the count hastily. “It is a personal matter, and I beg that you will let it drop. It is sufficient that I have been exonerated from the charge. The less we have to do with such fellows, the better. But, monsieur, how can I thank you for the great kindness you have done me? Permit me to offer you my card, and should the time come when I may serve you, remember that I am yours to command.”
“No, my friend,” the count said quickly. “This is a personal issue, and I ask that you drop it. It’s enough that I’ve been cleared of the accusation. The less we deal with people like that, the better. But, sir, how can I thank you for your great kindness? Let me give you my card, and if there's ever a time I can help you, just know that I’m at your service.”
Tarzan had released Rokoff, who, with his confederate, Paulvitch, had hastened from the smoking-room. Just as he was leaving, Rokoff turned to Tarzan. “Monsieur will have ample opportunity to regret his interference in the affairs of others.”
Tarzan had let Rokoff go, who, along with his accomplice, Paulvitch, quickly left the smoking room. Just before he exited, Rokoff turned to Tarzan. “You’ll regret getting involved in other people's business.”
Tarzan smiled, and then, bowing to the count, handed him his own card.
Tarzan smiled, then, bowing to the count, gave him his own card.
The count read:
The count reads:
M. JEAN C. TARZAN
M. Jean C. Tarzan
“Monsieur Tarzan,” he said, “may indeed wish that he had never befriended me, for I can assure him that he has won the enmity of two of the most unmitigated scoundrels in all Europe. Avoid them, monsieur, by all means.”
“Monsieur Tarzan,” he said, “may really wish he had never made friends with me, because I can guarantee that he has earned the hostility of two of the biggest crooks in all of Europe. Stay away from them, monsieur, at all costs.”
“I have had more awe-inspiring enemies, my dear count,” replied Tarzan with a quiet smile, “yet I am still alive and unworried. I think that neither of these two will ever find the means to harm me.”
“I have faced more impressive enemies, my dear count,” replied Tarzan with a calm smile, “yet I’m still alive and untroubled. I believe that neither of these two will ever be able to hurt me.”
“Let us hope not, monsieur,” said De Coude; “but yet it will do no harm to be on the alert, and to know that you have made at least one enemy today who never forgets and never forgives, and in whose malignant brain there are always hatching new atrocities to perpetrate upon those who have thwarted or offended him. To say that Nikolas Rokoff is a devil would be to place a wanton affront upon his satanic majesty.”
“Let’s hope not, sir,” said De Coude; “but it won’t hurt to stay alert and to realize that you’ve made at least one enemy today who never forgets and never forgives, and in whose twisted mind new schemes to harm those who have crossed him are always brewing. To say that Nikolas Rokoff is a devil would be an insult to his dark nature.”
That night as Tarzan entered his cabin he found a folded note upon the floor that had evidently been pushed beneath the door. He opened it and read:
That night, when Tarzan walked into his cabin, he saw a folded note on the floor that had clearly been slipped under the door. He picked it up and read:
M. TARZAN:
Doubtless you did not realize the gravity of your offense, or you would not
have done the thing you did today. I am willing to believe that you acted in
ignorance and without any intention to offend a stranger. For this reason I
shall gladly permit you to offer an apology, and on receiving your assurances
that you will not again interfere in affairs that do not concern you, I shall
drop the matter.
Otherwise—but I am sure that you will see the wisdom of adopting the
course I suggest.
M. TARZAN:
I'm sure you didn't realize how serious your mistake was, or you wouldn't have done what you did today. I want to believe that you acted out of ignorance and didn't mean to offend someone you don't know. That's why I'm happy to let you apologize, and once you assure me that you won't meddle in things that aren't your business again, I'll consider the matter closed.
Otherwise—but I'm confident you'll recognize the sense in the approach I propose.
Very respectfully,
NIKOLAS ROKOFF.
Best regards,
NIKOLAS ROKOFF.
Tarzan permitted a grim smile to play about his lips for a moment, then he promptly dropped the matter from his mind, and went to bed.
Tarzan allowed a slight, grim smile to appear on his lips for a moment, then he quickly pushed the thought out of his mind and went to bed.
In a nearby cabin the Countess de Coude was speaking to her husband.
In a nearby cabin, Countess de Coude was talking to her husband.
“Why so grave, my dear Raoul?” she asked. “You have been as glum as could be all evening. What worries you?”
“Why so serious, my dear Raoul?” she asked. “You've been super down all evening. What’s bothering you?”
“Olga, Nikolas is on board. Did you know it?”
“Olga, Nikolas is on board. Did you know that?”
“Nikolas!” she exclaimed. “But it is impossible, Raoul. It cannot be. Nikolas is under arrest in Germany.”
“Nikolas!” she exclaimed. “But that's impossible, Raoul. It can’t be. Nikolas is in jail in Germany.”
“So I thought myself until I saw him today—him and that other arch scoundrel, Paulvitch. Olga, I cannot endure his persecution much longer. No, not even for you. Sooner or later I shall turn him over to the authorities. In fact, I am half minded to explain all to the captain before we land. On a French liner it were an easy matter, Olga, permanently to settle this Nemesis of ours.”
“So I thought I was handling it until I saw him today—him and that other sneak, Paulvitch. Olga, I can’t take his harassment much longer. No, not even for you. Sooner or later, I’m going to turn him in to the authorities. In fact, I’m seriously considering telling the captain all about it before we dock. On a French ship, it would be easy to get rid of this nightmare of ours.”
“Oh, no, Raoul!” cried the countess, sinking to her knees before him as he sat with bowed head upon a divan. “Do not do that. Remember your promise to me. Tell me, Raoul, that you will not do that. Do not even threaten him, Raoul.”
“Oh no, Raoul!” cried the countess, dropping to her knees in front of him as he sat with his head down on a couch. “Please don’t do this. Remember your promise to me. Tell me, Raoul, that you won’t go through with it. Don’t even think about threatening him, Raoul.”
De Coude took his wife’s hands in his, and gazed upon her pale and troubled countenance for some time before he spoke, as though he would wrest from those beautiful eyes the real reason which prompted her to shield this man.
De Coude took his wife’s hands in his and looked at her pale and troubled face for a while before he spoke, as if he were trying to uncover the real reason behind her desire to protect this man.
“Let it be as you wish, Olga,” he said at length. “I cannot understand. He has forfeited all claim upon your love, loyalty, or respect. He is a menace to your life and honor, and the life and honor of your husband. I trust you may never regret championing him.”
“Do whatever you want, Olga,” he finally said. “I can’t understand. He has lost all right to your love, loyalty, or respect. He poses a danger to your life and honor, as well as to your husband’s. I hope you never regret standing by him.”
“I do not champion him, Raoul,” she interrupted vehemently. “I believe that I hate him as much as you do, but—Oh, Raoul, blood is thicker than water.”
“I don’t support him, Raoul,” she interrupted passionately. “I think I hate him just as much as you do, but—Oh, Raoul, blood is thicker than water.”
“I should today have liked to sample the consistency of his,” growled De Coude grimly. “The two deliberately attempted to besmirch my honor, Olga,” and then he told her of all that had happened in the smoking-room. “Had it not been for this utter stranger, they had succeeded, for who would have accepted my unsupported word against the damning evidence of those cards hidden on my person? I had almost begun to doubt myself when this Monsieur Tarzan dragged your precious Nikolas before us, and explained the whole cowardly transaction.”
“I would have liked to check the facts today,” De Coude said darkly. “The two of them tried to ruin my reputation, Olga,” and then he recounted everything that had happened in the smoking room. “If it hadn't been for this complete stranger, they would have succeeded, because who would believe my word against the damaging evidence of those cards hidden on me? I had almost started to doubt myself when this Monsieur Tarzan brought your precious Nikolas in front of us and explained the whole cowardly act.”
“Monsieur Tarzan?” asked the countess, in evident surprise.
“Monsieur Tarzan?” the countess asked, clearly surprised.
“Yes. Do you know him, Olga?”
“Yes. Do you know him, Olga?”
“I have seen him. A steward pointed him out to me.”
“I saw him. A steward showed him to me.”
“I did not know that he was a celebrity,” said the count.
“I didn’t know he was a celebrity,” said the count.
Olga de Coude changed the subject. She discovered suddenly that she might find it difficult to explain just why the steward had pointed out the handsome Monsieur Tarzan to her. Perhaps she flushed the least little bit, for was not the count, her husband, gazing at her with a strangely quizzical expression. “Ah,” she thought, “a guilty conscience is a most suspicious thing.”
Olga de Coude switched topics. She suddenly realized that she might have trouble explaining why the steward had mentioned the handsome Monsieur Tarzan to her. Maybe she blushed just a little because her husband, the count, was looking at her with a strangely curious expression. “Ah,” she thought, “a guilty conscience is a very tricky thing.”
Chapter II
Forging Bonds of Hate and ——?
It was not until late the following afternoon that Tarzan saw anything more of the fellow passengers into the midst of whose affairs his love of fair play had thrust him. And then he came most unexpectedly upon Rokoff and Paulvitch at a moment when of all others the two might least appreciate his company.
It wasn't until late the next afternoon that Tarzan saw anything more of the fellow passengers he had unintentionally gotten involved with because of his sense of fairness. Then, he unexpectedly ran into Rokoff and Paulvitch at a time when they would least welcome his presence.
They were standing on deck at a point which was temporarily deserted, and as Tarzan came upon them they were in heated argument with a woman. Tarzan noted that she was richly appareled, and that her slender, well-modeled figure denoted youth; but as she was heavily veiled he could not discern her features.
They were standing on the deck in a spot that was momentarily empty, and as Tarzan approached them, they were having a heated argument with a woman. Tarzan noticed that she was dressed in elegant clothes and that her slim, well-proportioned figure suggested she was young; however, since she was heavily veiled, he couldn't see her face.
The men were standing on either side of her, and the backs of all were toward Tarzan, so that he was quite close to them without their being aware of his presence. He noticed that Rokoff seemed to be threatening, the woman pleading; but they spoke in a strange tongue, and he could only guess from appearances that the girl was afraid.
The men were standing on either side of her, with their backs to Tarzan, so he was quite close to them without them realizing he was there. He noticed that Rokoff seemed to be threatening her, and the woman was pleading; but they were speaking in a strange language, and he could only infer from their expressions that the girl was scared.
Rokoff’s attitude was so distinctly filled with the threat of physical violence that the ape-man paused for an instant just behind the trio, instinctively sensing an atmosphere of danger. Scarcely had he hesitated ere the man seized the woman roughly by the wrist, twisting it as though to wring a promise from her through torture. What would have happened next had Rokoff had his way we may only conjecture, since he did not have his way at all. Instead, steel fingers gripped his shoulder, and he was swung unceremoniously around, to meet the cold gray eyes of the stranger who had thwarted him on the previous day.
Rokoff's demeanor was so clearly filled with the threat of physical violence that the ape-man paused for a moment just behind the trio, instinctively sensing danger in the air. Hardly had he stopped when the man roughly grabbed the woman's wrist, twisting it as if to force a promise from her through pain. What might have happened next if Rokoff had gotten his way is a matter of speculation, since he didn’t get his way at all. Instead, steel fingers gripped his shoulder, and he was swung around without ceremony to face the cold gray eyes of the stranger who had stopped him the day before.
“Sapristi!” screamed the infuriated Rokoff. “What do you mean? Are you a fool that you thus again insult Nikolas Rokoff?”
“Sapristi!” screamed the furious Rokoff. “What do you mean? Are you an idiot for insulting Nikolas Rokoff like this again?”
“This is my answer to your note, monsieur,” said Tarzan, in a low voice. And then he hurled the fellow from him with such force that Rokoff lunged sprawling against the rail.
“This is my response to your note, sir,” said Tarzan in a quiet voice. Then he threw the man away from him with such strength that Rokoff crashed against the railing.
“Name of a name!” shrieked Rokoff. “Pig, but you shall die for this,” and, springing to his feet, he rushed upon Tarzan, tugging the meanwhile to draw a revolver from his hip pocket. The girl shrank back in terror.
“Name of a name!” Rokoff shouted. “You pig, you're going to pay for this,” and, jumping to his feet, he charged at Tarzan, trying to pull a revolver from his hip pocket. The girl recoiled in fear.
“Nikolas!” she cried. “Do not—oh, do not do that. Quick, monsieur, fly, or he will surely kill you!” But instead of flying Tarzan advanced to meet the fellow. “Do not make a fool of yourself, monsieur,” he said.
“Nikolas!” she shouted. “Please—oh, please don’t do that. Hurry, sir, run, or he’s definitely going to kill you!” But instead of running away, Tarzan walked towards the guy. “Don’t embarrass yourself, sir,” he said.
Rokoff, who was in a perfect frenzy of rage at the humiliation the stranger had put upon him, had at last succeeded in drawing the revolver. He had stopped, and now he deliberately raised it to Tarzan’s breast and pulled the trigger. The hammer fell with a futile click on an empty chamber—the ape-man’s hand shot out like the head of an angry python; there was a quick wrench, and the revolver sailed far out across the ship’s rail, and dropped into the Atlantic.
Rokoff, in a frenzy of anger over the humiliation the stranger had caused him, finally managed to pull out the revolver. He paused for a moment, then deliberately aimed it at Tarzan’s chest and pulled the trigger. The hammer clicked uselessly on an empty chamber—the ape-man's hand struck out like an angry python; with a quick twist, he sent the revolver flying over the ship's railing, where it plummeted into the Atlantic.
For a moment the two men stood there facing one another. Rokoff had regained his self-possession. He was the first to speak.
For a moment, the two men stood there facing each other. Rokoff had collected himself. He was the first to speak.
“Twice now has monsieur seen fit to interfere in matters which do not concern him. Twice he has taken it upon himself to humiliate Nikolas Rokoff. The first offense was overlooked on the assumption that monsieur acted through ignorance, but this affair shall not be overlooked. If monsieur does not know who Nikolas Rokoff is, this last piece of effrontery will insure that monsieur later has good reason to remember him.”
“Twice now you have decided to meddle in things that don’t concern you. Twice you have chosen to humiliate Nikolas Rokoff. The first time was excused because we thought you acted out of ignorance, but this situation will not be ignored. If you don’t know who Nikolas Rokoff is, this latest act of disrespect will make sure you have a good reason to remember him later.”
“That you are a coward and a scoundrel, monsieur,” replied Tarzan, “is all that I care to know of you,” and he turned to ask the girl if the man had hurt her, but she had disappeared. Then, without even a glance toward Rokoff and his companion, he continued his stroll along the deck.
“Knowing that you’re a coward and a jerk, sir,” Tarzan replied, “is all I need to know about you,” and he turned to see if the girl was okay, but she had vanished. Then, without even looking at Rokoff and his companion, he continued his walk along the deck.
Tarzan could not but wonder what manner of conspiracy was on foot, or what the scheme of the two men might be. There had been something rather familiar about the appearance of the veiled woman to whose rescue he had just come, but as he had not seen her face he could not be sure that he had ever seen her before. The only thing about her that he had particularly noticed was a ring of peculiar workmanship upon a finger of the hand that Rokoff had seized, and he determined to note the fingers of the women passengers he came upon thereafter, that he might discover the identity of her whom Rokoff was persecuting, and learn if the fellow had offered her further annoyance.
Tarzan couldn't help but wonder what kind of conspiracy was happening, or what the two men were planning. There was something oddly familiar about the veiled woman he had just rescued, but since he hadn't seen her face, he couldn't be sure if he had encountered her before. The only thing that stood out to him was a uniquely crafted ring on the finger of the hand Rokoff had grabbed, and he decided to pay attention to the fingers of any women passengers he came across afterward, so he could figure out who Rokoff was targeting and find out if the guy had bothered her further.
Tarzan had sought his deck chair, where he sat speculating on the numerous instances of human cruelty, selfishness, and spite that had fallen to his lot to witness since that day in the jungle four years since that his eyes had first fallen upon a human being other than himself—the sleek, black Kulonga, whose swift spear had that day found the vitals of Kala, the great she-ape, and robbed the youth, Tarzan, of the only mother he had ever known.
Tarzan had found his deck chair, where he sat reflecting on the many times he had witnessed human cruelty, selfishness, and spite since that day in the jungle four years ago when he had first encountered another human being besides himself—the smooth, dark Kulonga, whose quick spear had that day struck down Kala, the great mother ape, taking away Tarzan's only mother.
He recalled the murder of King by the rat-faced Snipes; the abandonment of Professor Porter and his party by the mutineers of the Arrow; the cruelty of the black warriors and women of Mbonga to their captives; the petty jealousies of the civil and military officers of the West Coast colony that had afforded him his first introduction to the civilized world.
He remembered the murder of King by the rat-faced Snipes; the betrayal of Professor Porter and his group by the mutineers of the Arrow; the brutality of the black warriors and women of Mbonga toward their captives; the minor jealousies of the civil and military officials of the West Coast colony that had given him his first glimpse of the civilized world.
“Mon Dieu!” he soliloquized, “but they are all alike. Cheating, murdering, lying, fighting, and all for things that the beasts of the jungle would not deign to possess—money to purchase the effeminate pleasures of weaklings. And yet withal bound down by silly customs that make them slaves to their unhappy lot while firm in the belief that they be the lords of creation enjoying the only real pleasures of existence. In the jungle one would scarcely stand supinely aside while another took his mate. It is a silly world, an idiotic world, and Tarzan of the Apes was a fool to renounce the freedom and the happiness of his jungle to come into it.”
My God! he thought, “but they’re all the same. Cheating, killing, lying, fighting, and all for things that the animals in the jungle wouldn't even want—money to buy the shallow pleasures of weaklings. And yet they’re shackled by ridiculous customs that make them slaves to their miserable existence while believing they’re the masters of the universe, enjoying the only true pleasures of life. In the jungle, no one would just stand by while someone else took their mate. It’s a ridiculous world, a stupid world, and Tarzan of the Apes was a fool to give up the freedom and happiness of his jungle to come into it.”
Presently, as he sat there, the sudden feeling came over him that eyes were watching from behind, and the old instinct of the wild beast broke through the thin veneer of civilization, so that Tarzan wheeled about so quickly that the eyes of the young woman who had been surreptitiously regarding him had not even time to drop before the gray eyes of the ape-man shot an inquiring look straight into them. Then, as they fell, Tarzan saw a faint wave of crimson creep swiftly over the now half-averted face.
Right now, as he sat there, an unexpected feeling hit him that someone was watching from behind, and the old instinct of the wild beast surged through the thin layer of civilization. Tarzan turned around so quickly that the young woman, who had been secretly observing him, didn’t even have time to look away before the gray eyes of the ape-man locked onto hers with a questioning gaze. Then, as she glanced down, Tarzan noticed a faint wave of red rush over her now partially turned face.
He smiled to himself at the result of his very uncivilized and ungallant action, for he had not lowered his own eyes when they met those of the young woman. She was very young, and equally good to look upon. Further, there was something rather familiar about her that set Tarzan to wondering where he had seen her before. He resumed his former position, and presently he was aware that she had arisen and was leaving the deck. As she passed, Tarzan turned to watch her, in the hope that he might discover a clew to satisfy his mild curiosity as to her identity.
He smiled to himself at the outcome of his very rude and unchivalrous behavior, since he hadn’t looked away when he met the eyes of the young woman. She was very young and quite attractive. Moreover, there was something oddly familiar about her that made Tarzan wonder where he had seen her before. He went back to his previous position, and soon noticed that she had stood up and was leaving the deck. As she walked by, Tarzan turned to watch her, hoping to find a clue to satisfy his mild curiosity about her identity.
Nor was he disappointed entirely, for as she walked away she raised one hand to the black, waving mass at the nape of her neck—the peculiarly feminine gesture that admits cognizance of appraising eyes behind her—and Tarzan saw upon a finger of this hand the ring of strange workmanship that he had seen upon the finger of the veiled woman a short time before.
Nor was he completely disappointed, because as she walked away, she raised one hand to the black, flowing hair at the back of her neck—a distinctly feminine gesture that acknowledged the evaluating eyes behind her—and Tarzan noticed a ring on a finger of that hand, the same one with unusual craftsmanship that he had seen on the finger of the veiled woman a little while ago.
So it was this beautiful young woman Rokoff had been persecuting. Tarzan wondered in a lazy sort of way whom she might be, and what relations one so lovely could have with the surly, bearded Russian.
So it was this beautiful young woman that Rokoff had been harassing. Tarzan wondered, in a laid-back way, who she could be and what connection someone so lovely could have with the grumpy, bearded Russian.
After dinner that evening Tarzan strolled forward, where he remained until after dark, in conversation with the second officer, and when that gentleman’s duties called him elsewhere Tarzan lolled lazily by the rail watching the play of the moonlight upon the gently rolling waters. He was half hidden by a davit, so that two men who approached along the deck did not see him, and as they passed Tarzan caught enough of their conversation to cause him to fall in behind them, to follow and learn what deviltry they were up to. He had recognized the voice as that of Rokoff, and had seen that his companion was Paulvitch.
After dinner that evening, Tarzan walked over and stayed there until after dark, talking with the second officer. When the officer had to leave for his duties, Tarzan leaned lazily against the rail, watching the moonlight dance on the gently rolling water. He was partly hidden by a davit, so two men coming down the deck didn’t notice him. As they walked by, Tarzan overheard enough of their conversation that he decided to follow them and find out what trouble they were planning. He recognized Rokoff’s voice and saw that his companion was Paulvitch.
Tarzan had overheard but a few words: “And if she screams you may choke her until—” But those had been enough to arouse the spirit of adventure within him, and so he kept the two men in sight as they walked, briskly now, along the deck. To the smoking-room he followed them, but they merely halted at the doorway long enough, apparently, to assure themselves that one whose whereabouts they wished to establish was within.
Tarzan had heard only a few words: “And if she screams, you can choke her until—” But that was enough to stir his sense of adventure, so he kept an eye on the two men as they walked quickly along the deck. He followed them to the smoking room, but they only stopped at the doorway for a moment, apparently just to confirm that the person they were looking for was inside.
Then they proceeded directly to the first-class cabins upon the promenade deck. Here Tarzan found greater difficulty in escaping detection, but he managed to do so successfully. As they halted before one of the polished hardwood doors, Tarzan slipped into the shadow of a passageway not a dozen feet from them.
Then they went straight to the first-class cabins on the promenade deck. Here, Tarzan found it harder to avoid being seen, but he managed to do so successfully. As they stopped in front of one of the polished hardwood doors, Tarzan slipped into the shadows of a hallway just a few feet away from them.
To their knock a woman’s voice asked in French: “Who is it?”
To their knock, a woman's voice called out in French: "Who is it?"
“It is I, Olga—Nikolas,” was the answer, in Rokoff’s now familiar guttural. “May I come in?”
“It’s me, Olga—Nikolas,” came the reply, in Rokoff’s now familiar guttural tone. “Can I come in?”
“Why do you not cease persecuting me, Nikolas?” came the voice of the woman from beyond the thin panel. “I have never harmed you.”
“Why do you keep bothering me, Nikolas?” the woman's voice came from beyond the thin panel. “I’ve never done anything to hurt you.”
“Come, come, Olga,” urged the man, in propitiary tones; “I but ask a half dozen words with you. I shall not harm you, nor shall I enter your cabin; but I cannot shout my message through the door.”
“Come on, Olga,” the man urged in a soothing tone. “I just want to say a few words with you. I won't hurt you, and I won't come into your cabin, but I can't shout my message through the door.”
Tarzan heard the catch click as it was released from the inside. He stepped out from his hiding-place far enough to see what transpired when the door was opened, for he could not but recall the sinister words he had heard a few moments before upon the deck, “And if she screams you may choke her.”
Tarzan heard the catch click as it was released from the inside. He stepped out from his hiding spot far enough to see what happened when the door was opened, as he couldn't forget the chilling words he had heard moments before on the deck, "And if she screams, you can choke her."
Rokoff was standing directly in front of the door. Paulvitch had flattened himself against the paneled wall of the corridor beyond. The door opened. Rokoff half entered the room, and stood with his back against the door, speaking in a low whisper to the woman, whom Tarzan could not see. Then Tarzan heard the woman’s voice, level, but loud enough to distinguish her words.
Rokoff was standing right in front of the door. Paulvitch had pressed himself against the wall of the hallway beyond. The door opened. Rokoff stepped partially into the room and leaned back against the door, speaking in a low whisper to the woman, who Tarzan couldn't see. Then Tarzan heard the woman's voice, calm but loud enough to make out her words.
“No, Nikolas,” she was saying, “it is useless. Threaten as you will, I shall never accede to your demands. Leave the room, please; you have no right here. You promised not to enter.”
“No, Nikolas,” she said, “it's pointless. No matter how much you threaten, I will never agree to your demands. Please leave the room; you have no right to be here. You promised not to come in.”
“Very well, Olga, I shall not enter; but before I am done with you, you shall wish a thousand times that you had done at once the favor I have asked. In the end I shall win anyway, so you might as well save trouble and time for me, and disgrace for yourself and your—”
“Alright, Olga, I won’t come in; but before this is over, you’ll wish you had just done the favor I asked for right away. In the end, I’ll win anyway, so you might as well save yourself the trouble and time, and avoid the embarrassment for you and your—”
“Never, Nikolas!” interrupted the woman, and then Tarzan saw Rokoff turn and nod to Paulvitch, who sprang quickly toward the doorway of the cabin, rushing in past Rokoff, who held the door open for him. Then the latter stepped quickly out. The door closed. Tarzan heard the click of the lock as Paulvitch turned it from the inside. Rokoff remained standing before the door, with head bent, as though to catch the words of the two within. A nasty smile curled his bearded lip.
“Never, Nikolas!” interrupted the woman, and then Tarzan saw Rokoff turn and nod to Paulvitch, who quickly rushed toward the cabin's doorway, slipping in past Rokoff, who held the door open for him. Then Rokoff stepped out quickly. The door closed. Tarzan heard the distinct click of the lock as Paulvitch turned it from inside. Rokoff stood before the door, head down, as if trying to catch the words of the two inside. A sinister smile curled his bearded lip.
Tarzan could hear the woman’s voice commanding the fellow to leave her cabin. “I shall send for my husband,” she cried. “He will show you no mercy.”
Tarzan could hear the woman’s voice telling the guy to leave her cabin. “I’ll call my husband,” she shouted. “He won’t show you any mercy.”
Paulvitch’s sneering laugh came through the polished panels.
Paulvitch's mocking laugh echoed through the polished panels.
“The purser will fetch your husband, madame,” said the man. “In fact, that officer has already been notified that you are entertaining a man other than your husband behind the locked door of your cabin.”
“The purser will get your husband, ma’am,” the man said. “Actually, that officer has already been informed that you’re with a man who isn’t your husband behind the locked door of your cabin.”
“Bah!” cried the woman. “My husband will know!”
“Bah!” shouted the woman. “My husband will find out!”
“Most assuredly your husband will know, but the purser will not; nor will the newspaper men who shall in some mysterious way hear of it on our landing. But they will think it a fine story, and so will all your friends when they read of it at breakfast on—let me see, this is Tuesday—yes, when they read of it at breakfast next Friday morning. Nor will it detract from the interest they will all feel when they learn that the man whom madame entertained is a Russian servant—her brother’s valet, to be quite exact.”
“Your husband will definitely find out, but the purser won’t; neither will the reporters who somehow hear about it when we land. But they’ll think it’s a great story, and so will all your friends when they read about it at breakfast on—let me think, it’s Tuesday—yes, when they read about it next Friday morning. And it won’t lessen the curiosity they’ll have when they discover that the man you entertained is a Russian servant—specifically, your brother’s valet.”
“Alexis Paulvitch,” came the woman’s voice, cold and fearless, “you are a coward, and when I whisper a certain name in your ear you will think better of your demands upon me and your threats against me, and then you will leave my cabin quickly, nor do I think that ever again will you, at least, annoy me,” and there came a moment’s silence in which Tarzan could imagine the woman leaning toward the scoundrel and whispering the thing she had hinted at into his ear. Only a moment of silence, and then a startled oath from the man—the scuffling of feet—a woman’s scream—and silence.
“Alexis Paulvitch,” the woman’s voice came, cold and fearless, “you’re a coward, and when I whisper a certain name in your ear, you’ll rethink your demands and threats against me, and then you’ll leave my cabin quickly. I don't think you’ll bother me again.” There was a moment of silence during which Tarzan could picture the woman leaning toward the scoundrel and whispering what she had hinted at into his ear. Just a moment of silence, then a startled oath from the man—a scuffle of feet—a woman’s scream—and silence.
But scarcely had the cry ceased before the ape-man had leaped from his hiding-place. Rokoff started to run, but Tarzan grasped him by the collar and dragged him back. Neither spoke, for both felt instinctively that murder was being done in that room, and Tarzan was confident that Rokoff had had no intention that his confederate should go that far—he felt that the man’s aims were deeper than that—deeper and even more sinister than brutal, cold-blooded murder. Without hesitating to question those within, the ape-man threw his giant shoulder against the frail panel, and in a shower of splintered wood he entered the cabin, dragging Rokoff after him. Before him, on a couch, the woman lay, and on top of her was Paulvitch, his fingers gripping the fair throat, while his victim’s hands beat futilely at his face, tearing desperately at the cruel fingers that were forcing the life from her.
But hardly had the scream died down before the ape-man leaped from his hiding spot. Rokoff started to run, but Tarzan grabbed him by the collar and pulled him back. Neither said a word, as both instinctively felt that murder was happening in that room. Tarzan was sure that Rokoff hadn’t meant for his accomplice to go that far—he sensed that the man’s intentions were deeper, even more sinister than just brutal, cold-blooded murder. Without pausing to check what was going on inside, the ape-man slammed his massive shoulder against the fragile door, and with a shower of splintered wood, he burst into the cabin, dragging Rokoff along with him. In front of him, on a couch, lay the woman, and on top of her was Paulvitch, his fingers gripping her delicate throat, while her hands beat helplessly at his face, desperately clawing at the cruel fingers that were squeezing the life from her.
The noise of his entrance brought Paulvitch to his feet, where he stood glowering menacingly at Tarzan. The girl rose falteringly to a sitting posture upon the couch. One hand was at her throat, and her breath came in little gasps. Although disheveled and very pale, Tarzan recognized her as the young woman whom he had caught staring at him on deck earlier in the day.
The noise of his entrance jerked Paulvitch to his feet, where he glared menacingly at Tarzan. The girl slowly sat up on the couch. One hand was at her throat, and she was breathing in short gasps. Even though she was disheveled and very pale, Tarzan recognized her as the young woman he had seen staring at him on deck earlier in the day.
“What is the meaning of this?” said Tarzan, turning to Rokoff, whom he intuitively singled out as the instigator of the outrage. The man remained silent, scowling. “Touch the button, please,” continued the ape-man; “we will have one of the ship’s officers here—this affair has gone quite far enough.”
“What’s the meaning of this?” Tarzan said, looking at Rokoff, whom he instinctively identified as the one behind the trouble. The man stayed silent, frowning. “Press the button, please,” the ape-man continued; “we’ll get one of the ship’s officers here—this has gone on long enough.”
“No, no,” cried the girl, coming suddenly to her feet. “Please do not do that. I am sure that there was no real intention to harm me. I angered this person, and he lost control of himself, that is all. I would not care to have the matter go further, please, monsieur,” and there was such a note of pleading in her voice that Tarzan could not press the matter, though his better judgment warned him that there was something afoot here of which the proper authorities should be made cognizant.
“No, no,” the girl exclaimed, getting to her feet suddenly. “Please don’t do that. I’m sure there wasn’t any real intention to hurt me. I upset this person, and he just lost control, that’s all. I really don’t want this to go any further, please, sir,” and there was such a tone of desperation in her voice that Tarzan couldn’t push the issue, even though his better judgment told him that something was going on here that the proper authorities should know about.
“You wish me to do nothing, then, in the matter?” he asked.
“You want me to do nothing about it, then?” he asked.
“Nothing, please,” she replied.
"Nothing, thanks," she replied.
“You are content that these two scoundrels should continue persecuting you?”
“You're okay with these two jerks keeping on bothering you?”
She did not seem to know what answer to make, and looked very troubled and unhappy. Tarzan saw a malicious grin of triumph curl Rokoff’s lip. The girl evidently was in fear of these two—she dared not express her real desires before them.
She seemed unsure of how to respond and looked very troubled and unhappy. Tarzan noticed a sly grin of triumph on Rokoff’s lips. The girl was clearly afraid of these two—she didn’t dare reveal her true feelings in front of them.
“Then,” said Tarzan, “I shall act on my own responsibility. To you,” he continued, turning to Rokoff, “and this includes your accomplice, I may say that from now on to the end of the voyage I shall take it upon myself to keep an eye on you, and should there chance to come to my notice any act of either one of you that might even remotely annoy this young woman you shall be called to account for it directly to me, nor shall the calling or the accounting be pleasant experiences for either of you.
“Then,” said Tarzan, “I will take responsibility for my actions. To you,” he continued, turning to Rokoff, “and to your partner in crime, I want to make it clear that from now until the end of the trip, I’ll be watching you closely. If I notice either of you doing anything that might even slightly upset this young woman, you will have to answer to me directly, and I assure you, it won’t be a pleasant situation for either of you.”
“Now get out of here,” and he grabbed Rokoff and Paulvitch each by the scruff of the neck and thrust them forcibly through the doorway, giving each an added impetus down the corridor with the toe of his boot. Then he turned back to the stateroom and the girl. She was looking at him in wide-eyed astonishment.
“Now get out of here,” he said, grabbing Rokoff and Paulvitch by the back of their necks and forcefully pushing them through the doorway, giving each of them a nudge down the corridor with his boot. Then he turned back to the stateroom and the girl. She was staring at him in wide-eyed surprise.
“And you, madame, will confer a great favor upon me if you will but let me know if either of those rascals troubles you further.”
“And you, ma'am, will do me a huge favor if you just let me know if either of those troublemakers bothers you again.”
“Ah, monsieur,” she answered, “I hope that you will not suffer for the kind deed you attempted. You have made a very wicked and resourceful enemy, who will stop at nothing to satisfy his hatred. You must be very careful indeed, Monsieur—”
“Ah, sir,” she replied, “I hope you won’t face any consequences for the kind act you tried to do. You’ve made a very dangerous and cunning enemy who will go to great lengths to fulfill his hatred. You need to be extremely careful, sir—”
“Pardon me, madame, my name is Tarzan.”
“Excuse me, ma'am, my name is Tarzan.”
“Monsieur Tarzan. And because I would not consent to notify the officers, do not think that I am not sincerely grateful to you for the brave and chivalrous protection you rendered me. Good night, Monsieur Tarzan. I shall never forget the debt I owe you,” and, with a most winsome smile that displayed a row of perfect teeth, the girl curtsied to Tarzan, who bade her good night and made his way on deck.
“Monsieur Tarzan. Just because I didn’t agree to tell the officers, don’t think that I’m not truly thankful to you for the brave and noble protection you gave me. Good night, Monsieur Tarzan. I will always remember the debt I owe you,” and, with a charming smile that showed a row of perfect teeth, the girl curtsied to Tarzan, who wished her good night and headed out onto the deck.
It puzzled the man considerably that there should be two on board—this girl and Count de Coude—who suffered indignities at the hands of Rokoff and his companion, and yet would not permit the offenders to be brought to justice. Before he turned in that night his thoughts reverted many times to the beautiful young woman into the evidently tangled web of whose life fate had so strangely introduced him. It occurred to him that he had not learned her name. That she was married had been evidenced by the narrow gold band that encircled the third finger of her left hand. Involuntarily he wondered who the lucky man might be.
It puzzled the man greatly that there were two people on board—this girl and Count de Coude—who were suffering indignities at the hands of Rokoff and his companion, yet wouldn't allow the offenders to face justice. Before he went to bed that night, he found himself thinking many times about the beautiful young woman whose life fate had so strangely intertwined with his. It occurred to him that he didn’t know her name. It was clear she was married, as evidenced by the narrow gold band on the third finger of her left hand. He couldn't help but wonder who the lucky guy might be.
Tarzan saw nothing further of any of the actors in the little drama that he had caught a fleeting glimpse of until late in the afternoon of the last day of the voyage. Then he came suddenly face to face with the young woman as the two approached their deck chairs from opposite directions. She greeted him with a pleasant smile, speaking almost immediately of the affair he had witnessed in her cabin two nights before. It was as though she had been perturbed by a conviction that he might have construed her acquaintance with such men as Rokoff and Paulvitch as a personal reflection upon herself.
Tarzan didn’t see any of the people involved in the little drama he had briefly witnessed until late in the afternoon on the last day of the trip. Then, he unexpectedly came face to face with the young woman as they walked towards their deck chairs from opposite sides. She smiled warmly at him and immediately brought up the incident he had seen in her cabin two nights earlier. It was as if she had been worried that he might interpret her connection with guys like Rokoff and Paulvitch as a personal judgment against her.
“I trust monsieur has not judged me,” she said, “by the unfortunate occurrence of Tuesday evening. I have suffered much on account of it—this is the first time that I have ventured from my cabin since; I have been ashamed,” she concluded simply.
“I hope you haven’t judged me,” she said, “by what happened on Tuesday evening. I’ve been through a lot because of it—this is the first time I’ve come out of my cabin since then; I’ve been embarrassed,” she finished simply.
“One does not judge the gazelle by the lions that attack it,” replied Tarzan. “I had seen those two work before—in the smoking-room the day prior to their attack on you, if I recollect it correctly, and so, knowing their methods, I am convinced that their enmity is a sufficient guarantee of the integrity of its object. Men such as they must cleave only to the vile, hating all that is noblest and best.”
“One shouldn’t judge the gazelle by the lions that go after it,” replied Tarzan. “I had seen those two in action before—in the smoking room the day before they attacked you, if I remember correctly, and knowing their tactics, I’m convinced that their hatred is a sure sign of the value of what they target. Men like them are drawn only to the despicable, despising everything that is noble and good.”
“It is very kind of you to put it that way,” she replied, smiling. “I have already heard of the matter of the card game. My husband told me the entire story. He spoke especially of the strength and bravery of Monsieur Tarzan, to whom he feels that he owes an immense debt of gratitude.”
“It’s really nice of you to say that,” she replied with a smile. “I've already heard about the card game. My husband told me the whole story. He particularly mentioned the strength and bravery of Monsieur Tarzan, to whom he feels he owes a huge debt of gratitude.”
“Your husband?” repeated Tarzan questioningly.
"Your husband?" Tarzan asked, puzzled.
“Yes. I am the Countess de Coude.”
“Yes. I'm the Countess de Coude.”
“I am already amply repaid, madame, in knowing that I have rendered a service to the wife of the Count de Coude.”
“I feel fully rewarded, ma'am, just knowing that I have helped the wife of Count de Coude.”
“Alas, monsieur, I already am so greatly indebted to you that I may never hope to settle my own account, so pray do not add further to my obligations,” and she smiled so sweetly upon him that Tarzan felt that a man might easily attempt much greater things than he had accomplished, solely for the pleasure of receiving the benediction of that smile.
“Unfortunately, sir, I’m already so much in your debt that I may never be able to repay it, so please don’t add to what I owe,” and she smiled so sweetly at him that Tarzan felt that a man might easily strive for much greater achievements than he had accomplished, just for the joy of receiving the blessing of that smile.
He did not see her again that day, and in the rush of landing on the following morning he missed her entirely, but there had been something in the expression of her eyes as they parted on deck the previous day that haunted him. It had been almost wistful as they had spoken of the strangeness of the swift friendships of an ocean crossing, and of the equal ease with which they are broken forever.
He didn't see her again that day, and in the chaos of landing the next morning, he completely missed her. But there was something in the look in her eyes when they said goodbye on deck the day before that stayed with him. It had been almost nostalgic as they talked about the odd nature of the quick connections made during an ocean crossing, and how easily those bonds can be shattered for good.
Tarzan wondered if he should ever see her again.
Tarzan wondered if he would ever see her again.
Chapter III
What Happened in the Rue Maule
On his arrival in Paris, Tarzan had gone directly to the apartments of his old friend, D’Arnot, where the naval lieutenant had scored him roundly for his decision to renounce the title and estates that were rightly his from his father, John Clayton, the late Lord Greystoke.
On arriving in Paris, Tarzan went straight to the apartment of his old friend, D’Arnot, where the naval lieutenant had strongly criticized him for deciding to give up the title and estates that rightfully belonged to him from his father, John Clayton, the late Lord Greystoke.
“You must be mad, my friend,” said D’Arnot, “thus lightly to give up not alone wealth and position, but an opportunity to prove beyond doubt to all the world that in your veins flows the noble blood of two of England’s most honored houses—instead of the blood of a savage she-ape. It is incredible that they could have believed you—Miss Porter least of all.
“You must be crazy, my friend,” said D’Arnot, “to so easily give up not just your wealth and status, but a chance to prove to everyone that you have the noble blood of two of England’s most esteemed families—instead of the blood of a wild female ape. It's unbelievable that they could have thought that—especially Miss Porter.”
“Why, I never did believe it, even back in the wilds of your African jungle, when you tore the raw meat of your kills with mighty jaws, like some wild beast, and wiped your greasy hands upon your thighs. Even then, before there was the slightest proof to the contrary, I knew that you were mistaken in the belief that Kala was your mother.
“Honestly, I never believed it, even back in the wilds of your African jungle, when you tore the raw meat from your kills with your powerful jaws, like some wild animal, and wiped your greasy hands on your thighs. Even then, before there was any evidence to suggest otherwise, I knew you were wrong in thinking that Kala was your mother.
“And now, with your father’s diary of the terrible life led by him and your mother on that wild African shore; with the account of your birth, and, final and most convincing proof of all, your own baby finger prints upon the pages of it, it seems incredible to me that you are willing to remain a nameless, penniless vagabond.”
“And now, with your dad’s diary about the rough life he and your mom had on that wild African coast; with the story of your birth, and, most importantly, the undeniable evidence of your own baby fingerprints on its pages, it’s hard for me to believe you’re okay with staying a nameless, broke wanderer.”
“I do not need any better name than Tarzan,” replied the ape-man; “and as for remaining a penniless vagabond, I have no intention of so doing. In fact, the next, and let us hope the last, burden that I shall be forced to put upon your unselfish friendship will be the finding of employment for me.”
“I don’t need a better name than Tarzan,” the ape-man replied; “and I have no plans to stay a broke wanderer. Actually, the next—and hopefully the last—favor I’ll have to ask from your kind friendship is to help me find a job.”
“Pooh, pooh!” scoffed D’Arnot. “You know that I did not mean that. Have I not told you a dozen times that I have enough for twenty men, and that half of what I have is yours? And if I gave it all to you, would it represent even the tenth part of the value I place upon your friendship, my Tarzan? Would it repay the services you did me in Africa? I do not forget, my friend, that but for you and your wondrous bravery I had died at the stake in the village of Mbonga’s cannibals. Nor do I forget that to your self-sacrificing devotion I owe the fact that I recovered from the terrible wounds I received at their hands—I discovered later something of what it meant to you to remain with me in the amphitheater of apes while your heart was urging you on to the coast.
“Come on!” scoffed D’Arnot. “You know I didn’t mean that. Haven’t I told you a dozen times that I have enough for twenty men, and that half of what I have is yours? And even if I gave it all to you, it wouldn’t even be a fraction of the value I place on your friendship, my Tarzan. Would it make up for the help you gave me in Africa? I’ll never forget, my friend, that without you and your amazing bravery, I would have died at the hands of Mbonga’s cannibals. And I also remember that because of your selfless dedication, I was able to recover from the terrible wounds I suffered from them—I later realized just how much it cost you to stay with me in the amphitheater of apes when your heart was urging you to go to the coast.
“When we finally came there, and found that Miss Porter and her party had left, I commenced to realize something of what you had done for an utter stranger. Nor am I trying to repay you with money, Tarzan. It is that just at present you need money; were it sacrifice that I might offer you it were the same—my friendship must always be yours, because our tastes are similar, and I admire you. That I cannot command, but the money I can and shall.”
“When we finally arrived and discovered that Miss Porter and her group had already left, I started to understand what you had done for someone you barely knew. I'm not trying to repay you with cash, Tarzan. It’s just that you need money right now; if I could sacrifice something for you, I would—that would be the same. My friendship will always be yours because we share similar interests, and I admire you. I can’t control that, but I can and will provide the money.”
“Well,” laughed Tarzan, “we shall not quarrel over the money. I must live, and so I must have it; but I shall be more contented with something to do. You cannot show me your friendship in a more convincing manner than to find employment for me—I shall die of inactivity in a short while. As for my birthright—it is in good hands. Clayton is not guilty of robbing me of it. He truly believes that he is the real Lord Greystoke, and the chances are that he will make a better English lord than a man who was born and raised in an African jungle. You know that I am but half civilized even now. Let me see red in anger but for a moment, and all the instincts of the savage beast that I really am, submerge what little I possess of the milder ways of culture and refinement.
“Well,” laughed Tarzan, “we're not going to fight over money. I need to make a living, so I do need it; but I’d be happier if I had something to do. You can't show me your friendship in a more convincing way than by helping me find work—I’ll go crazy from doing nothing in no time. As for my birthright—it’s in good hands. Clayton isn’t to blame for taking it from me. He honestly believes he’s the real Lord Greystoke, and he’ll probably make a better English lord than someone who was born and raised in an African jungle. You know I’m still not fully civilized. If I lose my temper for just a moment, all the instincts of the wild beast I truly am take over what little I have of the gentler ways of culture and refinement.”
“And then again, had I declared myself I should have robbed the woman I love of the wealth and position that her marriage to Clayton will now insure to her. I could not have done that—could I, Paul?
“And besides, if I had admitted my feelings, I would have taken away the wealth and status that her marriage to Clayton will now guarantee her. I couldn’t do that—could I, Paul?
“Nor is the matter of birth of great importance to me,” he went on, without waiting for a reply. “Raised as I have been, I see no worth in man or beast that is not theirs by virtue of their own mental or physical prowess. And so I am as happy to think of Kala as my mother as I would be to try to picture the poor, unhappy little English girl who passed away a year after she bore me. Kala was always kind to me in her fierce and savage way. I must have nursed at her hairy breast from the time that my own mother died. She fought for me against the wild denizens of the forest, and against the savage members of our tribe, with the ferocity of real mother love.
“Birth isn’t really important to me,” he continued, without waiting for a response. “Given how I was raised, I find no value in people or animals that isn’t earned through their own intelligence or strength. So, I’m just as happy to think of Kala as my mother as I would be to try to imagine the poor, sad little English girl who died a year after giving birth to me. Kala was always kind to me in her fierce and wild way. I must have nursed at her hairy breast from the time my own mother died. She fought for me against the wild creatures of the forest and against the savage members of our tribe, with the intensity of true maternal love.
“And I, on my part, loved her, Paul. I did not realize how much until after the cruel spear and the poisoned arrow of Mbonga’s black warrior had stolen her away from me. I was still a child when that occurred, and I threw myself upon her dead body and wept out my anguish as a child might for his own mother. To you, my friend, she would have appeared a hideous and ugly creature, but to me she was beautiful—so gloriously does love transfigure its object. And so I am perfectly content to remain forever the son of Kala, the she-ape.”
“And I loved her, Paul. I didn’t realize how much until after the cruel spear and the poisoned arrow of Mbonga’s black warrior took her away from me. I was still a child when that happened, and I threw myself on her lifeless body and wept like a child would for his mother. To you, my friend, she would have seemed hideous and ugly, but to me she was beautiful—love transforms how we see things so profoundly. And so I’m perfectly okay with being forever the son of Kala, the she-ape.”
“I do not admire you the less for your loyalty,” said D’Arnot, “but the time will come when you will be glad to claim your own. Remember what I say, and let us hope that it will be as easy then as it is now. You must bear in mind that Professor Porter and Mr. Philander are the only people in the world who can swear that the little skeleton found in the cabin with those of your father and mother was that of an infant anthropoid ape, and not the offspring of Lord and Lady Greystoke. That evidence is most important. They are both old men. They may not live many years longer. And then, did it not occur to you that once Miss Porter knew the truth she would break her engagement with Clayton? You might easily have your title, your estates, and the woman you love, Tarzan. Had you not thought of that?”
"I don't admire you any less for your loyalty," D'Arnot said, "but there will come a time when you'll be glad to claim what’s rightfully yours. Remember what I’m telling you, and let’s hope it’ll be as smooth then as it is now. You need to keep in mind that Professor Porter and Mr. Philander are the only ones in the world who can confirm that the small skeleton found in the cabin with your father and mother was that of a baby anthropoid ape, not the child of Lord and Lady Greystoke. That evidence is crucial. They're both old men. They might not have many years left. And did it not occur to you that once Miss Porter knows the truth, she would call off her engagement with Clayton? You could easily have your title, your estates, and the woman you love, Tarzan. Haven’t you thought of that?"
Tarzan shook his head. “You do not know her,” he said. “Nothing could bind her closer to her bargain than some misfortune to Clayton. She is from an old southern family in America, and southerners pride themselves upon their loyalty.”
Tarzan shook his head. “You don’t know her,” he said. “Nothing could tie her more closely to her deal than some misfortune happening to Clayton. She comes from an old southern family in America, and southerners take pride in their loyalty.”
Tarzan spent the two following weeks renewing his former brief acquaintance with Paris. In the daytime he haunted the libraries and picture galleries. He had become an omnivorous reader, and the world of possibilities that were opened to him in this seat of culture and learning fairly appalled him when he contemplated the very infinitesimal crumb of the sum total of human knowledge that a single individual might hope to acquire even after a lifetime of study and research; but he learned what he could by day, and threw himself into a search for relaxation and amusement at night. Nor did he find Paris a whit less fertile field for his nocturnal avocation.
Tarzan spent the next two weeks reconnecting with Paris. During the day, he explored libraries and art galleries. He had become an enthusiastic reader, and the vast world of possibilities available to him in this hub of culture and knowledge left him a bit overwhelmed when he considered how little of the total human knowledge a single person could realistically learn even after a lifetime of study and research. But he absorbed what he could during the day and dove into finding relaxation and fun at night. He didn’t find Paris any less rich in opportunities for his nighttime pursuits.
If he smoked too many cigarettes and drank too much absinth it was because he took civilization as he found it, and did the things that he found his civilized brothers doing. The life was a new and alluring one, and in addition he had a sorrow in his breast and a great longing which he knew could never be fulfilled, and so he sought in study and in dissipation—the two extremes—to forget the past and inhibit contemplation of the future.
If he smoked too many cigarettes and drank too much absinthe, it was because he accepted civilization as it was and did what he saw his civilized peers doing. The lifestyle was new and tempting, and on top of that, he carried a sorrow in his heart and a deep longing that he knew could never be satisfied, so he turned to study and to partying—two extremes—to forget the past and avoid thinking about the future.
He was sitting in a music hall one evening, sipping his absinth and admiring the art of a certain famous Russian dancer, when he caught a passing glimpse of a pair of evil black eyes upon him. The man turned and was lost in the crowd at the exit before Tarzan could catch a good look at him, but he was confident that he had seen those eyes before and that they had been fastened on him this evening through no passing accident. He had had the uncanny feeling for some time that he was being watched, and it was in response to this animal instinct that was strong within him that he had turned suddenly and surprised the eyes in the very act of watching him.
He was sitting in a music hall one evening, sipping his absinthe and admiring the performance of a famous Russian dancer, when he caught a quick glimpse of a pair of sinister black eyes on him. The man turned and blended into the crowd at the exit before Tarzan could get a good look at him, but he was sure he had seen those eyes before and that they had been focused on him that evening for a reason. For some time, he had felt an eerie sensation that someone was watching him, and it was this instinct that drove him to turn suddenly and catch those eyes in the act of staring at him.
Before he left the music hall the matter had been forgotten, nor did he notice the swarthy individual who stepped deeper into the shadows of an opposite doorway as Tarzan emerged from the brilliantly lighted amusement hall.
Before he left the music hall, he had forgotten about it, and he didn't see the dark-skinned man who moved further into the shadows of a doorway across from him as Tarzan came out of the brightly lit amusement hall.
Had Tarzan but known it, he had been followed many times from this and other places of amusement, but seldom if ever had he been alone. Tonight D’Arnot had had another engagement, and Tarzan had come by himself.
Had Tarzan known it, he had been followed many times from this and other places of amusement, but rarely, if ever, had he been alone. Tonight, D’Arnot had another commitment, and Tarzan had come by himself.
As he turned in the direction he was accustomed to taking from this part of Paris to his apartments, the watcher across the street ran from his hiding-place and hurried on ahead at a rapid pace.
As he headed in the direction he usually took from this part of Paris to his apartment, the watcher across the street dashed from his hiding spot and quickly moved ahead.
Tarzan had been wont to traverse the Rue Maule on his way home at night. Because it was very quiet and very dark it reminded him more of his beloved African jungle than did the noisy and garish streets surrounding it. If you are familiar with your Paris you will recall the narrow, forbidding precincts of the Rue Maule. If you are not, you need but ask the police about it to learn that in all Paris there is no street to which you should give a wider berth after dark.
Tarzan often walked down Rue Maule on his way home at night. Since it was really quiet and dark, it reminded him more of his cherished African jungle than the loud and flashy streets nearby. If you know Paris, you’ll remember the narrow, intimidating areas of Rue Maule. If you don’t, just ask the police, and they’ll tell you there’s no street in all of Paris you should avoid more after dark.
On this night Tarzan had proceeded some two squares through the dense shadows of the squalid old tenements which line this dismal way when he was attracted by screams and cries for help from the third floor of an opposite building. The voice was a woman’s. Before the echoes of her first cries had died Tarzan was bounding up the stairs and through the dark corridors to her rescue.
On this night, Tarzan had made his way through about two blocks of the dense shadows cast by the rundown old buildings lining this gloomy street when he heard screams and cries for help from the third floor of a building across the way. The voice was a woman’s. Before the echoes of her first cries faded, Tarzan was sprinting up the stairs and through the dark hallways to rescue her.
At the end of the corridor on the third landing a door stood slightly ajar, and from within Tarzan heard again the same appeal that had lured him from the street. Another instant found him in the center of a dimly-lighted room. An oil lamp burned upon a high, old-fashioned mantel, casting its dim rays over a dozen repulsive figures. All but one were men. The other was a woman of about thirty. Her face, marked by low passions and dissipation, might once have been lovely. She stood with one hand at her throat, crouching against the farther wall.
At the end of the hallway on the third floor, a door was slightly open, and from inside, Tarzan heard the same cry that had drawn him away from the street. Moments later, he found himself in the middle of a dimly lit room. An oil lamp sat on a tall, old-fashioned mantel, casting weak light over a dozen ugly figures. All but one were men. The other was a woman in her thirties. Her face, marked by base desires and a life of excess, might have been beautiful once. She stood with one hand on her throat, crouching against the far wall.
“Help, monsieur,” she cried in a low voice as Tarzan entered the room; “they were killing me.”
“Help, sir,” she pleaded softly as Tarzan walked into the room; “they were about to kill me.”
As Tarzan turned toward the men about him he saw the crafty, evil faces of habitual criminals. He wondered that they had made no effort to escape. A movement behind him caused him to turn. Two things his eyes saw, and one of them caused him considerable wonderment. A man was sneaking stealthily from the room, and in the brief glance that Tarzan had of him he saw that it was Rokoff. But the other thing that he saw was of more immediate interest. It was a great brute of a fellow tiptoeing upon him from behind with a huge bludgeon in his hand, and then, as the man and his confederates saw that he was discovered, there was a concerted rush upon Tarzan from all sides. Some of the men drew knives. Others picked up chairs, while the fellow with the bludgeon raised it high above his head in a mighty swing that would have crushed Tarzan’s head had it ever descended upon it.
As Tarzan turned to face the men around him, he saw the sly, wicked faces of seasoned criminals. He was surprised they hadn’t tried to escape. A movement behind him made him look. Two things caught his eye, and one of them really puzzled him. A man was sneaking out of the room, and in the quick glance Tarzan had of him, he recognized Rokoff. But the other thing he noticed was more pressing. A huge guy was creeping up on him from behind, holding a massive club in his hand. Then, when the man and his buddies realized he had seen them, they all charged at Tarzan from every direction. Some of the men pulled out knives. Others grabbed chairs, and the guy with the club raised it high above his head, ready to swing it down with enough force to crush Tarzan’s skull if it ever hit him.
But the brain, and the agility, and the muscles that had coped with the mighty strength and cruel craftiness of Terkoz and Numa in the fastness of their savage jungle were not to be so easily subdued as these apaches of Paris had believed.
But the brain, the agility, and the muscles that had dealt with the immense strength and cruel cunning of Terkoz and Numa in the depths of their wild jungle were not going to be so easily conquered as these Parisian thugs had thought.
Selecting his most formidable antagonist, the fellow with the bludgeon, Tarzan charged full upon him, dodging the falling weapon, and catching the man a terrific blow on the point of the chin that felled him in his tracks.
Choosing his toughest opponent, the guy with the club, Tarzan charged right at him, dodging the swinging weapon, and landed a powerful punch right on the chin that knocked him down.
Then he turned upon the others. This was sport. He was reveling in the joy of battle and the lust of blood. As though it had been but a brittle shell, to break at the least rough usage, the thin veneer of his civilization fell from him, and the ten burly villains found themselves penned in a small room with a wild and savage beast, against whose steel muscles their puny strength was less than futile.
Then he turned on the others. This was fun. He was enjoying the thrill of the fight and the rush of adrenaline. As if it were just a fragile shell, ready to crack under the slightest pressure, the thin layer of his civility fell away, and the ten strong thugs found themselves trapped in a small room with a wild and ferocious beast, whose powerful muscles made their feeble strength feel completely useless.
At the end of the corridor without stood Rokoff, waiting the outcome of the affair. He wished to be sure that Tarzan was dead before he left, but it was not a part of his plan to be one of those within the room when the murder occurred.
At the end of the corridor stood Rokoff, waiting to see how things would turn out. He wanted to make sure that Tarzan was dead before he left, but he didn't intend to be one of those inside the room when the murder happened.
The woman still stood where she had when Tarzan entered, but her face had undergone a number of changes with the few minutes which had elapsed. From the semblance of distress which it had worn when Tarzan first saw it, it had changed to one of craftiness as he had wheeled to meet the attack from behind; but the change Tarzan had not seen.
The woman was still standing where she had been when Tarzan entered, but her face had gone through several changes in the few minutes that had passed. It had shifted from a look of distress when Tarzan first saw her to one of cunning as he turned to face the attack from behind; however, Tarzan had not noticed the change.
Later an expression of surprise and then one of horror superseded the others. And who may wonder. For the immaculate gentleman her cries had lured to what was to have been his death had been suddenly metamorphosed into a demon of revenge. Instead of soft muscles and a weak resistance, she was looking upon a veritable Hercules gone mad.
Later, an expression of surprise, followed by one of horror, replaced the others. And who wouldn't be shocked? The pristine gentleman her screams had drawn to what was supposed to be his death had suddenly transformed into a vengeful demon. Instead of soft muscles and a weak resistance, she was staring at a true Hercules gone insane.
“Mon Dieu!” she cried; “he is a beast!” For the strong, white teeth of the ape-man had found the throat of one of his assailants, and Tarzan fought as he had learned to fight with the great bull apes of the tribe of Kerchak.
“My God!” she cried; “he's a monster!” The strong, white teeth of the ape-man had clamped onto the throat of one of his attackers, and Tarzan fought as he had learned to fight with the great bull apes of the Kerchak tribe.
He was in a dozen places at once, leaping hither and thither about the room in sinuous bounds that reminded the woman of a panther she had seen at the zoo. Now a wrist-bone snapped in his iron grip, now a shoulder was wrenched from its socket as he forced a victim’s arm backward and upward.
He was everywhere at once, darting back and forth around the room in fluid movements that reminded the woman of a panther she had seen at the zoo. One moment, a wrist-bone cracked in his strong grip, and the next, a shoulder was pulled out of its socket as he twisted a victim’s arm backward and upward.
With shrieks of pain the men escaped into the hallway as quickly as they could; but even before the first one staggered, bleeding and broken, from the room, Rokoff had seen enough to convince him that Tarzan would not be the one to lie dead in that house this night, and so the Russian had hastened to a nearby den and telephoned the police that a man was committing murder on the third floor of Rue Maule, 27. When the officers arrived they found three men groaning on the floor, a frightened woman lying upon a filthy bed, her face buried in her arms, and what appeared to be a well-dressed young gentleman standing in the center of the room awaiting the reenforcements which he had thought the footsteps of the officers hurrying up the stairway had announced—but they were mistaken in the last; it was a wild beast that looked upon them through those narrowed lids and steel-gray eyes. With the smell of blood the last vestige of civilization had deserted Tarzan, and now he stood at bay, like a lion surrounded by hunters, awaiting the next overt act, and crouching to charge its author.
With cries of pain, the men hurried into the hallway as fast as they could; but even before the first one staggered out, bleeding and injured, Rokoff had seen enough to know that Tarzan wouldn’t be the one lying dead in that house that night. So, the Russian rushed to a nearby phone and called the police to report that a man was committing murder on the third floor of Rue Maule, 27. When the officers arrived, they found three men groaning on the floor, a terrified woman lying on a dirty bed with her face buried in her arms, and what looked like a well-dressed young gentleman standing in the middle of the room, waiting for the backup he thought was announced by the footsteps of the officers rushing up the stairs—but they were wrong about that; it was a wild beast that stared at them with narrowed lids and steel-gray eyes. With the smell of blood, the last remnants of civilization had left Tarzan, and now he stood ready to fight, like a lion surrounded by hunters, waiting for the next attack and crouching to spring at its source.
“What has happened here?” asked one of the policemen.
“What happened here?” asked one of the police officers.
Tarzan explained briefly, but when he turned to the woman for confirmation of his statement he was appalled by her reply.
Tarzan explained briefly, but when he looked to the woman for confirmation of his statement, he was shocked by her response.
“He lies!” she screamed shrilly, addressing the policeman. “He came to my room while I was alone, and for no good purpose. When I repulsed him he would have killed me had not my screams attracted these gentlemen, who were passing the house at the time. He is a devil, monsieurs; alone he has all but killed ten men with his bare hands and his teeth.”
“He’s lying!” she yelled sharply at the police officer. “He came into my room while I was by myself, and for no good reason. When I pushed him away, he would have killed me if my screams hadn’t drawn these gentlemen, who were passing by the house at that moment. He’s a monster, gentlemen; he has almost killed ten men on his own with just his bare hands and teeth.”
So shocked was Tarzan by her ingratitude that for a moment he was struck dumb. The police were inclined to be a little skeptical, for they had had other dealings with this same lady and her lovely coterie of gentlemen friends. However, they were policemen, not judges, so they decided to place all the inmates of the room under arrest, and let another, whose business it was, separate the innocent from the guilty.
So shocked was Tarzan by her ingratitude that for a moment he couldn't speak. The police were a bit skeptical since they had dealt with this same woman and her charming group of male friends before. But they were policemen, not judges, so they chose to arrest everyone in the room and let someone else, whose job it was, figure out who was innocent and who was guilty.
But they found that it was one thing to tell this well-dressed young man that he was under arrest, but quite another to enforce it.
But they discovered that it was one thing to inform this well-dressed young man that he was under arrest, but quite another to actually carry it out.
“I am guilty of no offense,” he said quietly. “I have but sought to defend myself. I do not know why the woman has told you what she has. She can have no enmity against me, for never until I came to this room in response to her cries for help had I seen her.”
“I haven’t done anything wrong,” he said quietly. “I’ve only tried to defend myself. I don’t understand why she said what she did. She can’t have anything against me, because I had never seen her until I came to this room in response to her calls for help.”
“Come, come,” said one of the officers; “there are judges to listen to all that,” and he advanced to lay his hand upon Tarzan’s shoulder. An instant later he lay crumpled in a corner of the room, and then, as his comrades rushed in upon the ape-man, they experienced a taste of what the apaches had but recently gone through. So quickly and so roughly did he handle them that they had not even an opportunity to draw their revolvers.
“Come on,” said one of the officers; “there are judges to hear all of that,” and he stepped forward to put his hand on Tarzan’s shoulder. A moment later, he was crumpled in a corner of the room, and then, as his comrades rushed in at the ape-man, they got a taste of what the apaches had just experienced. He handled them so quickly and so roughly that they didn’t even have a chance to draw their guns.
During the brief fight Tarzan had noted the open window and, beyond, the stem of a tree, or a telegraph pole—he could not tell which. As the last officer went down, one of his fellows succeeded in drawing his revolver and, from where he lay on the floor, fired at Tarzan. The shot missed, and before the man could fire again Tarzan had swept the lamp from the mantel and plunged the room into darkness.
During the short fight, Tarzan noticed the open window and, beyond that, the trunk of a tree or a telephone pole—he couldn't tell which. As the last officer fell, one of his companions managed to pull out his revolver and, from the floor, shot at Tarzan. The shot missed, and before the man could shoot again, Tarzan knocked the lamp off the mantel, plunging the room into darkness.
The next they saw was a lithe form spring to the sill of the open window and leap, panther-like, onto the pole across the walk. When the police gathered themselves together and reached the street their prisoner was nowhere to be seen.
The next thing they saw was a nimble figure springing to the ledge of the open window and jumping, cat-like, onto the pole across the walkway. By the time the police got themselves organized and arrived on the street, their suspect had disappeared.
They did not handle the woman and the men who had not escaped any too gently when they took them to the station; they were a very sore and humiliated detail of police. It galled them to think that it would be necessary to report that a single unarmed man had wiped the floor with the whole lot of them, and then escaped them as easily as though they had not existed.
They didn't treat the woman and the men who hadn't escaped very kindly when they took them to the station; they were a pretty bruised and embarrassed group of police. It frustrated them to think they'd have to report that one unarmed man had taken down all of them and then gotten away as if they weren't even there.
The officer who had remained in the street swore that no one had leaped from the window or left the building from the time they entered until they had come out. His comrades thought that he lied, but they could not prove it.
The officer who stayed in the street insisted that no one had jumped from the window or left the building from the time they arrived until they came out. His fellow officers suspected he was lying, but they couldn't prove it.
When Tarzan found himself clinging to the pole outside the window, he followed his jungle instinct and looked below for enemies before he ventured down. It was well he did, for just beneath stood a policeman. Above, Tarzan saw no one, so he went up instead of down.
When Tarzan found himself holding onto the pole outside the window, he followed his jungle instinct and looked down for any threats before he climbed down. It was a good thing he did, because right below stood a policeman. Since he didn’t see anyone above, he decided to go up instead of down.
The top of the pole was opposite the roof of the building, so it was but the work of an instant for the muscles that had for years sent him hurtling through the treetops of his primeval forest to carry him across the little space between the pole and the roof. From one building he went to another, and so on, with much climbing, until at a cross street he discovered another pole, down which he ran to the ground.
The top of the pole was in line with the roof of the building, so it took just a moment for the muscles that had spent years propelling him through the treetops of his ancient forest to take him across the small gap between the pole and the roof. He moved from one building to another, climbing a lot, until he found another pole at a cross street, which he then descended to the ground.
For a square or two he ran swiftly; then he turned into a little all-night café and in the lavatory removed the evidences of his over-roof promenade from hands and clothes. When he emerged a few moments later it was to saunter slowly on toward his apartments.
For a block or two, he ran quickly; then he turned into a small all-night café and cleaned the signs of his rooftop walk from his hands and clothes in the restroom. When he came out a few moments later, he strolled slowly toward his apartment.
Not far from them he came to a well-lighted boulevard which it was necessary to cross. As he stood directly beneath a brilliant arc light, waiting for a limousine that was approaching to pass him, he heard his name called in a sweet feminine voice. Looking up, he met the smiling eyes of Olga de Coude as she leaned forward upon the back seat of the machine. He bowed very low in response to her friendly greeting. When he straightened up the machine had borne her away.
Not far from them, he arrived at a brightly lit boulevard that he needed to cross. While standing right under a bright streetlight, waiting for an approaching limousine to pass, he heard his name called in a sweet feminine voice. Looking up, he met the smiling eyes of Olga de Coude as she leaned forward in the back seat of the car. He bowed deeply in response to her friendly greeting. By the time he straightened up, the car had taken her away.
“Rokoff and the Countess de Coude both in the same evening,” he soliloquized; “Paris is not so large, after all.”
“Rokoff and Countess de Coude both in the same evening,” he thought to himself; “Paris isn't that big, after all.”
Chapter IV
The Countess Explains
“Your Paris is more dangerous than my savage jungles, Paul,” concluded Tarzan, after narrating his adventures to his friend the morning following his encounter with the apaches and police in the Rue Maule. “Why did they lure me there? Were they hungry?”
“Your Paris is more dangerous than my wild jungles, Paul,” concluded Tarzan, after telling his friend about his adventures the morning after his encounter with the apaches and police on Rue Maule. “Why did they lure me there? Were they hungry?”
D’Arnot feigned a horrified shudder, but he laughed at the quaint suggestion.
D'Arnot pretended to be horrified but laughed at the old-fashioned suggestion.
“It is difficult to rise above the jungle standards and reason by the light of civilized ways, is it not, my friend?” he queried banteringly.
“It’s tough to rise above the jungle standards and think in a civilized way, isn’t it, my friend?” he asked playfully.
“Civilized ways, forsooth,” scoffed Tarzan. “Jungle standards do not countenance wanton atrocities. There we kill for food and for self-preservation, or in the winning of mates and the protection of the young. Always, you see, in accordance with the dictates of some great natural law. But here! Faugh, your civilized man is more brutal than the brutes. He kills wantonly, and, worse than that, he utilizes a noble sentiment, the brotherhood of man, as a lure to entice his unwary victim to his doom. It was in answer to an appeal from a fellow being that I hastened to that room where the assassins lay in wait for me.
“Civilized ways, really,” scoffed Tarzan. “Jungle standards don’t tolerate senseless brutality. There, we kill for food and survival, to win mates, and to protect our young. Always, you see, according to some great natural law. But here! Ugh, your civilized man is more vicious than the beasts. He kills without reason, and even worse, he uses a noble idea, the brotherhood of man, to lure his unsuspecting victim to their doom. I rushed to that room where the assassins were waiting for me in response to an appeal from another person.”
“I did not realize, I could not realize for a long time afterward, that any woman could sink to such moral depravity as that one must have to call a would-be rescuer to death. But it must have been so—the sight of Rokoff there and the woman’s later repudiation of me to the police make it impossible to place any other construction upon her acts. Rokoff must have known that I frequently passed through the Rue Maule. He lay in wait for me—his entire scheme worked out to the last detail, even to the woman’s story in case a hitch should occur in the program such as really did happen. It is all perfectly plain to me.”
"I didn't realize, and it took me a long time to understand, that any woman could sink to such moral depravity as to call for her would-be rescuer's death. But it must have happened that way—the sight of Rokoff being there and the woman's later denial of me to the police make it impossible to think any differently about her actions. Rokoff must have known that I often walked through Rue Maule. He was waiting for me—his whole plan was worked out to the last detail, including the woman's story in case something went wrong, which actually did happen. It's all perfectly clear to me."
“Well,” said D’Arnot, “among other things, it has taught you what I have been unable to impress upon you—that the Rue Maule is a good place to avoid after dark.”
“Well,” said D’Arnot, “among other things, it has taught you what I haven’t been able to get through to you—that Rue Maule is a good place to steer clear of after dark.”
“On the contrary,” replied Tarzan, with a smile, “it has convinced me that it is the one worth-while street in all Paris. Never again shall I miss an opportunity to traverse it, for it has given me the first real entertainment I have had since I left Africa.”
“On the contrary,” replied Tarzan, smiling, “it has convinced me that it’s the only street worth visiting in all of Paris. I will never miss another chance to walk it, as it has given me the first real entertainment I’ve had since I left Africa.”
“It may give you more than you will relish even without another visit,” said D’Arnot. “You are not through with the police yet, remember. I know the Paris police well enough to assure you that they will not soon forget what you did to them. Sooner or later they will get you, my dear Tarzan, and then they will lock the wild man of the woods up behind iron bars. How will you like that?”
“It might give you more than you can handle even without another visit,” said D’Arnot. “You’re not done with the police yet, remember. I know the Paris police well enough to tell you that they won’t soon forget what you did to them. Sooner or later, they’ll catch you, my dear Tarzan, and then they’ll lock the wild man of the woods up behind bars. How will you feel about that?”
“They will never lock Tarzan of the Apes behind iron bars,” replied he, grimly.
“They will never lock Tarzan of the Apes behind iron bars,” he replied, grimly.
There was something in the man’s voice as he said it that caused D’Arnot to look up sharply at his friend. What he saw in the set jaw and the cold, gray eyes made the young Frenchman very apprehensive for this great child, who could recognize no law mightier than his own mighty physical prowess. He saw that something must be done to set Tarzan right with the police before another encounter was possible.
There was something in the man's voice when he said it that made D'Arnot look up sharply at his friend. What he saw in the tight jaw and the cold, gray eyes made the young Frenchman very worried for this great child, who could recognize no law stronger than his own incredible physical strength. He realized that something needed to be done to set Tarzan straight with the police before another confrontation was possible.
“You have much to learn, Tarzan,” he said gravely. “The law of man must be respected, whether you relish it or no. Nothing but trouble can come to you and your friends should you persist in defying the police. I can explain it to them once for you, and that I shall do this very day, but hereafter you must obey the law. If its representatives say ‘Come,’ you must come; if they say ‘Go,’ you must go. Now we shall go to my great friend in the department and fix up this matter of the Rue Maule. Come!”
“You have a lot to learn, Tarzan,” he said seriously. “The law of man must be followed, whether you like it or not. Only trouble will come to you and your friends if you keep ignoring the police. I can explain this to them for you just this once, and I will do that today, but from now on, you need to obey the law. If the authorities say ‘Come,’ you must come; if they say ‘Go,’ you must go. Now, let’s go see my good friend in the department and sort out this issue with Rue Maule. Come on!”
Together they entered the office of the police official a half hour later. He was very cordial. He remembered Tarzan from the visit the two had made him several months prior in the matter of finger prints.
Together, they walked into the police official's office half an hour later. He was very friendly. He remembered Tarzan from the visit they both made a few months ago regarding fingerprints.
When D’Arnot had concluded the narration of the events which had transpired the previous evening, a grim smile was playing about the lips of the policeman. He touched a button near his hand, and as he waited for the clerk to respond to its summons he searched through the papers on his desk for one which he finally located.
When D’Arnot finished telling the story of what happened the night before, a grim smile appeared on the policeman's lips. He pressed a button near his hand, and while waiting for the clerk to respond, he rummaged through the papers on his desk until he found one he was looking for.
“Here, Joubon,” he said as the clerk entered. “Summon these officers—have them come to me at once,” and he handed the man the paper he had sought. Then he turned to Tarzan.
“Here, Joubon,” he said as the clerk walked in. “Call these officers—get them to come to me right away,” and he handed the man the paper he had wanted. Then he turned to Tarzan.
“You have committed a very grave offense, monsieur,” he said, not unkindly, “and but for the explanation made by our good friend here I should be inclined to judge you harshly. I am, instead, about to do a rather unheard-of-thing. I have summoned the officers whom you maltreated last night. They shall hear Lieutenant D’Arnot’s story, and then I shall leave it to their discretion to say whether you shall be prosecuted or not.
"You’ve committed a serious offense, sir," he said, not unkindly, "and if it weren’t for the explanation from our good friend here, I would be inclined to judge you harshly. Instead, I'm about to do something quite unusual. I've called in the officers you mistreated last night. They will hear Lieutenant D’Arnot’s account, and then I’ll leave it up to them to decide whether you should be prosecuted or not."
“You have much to learn about the ways of civilization. Things that seem strange or unnecessary to you, you must learn to accept until you are able to judge the motives behind them. The officers whom you attacked were but doing their duty. They had no discretion in the matter. Every day they risk their lives in the protection of the lives or property of others. They would do the same for you. They are very brave men, and they are deeply mortified that a single unarmed man bested and beat them.
“You have a lot to learn about how civilization works. Things that seem odd or pointless to you, you need to learn to accept until you can understand the reasons behind them. The officers you attacked were just doing their job. They had no choice in the situation. Every day, they put their lives on the line to protect the lives and property of others. They would do the same for you. They are very brave men, and they are deeply embarrassed that one unarmed man was able to overpower them.”
“Make it easy for them to overlook what you did. Unless I am gravely in error you are yourself a very brave man, and brave men are proverbially magnanimous.”
“Make it easy for them to ignore what you did. Unless I’m seriously mistaken, you’re a very courageous man, and courageous men are famously generous.”
Further conversation was interrupted by the appearance of the four policemen. As their eyes fell on Tarzan, surprise was writ large on each countenance.
Further conversation was interrupted by the arrival of the four police officers. When they saw Tarzan, surprise was clearly shown on each of their faces.
“My children,” said the official, “here is the gentleman whom you met in the Rue Maule last evening. He has come voluntarily to give himself up. I wish you to listen attentively to Lieutenant D’Arnot, who will tell you a part of the story of monsieur’s life. It may explain his attitude toward you of last night. Proceed, my dear lieutenant.”
“My children,” said the official, “here is the man you met on Rue Maule last night. He has come on his own to surrender. I want you to listen carefully to Lieutenant D’Arnot, who will share part of this man's life story. It might help explain his behavior toward you last night. Go ahead, my dear lieutenant.”
D’Arnot spoke to the policemen for half an hour. He told them something of Tarzan’s wild jungle life. He explained the savage training that had taught him to battle like a wild beast in self-preservation. It became plain to them that the man had been guided by instinct rather than reason in his attack upon them. He had not understood their intentions. To him they had been little different from any of the various forms of life he had been accustomed to in his native jungle, where practically all were his enemies.
D’Arnot talked to the police officers for half an hour. He shared some of Tarzan’s wild jungle life. He explained the brutal training that had taught him to fight like a wild animal to survive. It was clear to them that the man had acted on instinct rather than logic during his attack on them. He hadn’t understood what they intended. To him, they were not much different from the various types of creatures he had encountered in his native jungle, where nearly all were his enemies.
“Your pride has been wounded,” said D’Arnot, in conclusion. “It is the fact that this man overcame you that hurts the most. But you need feel no shame. You would not make apologies for defeat had you been penned in that small room with an African lion, or with the great Gorilla of the jungles.
“Your pride has been hurt,” said D’Arnot, wrapping up the conversation. “What stings the most is that this man got the better of you. But you shouldn’t feel ashamed. You wouldn’t apologize for losing if you had been trapped in that small room with an African lion or with the huge Gorilla of the jungles.
“And yet you were battling with muscles that have time and time again been pitted, and always victoriously, against these terrors of the dark continent. It is no disgrace to fall beneath the superhuman strength of Tarzan of the Apes.”
“And yet you were fighting against muscles that have repeatedly faced, and always triumphed over, these nightmares of the dark continent. It’s no shame to be defeated by the extraordinary strength of Tarzan of the Apes.”
And then, as the men stood looking first at Tarzan and then at their superior the ape-man did the one thing which was needed to erase the last remnant of animosity which they might have felt for him. With outstretched hand he advanced toward them.
And then, as the men stood looking at Tarzan and then at their boss, the ape-man did the one thing that was needed to wipe away any lingering hostility they might have felt toward him. With his hand out, he stepped forward to them.
“I am sorry for the mistake I made,” he said simply. “Let us be friends.” And that was the end of the whole matter, except that Tarzan became a subject of much conversation in the barracks of the police, and increased the number of his friends by four brave men at least.
“I’m sorry for the mistake I made,” he said plainly. “Let’s be friends.” And that was the end of the whole thing, except that Tarzan became a topic of much discussion in the police barracks, and gained at least four more brave friends.
On their return to D’Arnot’s apartments the lieutenant found a letter awaiting him from an English friend, William Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke. The two had maintained a correspondence since the birth of their friendship on that ill-fated expedition in search of Jane Porter after her theft by Terkoz, the bull ape.
On returning to D’Arnot’s apartment, the lieutenant discovered a letter waiting for him from his English friend, William Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke. They had kept in touch ever since their friendship began during that ill-fated expedition to find Jane Porter after her abduction by Terkoz, the bull ape.
“They are to be married in London in about two months,” said D’Arnot, as he completed his perusal of the letter. Tarzan did not need to be told who was meant by “they.” He made no reply, but he was very quiet and thoughtful during the balance of the day.
“They're getting married in London in about two months,” said D’Arnot as he finished reading the letter. Tarzan didn’t need to be told who “they” referred to. He didn’t respond, but he was very quiet and deep in thought for the rest of the day.
That evening they attended the opera. Tarzan’s mind was still occupied by his gloomy thoughts. He paid little or no attention to what was transpiring upon the stage. Instead he saw only the lovely vision of a beautiful American girl, and heard naught but a sad, sweet voice acknowledging that his love was returned. And she was to marry another!
That evening they went to the opera. Tarzan was still lost in his dark thoughts. He hardly paid attention to what was happening on stage. Instead, he could only see the beautiful image of an American girl and could only hear a sad, sweet voice confirming that his love was returned. And she was going to marry someone else!
He shook himself to be rid of his unwelcome thoughts, and at the same instant he felt eyes upon him. With the instinct that was his by virtue of training he looked up squarely into the eyes that were looking at him, to find that they were shining from the smiling face of Olga, Countess de Coude. As Tarzan returned her bow he was positive that there was an invitation in her look, almost a plea. The next intermission found him beside her in her box.
He shook his head to clear his unwanted thoughts, and at that moment, he felt someone watching him. With the reflexes he had from his training, he looked up directly into the eyes that were on him, only to see the bright gaze of Olga, Countess de Coude, smiling at him. As Tarzan returned her bow, he was sure there was an invitation in her expression, almost a request. During the next intermission, he found himself beside her in her box.
“I have so much wished to see you,” she was saying. “It has troubled me not a little to think that after the service you rendered to both my husband and myself no adequate explanation was ever made you of what must have seemed ingratitude on our part in not taking the necessary steps to prevent a repetition of the attacks upon us by those two men.”
“I’ve really wanted to see you,” she was saying. “It’s been quite troubling to think that after the help you gave my husband and me, we never properly explained why it must have seemed like we were ungrateful for not doing what was needed to stop those two men from attacking us again.”
“You wrong me,” replied Tarzan. “My thoughts of you have been only the most pleasant. You must not feel that any explanation is due me. Have they annoyed you further?”
"You’re misunderstanding me," Tarzan replied. "My feelings for you have only been positive. You don’t need to feel like you owe me any explanation. Have they bothered you even more?"
“They never cease,” she replied sadly. “I feel that I must tell some one, and I do not know another who so deserves an explanation as you. You must permit me to do so. It may be of service to you, for I know Nikolas Rokoff quite well enough to be positive that you have not seen the last of him. He will find some means to be revenged upon you. What I wish to tell you may be of aid to you in combating any scheme of revenge he may harbor. I cannot tell you here, but tomorrow I shall be at home to Monsieur Tarzan at five.”
“They never stop,” she said sadly. “I feel like I need to tell someone, and I don’t know anyone who deserves an explanation as much as you do. You have to let me do this. It might help you, since I know Nikolas Rokoff well enough to be sure that this isn’t the last you’ll see of him. He will find a way to get back at you. What I want to tell you could help you fight against any revenge plan he might have. I can’t tell you here, but tomorrow I’ll be at home for Monsieur Tarzan at five.”
“It will be an eternity until tomorrow at five,” he said, as he bade her good night. From a corner of the theater Rokoff and Paulvitch saw Monsieur Tarzan in the box of the Countess de Coude, and both men smiled.
“It will feel like forever until tomorrow at five,” he said, as he said goodnight to her. From a corner of the theater, Rokoff and Paulvitch spotted Monsieur Tarzan in the box of the Countess de Coude, and both men smiled.
At four-thirty the following afternoon a swarthy, bearded man rang the bell at the servants’ entrance of the palace of the Count de Coude. The footman who opened the door raised his eyebrows in recognition as he saw who stood without. A low conversation passed between the two.
At four-thirty the next afternoon, a dark-skinned, bearded man rang the bell at the servants’ entrance of Count de Coude's palace. The footman who opened the door raised his eyebrows in recognition when he saw who was outside. A brief conversation took place between the two.
At first the footman demurred from some proposition that the bearded one made, but an instant later something passed from the hand of the caller to the hand of the servant. Then the latter turned and led the visitor by a roundabout way to a little curtained alcove off the apartment in which the countess was wont to serve tea of an afternoon.
At first, the footman hesitated about a suggestion made by the bearded man, but a moment later, something was exchanged from the caller's hand to the servant’s. Then, the footman turned and led the visitor through a winding path to a small curtained alcove off the room where the countess usually served tea in the afternoon.
A half hour later Tarzan was ushered into the room, and presently his hostess entered, smiling, and with outstretched hands.
A half hour later, Tarzan was shown into the room, and soon his hostess came in, smiling and with open arms.
“I am so glad that you came,” she said.
“I'm really glad you came,” she said.
“Nothing could have prevented,” he replied.
“Nothing could have stopped it,” he replied.
For a few moments they spoke of the opera, of the topics that were then occupying the attention of Paris, of the pleasure of renewing their brief acquaintance which had had its inception under such odd circumstances, and this brought them to the subject that was uppermost in the minds of both.
For a few moments, they talked about the opera, the issues that were currently capturing everyone's attention in Paris, and the enjoyment of reconnecting after their brief meeting that had started in such strange circumstances. This led them to the topic that was most on both of their minds.
“You must have wondered,” said the countess finally, “what the object of Rokoff’s persecution could be. It is very simple. The count is intrusted with many of the vital secrets of the ministry of war. He often has in his possession papers that foreign powers would give a fortune to possess—secrets of state that their agents would commit murder and worse than murder to learn.
“You must have wondered,” said the countess finally, “what Rokoff’s motives for harassing him could be. It’s quite straightforward. The count is in charge of many crucial secrets from the ministry of war. He often holds documents that foreign powers would pay a fortune to get their hands on—state secrets that their agents would go to great lengths, even resorting to murder or worse, to uncover.”
“There is such a matter now in his possession that would make the fame and fortune of any Russian who could divulge it to his government. Rokoff and Paulvitch are Russian spies. They will stop at nothing to procure this information. The affair on the liner—I mean the matter of the card game—was for the purpose of blackmailing the knowledge they seek from my husband.
“There’s something he has right now that could bring fame and fortune to any Russian who shares it with their government. Rokoff and Paulvitch are Russian spies. They won’t hesitate to do anything to get this information. The incident on the liner—I’m talking about the card game—was intended to blackmail my husband into revealing the knowledge they want.”
“Had he been convicted of cheating at cards, his career would have been blighted. He would have had to leave the war department. He would have been socially ostracized. They intended to hold this club over him—the price of an avowal on their part that the count was but the victim of the plot of enemies who wished to besmirch his name was to have been the papers they seek.
“Had he been found guilty of cheating at cards, his career would have been ruined. He would have had to leave the war department. He would have been socially rejected. They planned to use this club against him—the price for them admitting that the count was just a victim of a conspiracy by enemies who wanted to tarnish his name was the documents they were after.”
“You thwarted them in this. Then they concocted the scheme whereby my reputation was to be the price, instead of the count’s. When Paulvitch entered my cabin he explained it to me. If I would obtain the information for them he promised to go no farther, otherwise Rokoff, who stood without, was to notify the purser that I was entertaining a man other than my husband behind the locked doors of my cabin. He was to tell every one he met on the boat, and when we landed he was to have given the whole story to the newspaper men.
“You stopped them from doing this. Then they came up with a plan where my reputation would be the cost instead of the count’s. When Paulvitch came into my cabin, he explained it to me. If I could get the information for them, he promised not to go any further; otherwise, Rokoff, who was waiting outside, would tell the purser that I was having a man in my locked cabin who wasn’t my husband. He was supposed to share this with everyone on the boat, and when we got to land, he would have given the whole story to the reporters.”
“Was it not too horrible? But I happened to know something of Monsieur Paulvitch that would send him to the gallows in Russia if it were known by the police of St. Petersburg. I dared him to carry out his plan, and then I leaned toward him and whispered a name in his ear. Like that”—and she snapped her fingers—“he flew at my throat as a madman. He would have killed me had you not interfered.”
“Wasn't it terrible? But I knew something about Monsieur Paulvitch that would get him hanged in Russia if the St. Petersburg police found out. I challenged him to go through with his plan, and then I leaned in and whispered a name in his ear. Just like that”—and she snapped her fingers—“he lunged at my throat like a madman. He would have killed me if you hadn't stepped in.”
“The brutes!” muttered Tarzan.
"The beasts!" muttered Tarzan.
“They are worse than that, my friend,” she said. “They are devils. I fear for you because you have gained their hatred. I wish you to be on your guard constantly. Tell me that you will, for my sake, for I should never forgive myself should you suffer through the kindness you did me.”
“They're even worse than that, my friend,” she said. “They’re like devils. I’m worried for you because you’ve earned their hatred. I want you to stay alert all the time. Promise me you will, for my sake, because I would never forgive myself if you got hurt because of the kindness you showed me.”
“I do not fear them,” he replied. “I have survived grimmer enemies than Rokoff and Paulvitch.” He saw that she knew nothing of the occurrence in the Rue Maule, nor did he mention it, fearing that it might distress her.
“I’m not afraid of them,” he replied. “I’ve dealt with tougher enemies than Rokoff and Paulvitch.” He noticed that she didn’t know anything about what happened on the Rue Maule, and he didn’t bring it up, afraid it might upset her.
“For your own safety,” he continued, “why do you not turn the scoundrels over to the authorities? They should make quick work of them.”
“For your own safety,” he continued, “why don’t you hand those criminals over to the authorities? They should deal with them quickly.”
She hesitated for a moment before replying.
She paused for a second before answering.
“There are two reasons,” she said finally. “One of them it is that keeps the count from doing that very thing. The other, my real reason for fearing to expose them, I have never told—only Rokoff and I know it. I wonder,” and then she paused, looking intently at him for a long time.
“There are two reasons,” she finally said. “One of them is what stops the count from doing that very thing. The other, my true reason for being afraid to reveal them, I’ve never shared—only Rokoff and I know it. I wonder,” and then she paused, looking at him intently for a long time.
“And what do you wonder?” he asked, smiling.
“And what are you wondering about?” he asked, smiling.
“I was wondering why it is that I want to tell you the thing that I have not dared tell even to my husband. I believe that you would understand, and that you could tell me the right course to follow. I believe that you would not judge me too harshly.”
“I’m trying to figure out why I want to share something with you that I haven’t even shared with my husband. I trust that you would understand and could guide me on what to do next. I think you wouldn’t judge me too harshly.”
“I fear that I should prove a very poor judge, madame,” Tarzan replied, “for if you had been guilty of murder I should say that the victim should be grateful to have met so sweet a fate.”
“I’m afraid I wouldn’t be a very good judge, ma’am,” Tarzan replied, “because if you had committed murder, I’d say the victim should be grateful to have met such a sweet fate.”
“Oh, dear, no,” she expostulated; “it is not so terrible as that. But first let me tell you the reason the count has for not prosecuting these men; then, if I can hold my courage, I shall tell you the real reason that I dare not. The first is that Nikolas Rokoff is my brother. We are Russians. Nikolas has been a bad man since I can remember. He was cashiered from the Russian army, in which he held a captaincy. There was a scandal for a time, but after a while it was partially forgotten, and my father obtained a position for him in the secret service.
“Oh, no,” she exclaimed; “it’s not that bad. But first, let me tell you why the count isn’t going after these guys; then, if I can gather my courage, I’ll share the real reason I can’t. The first reason is that Nikolas Rokoff is my brother. We’re Russians. Nikolas has been trouble as long as I can remember. He was kicked out of the Russian army, where he was a captain. There was a scandal for a while, but eventually, it was mostly forgotten, and my father got him a job in the secret service.”
“There have been many terrible crimes laid at Nikolas’ door, but he has always managed to escape punishment. Of late he has accomplished it by trumped-up evidence convicting his victims of treason against the czar, and the Russian police, who are always only too ready to fasten guilt of this nature upon any and all, have accepted his version and exonerated him.”
“There have been many awful crimes blamed on Nikolas, but he has always managed to avoid punishment. Recently, he has done this by fabricating evidence to accuse his victims of treason against the czar, and the Russian police, who are always quick to pin this kind of guilt on anyone and everyone, have accepted his story and cleared him of blame.”
“Have not his attempted crimes against you and your husband forfeited whatever rights the bonds of kinship might have accorded him?” asked Tarzan. “The fact that you are his sister has not deterred him from seeking to besmirch your honor. You owe him no loyalty, madame.”
“Have his attempted crimes against you and your husband taken away any rights the bonds of family might have given him?” asked Tarzan. “The fact that you are his sister hasn’t stopped him from trying to tarnish your honor. You owe him no loyalty, madam.”
“Ah, but there is that other reason. If I owe him no loyalty though he be my brother, I cannot so easily disavow the fear I hold him in because of a certain episode in my life of which he is cognizant.
“Ah, but there’s another reason. Even if I don’t owe him loyalty just because he’s my brother, I can’t easily deny the fear I have of him due to a certain event in my life that he knows about.”
“I might as well tell you all,” she resumed after a pause, “for I see that it is in my heart to tell you sooner or later. I was educated in a convent. While there I met a man whom I supposed to be a gentleman. I knew little or nothing about men and less about love. I got it into my foolish head that I loved this man, and at his urgent request I ran away with him. We were to have been married.
“I might as well tell you everything,” she continued after a pause, “because I can’t help but feel that I need to share it with you eventually. I was raised in a convent. While I was there, I met a man whom I thought was a gentleman. I knew very little about men and even less about love. I foolishly convinced myself that I loved this man, and at his insistence, I ran away with him. We were supposed to get married.”
“I was with him just three hours. All in the daytime and in public places—railroad stations and upon a train. When we reached our destination where we were to have been married, two officers stepped up to my escort as we descended from the train, and placed him under arrest. They took me also, but when I had told my story they did not detain me, other than to send me back to the convent under the care of a matron. It seemed that the man who had wooed me was no gentleman at all, but a deserter from the army as well as a fugitive from civil justice. He had a police record in nearly every country in Europe.
“I was with him for just three hours—completely in public places, like train stations and on a train. When we got to our destination where we were supposed to get married, two officers approached my escort as we were getting off the train and arrested him. They also took me in, but after I explained my situation, they let me go, only sending me back to the convent with a matron. It turned out that the man who had pursued me was no gentleman at all; he was a deserter from the army and also running from civil justice. He had a criminal record in almost every country in Europe.”
“The matter was hushed up by the authorities of the convent. Not even my parents knew of it. But Nikolas met the man afterward, and learned the whole story. Now he threatens to tell the count if I do not do just as he wishes me to.”
“The authorities of the convent kept the matter silent. Not even my parents knew about it. But Nikolas met the man later and found out the whole story. Now he’s threatening to tell the count if I don’t do exactly what he wants me to.”
Tarzan laughed. “You are still but a little girl. The story that you have told me cannot reflect in any way upon your reputation, and were you not a little girl at heart you would know it. Go to your husband tonight, and tell him the whole story, just as you have told it to me. Unless I am much mistaken he will laugh at you for your fears, and take immediate steps to put that precious brother of yours in prison where he belongs.”
Tarzan laughed. “You’re still just a little girl. The story you told me doesn’t affect your reputation at all, and if you weren’t so much a little girl at heart, you’d realize that. Go to your husband tonight and share the whole story, just like you did with me. Unless I’m wrong, he’ll laugh at your worries and quickly do what’s necessary to lock up that precious brother of yours where he belongs.”
“I only wish that I dared,” she said; “but I am afraid. I learned early to fear men. First my father, then Nikolas, then the fathers in the convent. Nearly all my friends fear their husbands—why should I not fear mine?”
“I just wish I had the courage,” she said; “but I’m scared. I learned to fear men from a young age. First my father, then Nikolas, and then the men in the convent. Most of my friends are afraid of their husbands—why shouldn’t I be afraid of mine?”
“It does not seem right that women should fear men,” said Tarzan, an expression of puzzlement on his face. “I am better acquainted with the jungle folk, and there it is more often the other way around, except among the black men, and they to my mind are in most ways lower in the scale than the beasts. No, I cannot understand why civilized women should fear men, the beings that are created to protect them. I should hate to think that any woman feared me.”
“It doesn’t seem right for women to be afraid of men,” said Tarzan, a puzzled expression on his face. “I know the jungle people better, and there it’s usually the other way around, except with the black men, who I think are in many ways lower than the beasts. No, I can’t understand why civilized women should be afraid of men, who are supposed to protect them. I’d hate to think that any woman was afraid of me.”
“I do not think that any woman would fear you, my friend,” said Olga de Coude softly. “I have known you but a short while, yet though it may seem foolish to say it, you are the only man I have ever known whom I think that I should never fear—it is strange, too, for you are very strong. I wondered at the ease with which you handled Nikolas and Paulvitch that night in my cabin. It was marvellous.” As Tarzan was leaving her a short time later he wondered a little at the clinging pressure of her hand at parting, and the firm insistence with which she exacted a promise from him that he would call again on the morrow.
“I don’t think any woman would be afraid of you, my friend,” Olga de Coude said gently. “I’ve only known you for a short time, but even though it might sound silly, you’re the only man I’ve ever met that I believe I’d never be afraid of—it’s odd, too, because you’re very strong. I was amazed at how easily you handled Nikolas and Paulvitch that night in my cabin. It was incredible.” As Tarzan was leaving her a little later, he noticed the way her hand lingered on his at parting and the firm insistence with which she made him promise to come back the next day.
The memory of her half-veiled eyes and perfect lips as she had stood smiling up into his face as he bade her good-by remained with him for the balance of the day. Olga de Coude was a very beautiful woman, and Tarzan of the Apes a very lonely young man, with a heart in him that was in need of the doctoring that only a woman may provide.
The memory of her partially hidden eyes and perfect lips as she smiled up at him while he said goodbye stayed with him for the rest of the day. Olga de Coude was an exceptionally beautiful woman, and Tarzan of the Apes was a very lonely young man, with a heart that needed the kind of healing that only a woman can offer.
As the countess turned back into the room after Tarzan’s departure, she found herself face to face with Nikolas Rokoff.
As the countess turned back into the room after Tarzan left, she found herself face to face with Nikolas Rokoff.
“How long have you been here?” she cried, shrinking away from him.
“How long have you been here?” she yelled, backing away from him.
“Since before your lover came,” he answered, with a nasty leer.
“Since before your partner showed up,” he replied, with a mean smirk.
“Stop!” she commanded. “How dare you say such a thing to me—your sister!”
“Stop!” she ordered. “How could you say something like that to me—your sister?”
“Well, my dear Olga, if he is not your lover, accept my apologies; but it is no fault of yours that he is not. Had he one-tenth the knowledge of women that I have you would be in his arms this minute. He is a stupid fool, Olga. Why, your every word and act was an open invitation to him, and he had not the sense to see it.”
“Well, my dear Olga, if he isn't your lover, I apologize; but it's not your fault that he isn't. If he had even a fraction of the understanding of women that I have, you would be in his arms right now. He is such a foolish idiot, Olga. Every word and action of yours was an open invitation to him, and he just didn't have the brains to notice it.”
The woman put her hands to her ears.
The woman plugged her ears.
“I will not listen. You are wicked to say such things as that. No matter what you may threaten me with, you know that I am a good woman. After tonight you will not dare to annoy me, for I shall tell Raoul all. He will understand, and then, Monsieur Nikolas, beware!”
“I won’t listen to you. It's wrong for you to say things like that. No matter what threats you throw my way, you know I'm a good person. After tonight, you won't have the guts to bother me again, because I'm going to tell Raoul everything. He'll get it, and then, Monsieur Nikolas, watch out!”
“You shall tell him nothing,” said Rokoff. “I have this affair now, and with the help of one of your servants whom I may trust it will lack nothing in the telling when the time comes that the details of the sworn evidence shall be poured into your husband’s ears. The other affair served its purpose well—we now have something tangible to work on, Olga. A real affair—and you a trusted wife. Shame, Olga,” and the brute laughed.
"You won't tell him anything," Rokoff said. "I’m handling this now, and with the help of one of your trusted servants, it will be fully covered when the time comes for your husband to hear the details of the sworn testimony. The previous situation worked out well—we now have something solid to work with, Olga. A real scandal—and you're a loyal wife. What a shame, Olga," and he laughed cruelly.
So the countess told her count nothing, and matters were worse than they had been. From a vague fear her mind was transferred to a very tangible one. It may be, too, that conscience helped to enlarge it out of all proportion.
So the countess told her count nothing, and things were worse than they had been. From a vague fear, her mind shifted to a very real one. It’s possible, too, that her conscience helped to blow it all out of proportion.
Chapter V
The Plot That Failed
For a month Tarzan was a regular and very welcome devotee at the shrine of the beautiful Countess de Coude. Often he met other members of the select little coterie that dropped in for tea of an afternoon. More often Olga found devices that would give her an hour of Tarzan alone.
For a month, Tarzan was a regular and very welcomed visitor at the beautiful Countess de Coude's place. He often met other members of the exclusive little group that came by for tea in the afternoon. More frequently, Olga found ways to have an hour alone with Tarzan.
For a time she had been frightened by what Nikolas had insinuated. She had not thought of this big, young man as anything more than friend, but with the suggestion implanted by the evil words of her brother she had grown to speculate much upon the strange force which seemed to attract her toward the gray-eyed stranger. She did not wish to love him, nor did she wish his love.
For a while, she had been scared by what Nikolas had suggested. She had only seen this tall, young man as a friend, but with the suggestion planted by her brother’s cruel words, she began to wonder about the strange pull that seemed to draw her to the gray-eyed stranger. She didn’t want to love him, nor did she want his love.
She was much younger than her husband, and without having realized it she had been craving the haven of a friendship with one nearer her own age. Twenty is shy in exchanging confidences with forty. Tarzan was but two years her senior. He could understand her, she felt. Then he was clean and honorable and chivalrous. She was not afraid of him. That she could trust him she had felt instinctively from the first.
She was much younger than her husband, and without even realizing it, she had been longing for a friendship with someone closer to her age. A twenty-year-old feels shy about sharing secrets with someone who's forty. Tarzan was only two years older than her. She felt he could understand her. Plus, he was clean, honorable, and chivalrous. She wasn’t scared of him. From the very beginning, she instinctively felt that she could trust him.
From a distance Rokoff had watched this growing intimacy with malicious glee. Ever since he had learned that Tarzan knew that he was a Russian spy there had been added to his hatred for the ape-man a great fear that he would expose him. He was but waiting now until the moment was propitious for a master stroke. He wanted to rid himself forever of Tarzan, and at the same time reap an ample revenge for the humiliations and defeats that he had suffered at his hands.
From a distance, Rokoff had watched this developing closeness with malicious delight. Ever since he found out that Tarzan knew he was a Russian spy, his hatred for the ape-man had grown, accompanied by a deep fear that Tarzan would reveal him. He was just waiting for the right moment to make his master plan happen. He wanted to eliminate Tarzan once and for all while also getting plenty of revenge for the humiliations and defeats he had faced because of him.
Tarzan was nearer to contentment than he had been since the peace and tranquility of his jungle had been broken in upon by the advent of the marooned Porter party. He enjoyed the pleasant social intercourse with Olga’s friends, while the friendship which had sprung up between the fair countess and himself was a source of never-ending delight. It broke in upon and dispersed his gloomy thoughts, and served as a balm to his lacerated heart.
Tarzan felt more content than he had in a long time since his peaceful jungle life was disrupted by the arrival of the marooned Porter party. He enjoyed the nice social interactions with Olga's friends, and the friendship that had developed between him and the beautiful countess brought him constant joy. It interrupted his dark thoughts and healed his wounded heart.
Sometimes D’Arnot accompanied him on his visits to the De Coude home, for he had long known both Olga and the count. Occasionally De Coude dropped in, but the multitudinous affairs of his official position and the never-ending demands of politics kept him from home usually until late at night.
Sometimes D’Arnot went with him on his visits to the De Coude home, since he had known both Olga and the count for a long time. Occasionally, De Coude would stop by, but the endless responsibilities of his official position and the constant demands of politics usually kept him away from home until late at night.
Rokoff spied upon Tarzan almost constantly, waiting for the time that he should call at the De Coude palace at night, but in this he was doomed to disappointment. On several occasions Tarzan accompanied the countess to her home after the opera, but he invariably left her at the entrance—much to the disgust of the lady’s devoted brother.
Rokoff kept a close watch on Tarzan almost all the time, waiting for the moment he would visit the De Coude palace at night, but he was bound to be let down. On several occasions, Tarzan took the countess home after the opera, but he always dropped her off at the entrance—much to the annoyance of the lady’s devoted brother.
Finding that it seemed impossible to trap Tarzan through any voluntary act of his own, Rokoff and Paulvitch put their heads together to hatch a plan that would trap the ape-man in all the circumstantial evidence of a compromising position.
Realizing that it was nearly impossible to catch Tarzan through any actions he might take on his own, Rokoff and Paulvitch teamed up to come up with a scheme that would implicate the ape-man in a situation full of compromising evidence.
For days they watched the papers as well as the movements of De Coude and Tarzan. At length they were rewarded. A morning paper made brief mention of a smoker that was to be given on the following evening by the German minister. De Coude’s name was among those of the invited guests. If he attended this meant that he would be absent from his home until after midnight.
For days, they kept an eye on the news and the activities of De Coude and Tarzan. Finally, they got a break. A morning newspaper briefly noted that the German minister was hosting an event the following evening. De Coude’s name was listed among the guests. If he went, it meant he wouldn’t be home until after midnight.
On the night of the banquet Paulvitch waited at the curb before the residence of the German minister, where he could scan the face of each guest that arrived. He had not long to wait before De Coude descended from his car and passed him. That was enough. Paulvitch hastened back to his quarters, where Rokoff awaited him. There they waited until after eleven, then Paulvitch took down the receiver of their telephone. He called a number.
On the night of the party, Paulvitch stood at the curb in front of the German minister's residence, where he could see the faces of each guest as they arrived. He didn't have to wait long before De Coude got out of his car and walked past him. That was all he needed. Paulvitch quickly returned to his place, where Rokoff was waiting. They stayed there until after eleven, then Paulvitch picked up their phone. He dialed a number.
“The apartments of Lieutenant D’Arnot?” he asked, when he had obtained his connection.
“The apartments of Lieutenant D’Arnot?” he asked, after he had gotten through.
“A message for Monsieur Tarzan, if he will be so kind as to step to the telephone.”
“A message for Mr. Tarzan, if he would please step to the phone.”
For a minute there was silence.
For a moment, everything was quiet.
“Monsieur Tarzan?”
“Mr. Tarzan?”
“Ah, yes, monsieur, this is François—in the service of the Countess de Coude. Possibly monsieur does poor François the honor to recall him—yes?
“Ah, yes, sir, this is François—in the service of the Countess de Coude. Perhaps you might remember poor François—yes?”
“Yes, monsieur. I have a message, an urgent message from the countess. She asks that you hasten to her at once—she is in trouble, monsieur.
“Yes, sir. I have an urgent message from the countess. She asks that you come to her right away—she's in trouble, sir.”
“No, monsieur, poor François does not know. Shall I tell madame that monsieur will be here shortly?
“No, sir, poor François doesn’t know. Should I let madam know that sir will be here shortly?”
“Thank you, monsieur. The good God will bless you.”
“Thank you, sir. May God bless you.”
Paulvitch hung up the receiver and turned to grin at Rokoff.
Paulvitch hung up the phone and turned to smile at Rokoff.
“It will take him thirty minutes to get there. If you reach the German minister’s in fifteen, De Coude should arrive at his home in about forty-five minutes. It all depends upon whether the fool will remain fifteen minutes after he finds that a trick has been played upon him; but unless I am mistaken Olga will be loath to let him go in so short a time as that. Here is the note for De Coude. Hasten!”
“It will take him thirty minutes to get there. If you get to the German minister's in fifteen, De Coude should get home in about forty-five minutes. It all depends on whether the idiot will stick around for fifteen minutes after he realizes someone tricked him; but unless I'm wrong, Olga won’t want to let him leave that quickly. Here’s the note for De Coude. Hurry!”
Paulvitch lost no time in reaching the German minister’s. At the door he handed the note to a footman. “This is for the Count de Coude. It is very urgent. You must see that it is placed in his hands at once,” and he dropped a piece of silver into the willing hand of the servant. Then he returned to his quarters.
Paulvitch wasted no time getting to the German minister’s place. At the door, he gave a note to a footman. “This is for Count de Coude. It’s very urgent. You need to make sure it gets into his hands right away,” he said, slipping a coin into the servant’s eager palm. Then he went back to his room.
A moment later De Coude was apologizing to his host as he tore open the envelope. What he read left his face white and his hand trembling.
A moment later, De Coude was apologizing to his host as he tore open the envelope. What he read left his face pale and his hand shaking.
MONSIEUR LE COUNT DE COUDE:
One who wishes to save the honor of your name takes this means to warn you
that the sanctity of your home is this minute in jeopardy.
A certain man who for months has been a constant visitor there during your
absence is now with your wife. If you go at once to your countess’
boudoir you will find them together.
MONSIEUR LE COUNT DE COUDE:
Someone who wants to protect your reputation is letting you know that the safety of your home is at risk right now.
A certain man, who has been a regular visitor during your time away, is now with your wife. If you go straight to your countess’ boudoir, you will find them together.
A FRIEND.
A Friend.
Twenty minutes after Paulvitch had called Tarzan, Rokoff obtained a connection with Olga’s private line. Her maid answered the telephone which was in the countess’ boudoir.
Twenty minutes after Paulvitch called Tarzan, Rokoff managed to get through to Olga's private line. Her maid picked up the phone, which was in the countess's bedroom.
“But madame has retired,” said the maid, in answer to Rokoff’s request to speak with her.
“But ma'am has gone to bed,” said the maid, in response to Rokoff’s request to speak with her.
“This is a very urgent message for the countess’ ears alone,” replied Rokoff. “Tell her that she must arise and slip something about her and come to the telephone. I shall call up again in five minutes.” Then he hung up his receiver. A moment later Paulvitch entered.
“This is a very urgent message meant only for the countess,” replied Rokoff. “Tell her she needs to get up, put something on, and come to the phone. I’ll call back in five minutes.” Then he hung up the receiver. A moment later, Paulvitch entered.
“The count has the message?” asked Rokoff.
“The count has the message?” Rokoff asked.
“He should be on his way to his home by now,” replied Paulvitch.
“He should be on his way home by now,” replied Paulvitch.
“Good! My lady will be sitting in her boudoir, very much in negligee, about now. In a minute the faithful Jacques will escort Monsieur Tarzan into her presence without announcing him. It will take a few minutes for explanations. Olga will look very alluring in the filmy creation that is her night-dress, and the clinging robe which but half conceals the charms that the former does not conceal at all. Olga will be surprised, but not displeased.
“Great! My lady will be sitting in her room, likely in her nightgown, right about now. In just a moment, the loyal Jacques will bring Monsieur Tarzan in to meet her without announcing him. There will be a few minutes of explanations. Olga will look very charming in her sheer nightdress, and the clingy robe that only partially covers what the nightdress doesn’t hide at all. Olga will be surprised, but not unhappy.”
“If there is a drop of red blood in the man the count will break in upon a very pretty love scene in about fifteen minutes from now. I think we have planned marvelously, my dear Alexis. Let us go out and drink to the very good health of Monsieur Tarzan in some of old Plancon’s unparalleled absinth; not forgetting that the Count de Coude is one of the best swordsmen in Paris, and by far the best shot in all France.”
“If there’s a drop of red blood in that guy, the count will interrupt a lovely love scene in about fifteen minutes. I think we’ve planned everything wonderfully, my dear Alexis. Let’s go out and toast to the great health of Monsieur Tarzan with some of Plancon’s amazing absinthe; and let’s not forget that the Count de Coude is one of the best swordsmen in Paris, and definitely the best shot in all of France.”
When Tarzan reached Olga’s, Jacques was awaiting him at the entrance.
When Tarzan arrived at Olga's, Jacques was waiting for him at the entrance.
“This way, Monsieur,” he said, and led the way up the broad, marble staircase. In another moment he had opened a door, and, drawing aside a heavy curtain, obsequiously bowed Tarzan into a dimly lighted apartment. Then Jacques vanished.
“This way, sir,” he said, and led the way up the wide marble staircase. In a moment, he opened a door and, pulling aside a heavy curtain, respectfully ushered Tarzan into a softly lit room. Then Jacques disappeared.
Across the room from him Tarzan saw Olga seated before a little desk on which stood her telephone. She was tapping impatiently upon the polished surface of the desk. She had not heard him enter.
Across the room from him, Tarzan saw Olga sitting at a small desk with her telephone on it. She was tapping her fingers impatiently on the smooth surface of the desk. She hadn’t noticed him walk in.
“Olga,” he said, “what is wrong?”
"Olga," he said, "what's up?"
She turned toward him with a little cry of alarm.
She turned to him with a small gasp of surprise.
“Jean!” she cried. “What are you doing here? Who admitted you? What does it mean?”
“Jean!” she yelled. “What are you doing here? Who let you in? What does this mean?”
Tarzan was thunderstruck, but in an instant he realized a part of the truth.
Tarzan was shocked, but in a moment he understood part of the truth.
“Then you did not send for me, Olga?”
“Then you didn’t call for me, Olga?”
“Send for you at this time of night? Mon Dieu! Jean, do you think that I am quite mad?”
“Send for you at this time of night? My God! Jean, do you think I’m completely crazy?”
“François telephoned me to come at once; that you were in trouble and wanted me.”
“François called me to come right away; that you were in trouble and needed me.”
“François? Who in the world is François?”
“François? Who on earth is François?”
“He said that he was in your service. He spoke as though I should recall the fact.”
“He said he was working for you. He spoke like I should remember that.”
“There is no one by that name in my employ. Some one has played a joke upon you, Jean,” and Olga laughed.
“There’s no one by that name working for me. Someone has played a prank on you, Jean,” and Olga laughed.
“I fear that it may be a most sinister ‘joke,’ Olga,” he replied. “There is more back of it than humor.”
“I’m worried that this might be a really twisted ‘joke,’ Olga,” he said. “There’s more to it than just humor.”
“What do you mean? You do not think that—”
“What do you mean? You don't think that—”
“Where is the count?” he interrupted.
"Where's the count?" he asked.
“At the German ambassador’s.”
“At the German ambassador’s residence.”
“This is another move by your estimable brother. Tomorrow the count will hear of it. He will question the servants. Everything will point to—to what Rokoff wishes the count to think.”
“This is another move by your commendable brother. Tomorrow the count will hear about it. He will question the servants. Everything will lead to what Rokoff wants the count to believe.”
“The scoundrel!” cried Olga. She had arisen, and come close to Tarzan, where she stood looking up into his face. She was very frightened. In her eyes was an expression that the hunter sees in those of a poor, terrified doe—puzzled—questioning. She trembled, and to steady herself raised her hands to his broad shoulders. “What shall we do, Jean?” she whispered. “It is terrible. Tomorrow all Paris will read of it—he will see to that.”
“The scoundrel!” Olga exclaimed. She had stood up and moved closer to Tarzan, looking up into his face. She was really scared. In her eyes was the same look a hunter sees in a frightened deer—confused and questioning. She shook with fear, and to steady herself, she placed her hands on his broad shoulders. “What are we going to do, Jean?” she whispered. “This is awful. Tomorrow, all of Paris will read about it—he’ll make sure of that.”
Her look, her attitude, her words were eloquent of the age-old appeal of defenseless woman to her natural protector—man. Tarzan took one of the warm little hands that lay on his breast in his own strong one. The act was quite involuntary, and almost equally so was the instinct of protection that threw a sheltering arm around the girl’s shoulders.
Her appearance, her demeanor, her words clearly expressed the timeless appeal of a vulnerable woman to her natural protector—man. Tarzan took one of the warm little hands resting on his chest in his own strong grip. The gesture was almost instinctive, just like the protective instinct that led him to wrap a comforting arm around the girl’s shoulders.
The result was electrical. Never before had he been so close to her. In startled guilt they looked suddenly into each other’s eyes, and where Olga de Coude should have been strong she was weak, for she crept closer into the man’s arms, and clasped her own about his neck. And Tarzan of the Apes? He took the panting figure into his mighty arms, and covered the hot lips with kisses.
The result was electric. Never before had he been so close to her. In startled guilt, they suddenly looked into each other’s eyes, and where Olga de Coude should have been strong, she became weak, as she moved closer into the man’s arms and wrapped her own around his neck. And Tarzan of the Apes? He took the breathless figure into his powerful arms and covered her warm lips with kisses.
Raoul de Coude made hurried excuses to his host after he had read the note handed him by the ambassador’s butler. Never afterward could he recall the nature of the excuses he made. Everything was quite a blur to him up to the time that he stood on the threshold of his own home. Then he became very cool, moving quietly and with caution. For some inexplicable reason Jacques had the door open before he was halfway to the steps. It did not strike him at the time as being unusual, though afterward he remarked it.
Raoul de Coude quickly made excuses to his host after reading the note given to him by the ambassador’s butler. He could never remember exactly what he said. Everything felt like a blur until he reached the doorway of his own home. Then he became calm, moving quietly and carefully. For some unknown reason, Jacques had the door open before he was even halfway to the steps. At the moment, it didn’t seem strange to him, though he thought about it later.
Very softly he tiptoed up the stairs and along the gallery to the door of his wife’s boudoir. In his hand was a heavy walking stick—in his heart, murder.
Very quietly, he walked up the stairs and along the hallway to the door of his wife's dressing room. In his hand was a heavy walking stick—in his heart, murder.
Olga was the first to see him. With a horrified shriek she tore herself from Tarzan’s arms, and the ape-man turned just in time to ward with his arm a terrific blow that De Coude had aimed at his head. Once, twice, three times the heavy stick fell with lightning rapidity, and each blow aided in the transition of the ape-man back to the primordial.
Olga was the first to spot him. With a terrified scream, she ripped herself from Tarzan’s arms, and the ape-man turned just in time to block a massive blow that De Coude had aimed at his head with his arm. Once, twice, three times the heavy stick came down quickly, and each strike pushed the ape-man back to his primal instincts.
With the low, guttural snarl of the bull ape he sprang for the Frenchman. The great stick was torn from his grasp and broken in two as though it had been matchwood, to be flung aside as the now infuriated beast charged for his adversary’s throat. Olga de Coude stood a horrified spectator of the terrible scene which ensued during the next brief moment, then she sprang to where Tarzan was murdering her husband—choking the life from him—shaking him as a terrier might shake a rat.
With a low, guttural snarl, the bull ape lunged at the Frenchman. The large stick was ripped from his hands and snapped in two like it was nothing, tossed aside as the now enraged beast went for his opponent's throat. Olga de Coude watched in horror as the brutal scene unfolded in the next few moments, and then she rushed to where Tarzan was killing her husband—strangling him—shaking him like a terrier shakes a rat.
Frantically she tore at his great hands. “Mother of God!” she cried. “You are killing him, you are killing him! Oh, Jean, you are killing my husband!”
Frantically, she pulled at his strong hands. “Oh my God!” she cried. “You’re killing him, you’re killing him! Oh, Jean, you’re killing my husband!”
Tarzan was deaf with rage. Suddenly he hurled the body to the floor, and, placing his foot upon the upturned breast, raised his head. Then through the palace of the Count de Coude rang the awesome challenge of the bull ape that has made a kill. From cellar to attic the horrid sound searched out the servants, and left them blanched and trembling. The woman in the room sank to her knees beside the body of her husband, and prayed.
Tarzan was furious. Suddenly he threw the body to the floor and, placing his foot on the exposed chest, lifted his head. Then the terrifying roar of the victorious bull ape echoed through the palace of Count de Coude. From the cellar to the attic, the chilling sound reached the servants, leaving them pale and shaking. The woman in the room dropped to her knees beside her husband's body and prayed.
Slowly the red mist faded from before Tarzan’s eyes. Things began to take form—he was regaining the perspective of civilized man. His eyes fell upon the figure of the kneeling woman. “Olga,” he whispered. She looked up, expecting to see the maniacal light of murder in the eyes above her. Instead she saw sorrow and contrition.
Slowly, the red haze lifted from Tarzan's vision. Things started to come into focus—he was getting back the viewpoint of a civilized person. His gaze landed on the figure of the kneeling woman. “Olga,” he whispered. She looked up, anticipating to see the frenzied look of a killer in the eyes above her. Instead, she saw sadness and remorse.
“Oh, Jean!” she cried. “See what you have done. He was my husband. I loved him, and you have killed him.”
“Oh, Jean!” she exclaimed. “Look at what you've done. He was my husband. I loved him, and you killed him.”
Very gently Tarzan raised the limp form of the Count de Coude and bore it to a couch. Then he put his ear to the man’s breast.
Very gently, Tarzan lifted the lifeless body of Count de Coude and carried it to a couch. Then he put his ear to the man’s chest.
“Some brandy, Olga,” he said.
"Some brandy, Olga," he said.
She brought it, and together they forced it between his lips. Presently a faint gasp came from the white lips. The head turned, and De Coude groaned.
She brought it, and together they pushed it between his lips. Soon, a faint gasp escaped from his pale lips. His head turned, and De Coude groaned.
“He will not die,” said Tarzan. “Thank God!”
“He's not going to die,” said Tarzan. “Thank God!”
“Why did you do it, Jean?” she asked.
“Why did you do it, Jean?” she asked.
“I do not know. He struck me, and I went mad. I have seen the apes of my tribe do the same thing. I have never told you my story, Olga. It would have been better had you known it—this might not have happened. I never saw my father. The only mother I knew was a ferocious she-ape. Until I was fifteen I had never seen a human being. I was twenty before I saw a white man. A little more than a year ago I was a naked beast of prey in an African jungle.
“I don’t know. He hit me, and I lost it. I’ve seen the apes in my tribe do the same thing. I’ve never shared my story with you, Olga. It would’ve been better if you had known it—this might not have happened. I never met my father. The only mother I had was a fierce she-ape. Until I was fifteen, I had never seen a human being. I was twenty when I first saw a white man. Just over a year ago, I was a wild beast in an African jungle.”
“Do not judge me too harshly. Two years is too short a time in which to attempt to work the change in an individual that it has taken countless ages to accomplish in the white race.”
“Don’t judge me too harshly. Two years is a very short time to try to change someone when it has taken many ages to achieve that in the white race.”
“I do not judge at all, Jean. The fault is mine. You must go now—he must not find you here when he regains consciousness. Good-by.”
“I don’t judge you at all, Jean. The fault is mine. You need to go now—he must not see you here when he wakes up. Goodbye.”
It was a sorrowful Tarzan who walked with bowed head from the palace of the Count de Coude.
It was a sad Tarzan who walked with his head down from the palace of Count de Coude.
Once outside his thoughts took definite shape, to the end that twenty minutes later he entered a police station not far from the Rue Maule. Here he soon found one of the officers with whom he had had the encounter several weeks previous. The policeman was genuinely glad to see again the man who had so roughly handled him. After a moment of conversation Tarzan asked if he had ever heard of Nikolas Rokoff or Alexis Paulvitch.
Once outside, his thoughts became clear, and twenty minutes later he walked into a police station not far from Rue Maule. There, he quickly spotted one of the officers he had met a few weeks earlier. The policeman was genuinely happy to see the man who had so roughly dealt with him. After a brief chat, Tarzan asked if he had ever heard of Nikolas Rokoff or Alexis Paulvitch.
“Very often, indeed, monsieur. Each has a police record, and while there is nothing charged against them now, we make it a point to know pretty well where they may be found should the occasion demand. It is only the same precaution that we take with every known criminal. Why does monsieur ask?”
“Very often, indeed, sir. Each one has a police record, and while there’s nothing currently charged against them, we make it a point to know their whereabouts in case the occasion arises. It’s just the same precaution we take with every known criminal. Why do you ask, sir?”
“They are known to me,” replied Tarzan. “I wish to see Monsieur Rokoff on a little matter of business. If you can direct me to his lodgings I shall appreciate it.”
“They're familiar to me,” replied Tarzan. “I’d like to meet with Monsieur Rokoff about a small business matter. If you could point me to his place, I’d really appreciate it.”
A few minutes later he bade the policeman adieu, and, with a slip of paper in his pocket bearing a certain address in a semirespectable quarter, he walked briskly toward the nearest taxi stand.
A few minutes later, he said goodbye to the policeman and, with a piece of paper in his pocket showing a particular address in a somewhat decent neighborhood, he walked quickly toward the nearest taxi stand.
Rokoff and Paulvitch had returned to their rooms, and were sitting talking over the probable outcome of the evening’s events. They had telephoned to the offices of two of the morning papers from which they momentarily expected representatives to hear the first report of the scandal that was to stir social Paris on the morrow.
Rokoff and Paulvitch had gone back to their rooms and were discussing what might happen after the evening’s events. They had called the offices of two morning papers, anticipating that reporters would soon arrive to cover the scandal that was set to shake up social Paris the next day.
A heavy step sounded on the stairway. “Ah, but these newspaper men are prompt,” exclaimed Rokoff, and as a knock fell upon the door of their room: “Enter, monsieur.”
A heavy step echoed on the stairs. “Wow, these newspaper guys are quick,” Rokoff exclaimed, and as a knock came at their room door: “Come in, sir.”
The smile of welcome froze upon the Russian’s face as he looked into the hard, gray eyes of his visitor.
The welcoming smile faded on the Russian's face as he gazed into the visitor's cold, gray eyes.
“Name of a name!” he shouted, springing to his feet, “What brings you here!”
“Name of a name!” he yelled, jumping to his feet, “What brings you here?”
“Sit down!” said Tarzan, so low that the men could barely catch the words, but in a tone that brought Rokoff to his chair, and kept Paulvitch in his.
“Sit down!” Tarzan said in a low voice that the men could barely hear, but it was enough to make Rokoff take a seat and keep Paulvitch in his.
“You know what has brought me here,” he continued, in the same low tone. “It should be to kill you, but because you are Olga de Coude’s brother I shall not do that—now.
“You know what brought me here,” he continued, in the same low tone. “It should be to kill you, but since you’re Olga de Coude’s brother, I won’t do that—at least not now."
“I shall give you a chance for your lives. Paulvitch does not count much—he is merely a stupid, foolish little tool, and so I shall not kill him so long as I permit you to live. Before I leave you two alive in this room you will have done two things. The first will be to write a full confession of your connection with tonight’s plot—and sign it.
“I’m giving you a chance to save your lives. Paulvitch doesn’t matter much—he’s just a stupid, foolish little pawn, and I won’t kill him as long as I let you live. Before I leave you two alive in this room, you will have to do two things. The first is to write a complete confession of your involvement in tonight’s plot—and sign it.
“The second will be to promise me upon pain of death that you will permit no word of this affair to get into the newspapers. If you do not do both, neither of you will be alive when I pass next through that doorway. Do you understand?” And, without waiting for a reply: “Make haste; there is ink before you, and paper and a pen.”
“The second thing is that you need to promise me, under threat of death, that you won’t let a single word about this matter get into the newspapers. If you don’t do both, neither of you will be alive when I walk through that door again. Do you get it?” And without waiting for an answer: “Hurry up; there’s ink, paper, and a pen right in front of you.”
Rokoff assumed a truculent air, attempting by bravado to show how little he feared Tarzan’s threats. An instant later he felt the ape-man’s steel fingers at his throat, and Paulvitch, who attempted to dodge them and reach the door, was lifted completely off the floor, and hurled senseless into a corner. When Rokoff commenced to blacken about the face Tarzan released his hold and shoved the fellow back into his chair. After a moment of coughing Rokoff sat sullenly glaring at the man standing opposite him. Presently Paulvitch came to himself, and limped painfully back to his chair at Tarzan’s command.
Rokoff put on a tough act, trying to show how little he was scared of Tarzan’s threats. In an instant, he felt the ape-man’s strong grip around his throat, while Paulvitch tried to dodge and make a break for the door. Instead, he was lifted off the ground and thrown senseless into a corner. When Rokoff started to turn dark around the face, Tarzan let go and pushed him back into his chair. After a moment of coughing, Rokoff sat there sulking, glaring at the man in front of him. Eventually, Paulvitch regained his senses and limped painfully back to his chair at Tarzan’s command.
“Now write,” said the ape-man. “If it is necessary to handle you again I shall not be so lenient.”
“Now write,” said the ape-man. “If I have to deal with you again, I won’t be so easy on you.”
Rokoff picked up a pen and commenced to write.
Rokoff picked up a pen and started to write.
“See that you omit no detail, and that you mention every name,” cautioned Tarzan.
“Make sure you don’t leave out any details, and that you mention every name,” cautioned Tarzan.
Presently there was a knock at the door. “Enter,” said Tarzan.
Presently, there was a knock at the door. “Come in,” said Tarzan.
A dapper young man came in. “I am from the Matin,” he announced. “I understand that Monsieur Rokoff has a story for me.”
A stylish young man walked in. “I’m from the Matin,” he said. “I hear Monsieur Rokoff has a story for me.”
“Then you are mistaken, monsieur,” replied Tarzan. “You have no story for publication, have you, my dear Nikolas.”
“Then you’re wrong, sir,” Tarzan replied. “You don’t have a story to publish, do you, my dear Nikolas?”
Rokoff looked up from his writing with an ugly scowl upon his face.
Rokoff glanced up from his writing, grimacing unpleasantly.
“No,” he growled, “I have no story for publication—now.”
“No,” he said with a growl, “I don’t have a story to share for publication—right now.”
“Nor ever, my dear Nikolas,” and the reporter did not see the nasty light in the ape-man’s eye; but Nikolas Rokoff did.
“Not ever, my dear Nikolas,” and the reporter didn’t notice the unpleasant glint in the ape-man’s eye; but Nikolas Rokoff did.
“Nor ever,” he repeated hastily.
"Not ever," he said quickly.
“It is too bad that monsieur has been troubled,” said Tarzan, turning to the newspaper man. “I bid monsieur good evening,” and he bowed the dapper young man out of the room, and closed the door in his face.
“It’s a shame that you’ve been bothered,” said Tarzan, turning to the journalist. “I wish you a good evening,” and he politely escorted the stylish young man out of the room, closing the door behind him.
An hour later Tarzan, with a rather bulky manuscript in his coat pocket, turned at the door leading from Rokoff’s room.
An hour later, Tarzan, with a pretty thick manuscript in his coat pocket, turned at the door that led out of Rokoff’s room.
“Were I you I should leave France,” he said, “for sooner or later I shall find an excuse to kill you that will not in any way compromise your sister.”
“If I were you, I would leave France,” he said, “because sooner or later I'll come up with a reason to kill you that won’t put your sister in any danger.”
Chapter VI
A Duel
D’Arnot was asleep when Tarzan entered their apartments after leaving Rokoff’s. Tarzan did not disturb him, but the following morning he narrated the happenings of the previous evening, omitting not a single detail.
D’Arnot was asleep when Tarzan came back to their place after leaving Rokoff’s. Tarzan didn’t wake him up, but the next morning he recounted everything that happened the night before, leaving out not a single detail.
“What a fool I have been,” he concluded. “De Coude and his wife were both my friends. How have I returned their friendship? Barely did I escape murdering the count. I have cast a stigma on the name of a good woman. It is very probable that I have broken up a happy home.”
“What a fool I’ve been,” he concluded. “De Coude and his wife were both my friends. How have I paid them back for their friendship? I almost ended up killing the count. I’ve brought shame to a good woman’s name. It’s very likely that I’ve destroyed a happy home.”
“Do you love Olga de Coude?” asked D’Arnot.
“Do you love Olga de Coude?” D’Arnot asked.
“Were I not positive that she does not love me I could not answer your question, Paul; but without disloyalty to her I tell you that I do not love her, nor does she love me. For an instant we were the victims of a sudden madness—it was not love—and it would have left us, unharmed, as suddenly as it had come upon us even though De Coude had not returned. As you know, I have had little experience of women. Olga de Coude is very beautiful; that, and the dim light and the seductive surroundings, and the appeal of the defenseless for protection, might have been resisted by a more civilized man, but my civilization is not even skin deep—it does not go deeper than my clothes.
“If I weren't sure that she doesn't love me, I couldn't answer your question, Paul; but without being disloyal to her, I admit that I don't love her, and she doesn't love me either. For a brief moment, we were caught up in a sudden madness—it wasn't love—and it would have faded away just as quickly, even if De Coude hadn't returned. As you know, I don't have much experience with women. Olga de Coude is very beautiful; that, combined with the dim light, the enticing atmosphere, and the appeal of protecting someone defenseless, might have been resisted by a more refined man, but my refinement is only skin-deep—it goes no deeper than my clothes."
“Paris is no place for me. I will but continue to stumble into more and more serious pitfalls. The man-made restrictions are irksome. I feel always that I am a prisoner. I cannot endure it, my friend, and so I think that I shall go back to my own jungle, and lead the life that God intended that I should lead when He put me there.”
"Paris isn't the right place for me. I’ll just keep falling into more serious traps. The rules people impose are annoying. I always feel like I’m trapped. I can’t take it anymore, my friend, so I think I’ll go back to my own jungle and live the life that God intended for me when He put me there."
“Do not take it so to heart, Jean,” responded D’Arnot. “You have acquitted yourself much better than most ‘civilized’ men would have under similar circumstances. As to leaving Paris at this time, I rather think that Raoul de Coude may be expected to have something to say on that subject before long.”
“Don’t take it so personally, Jean,” D’Arnot replied. “You’ve handled yourself much better than most ‘civilized’ men would have in similar situations. As for leaving Paris right now, I think Raoul de Coude will have something to say about that soon.”
Nor was D’Arnot mistaken. A week later on Monsieur Flaubert was announced about eleven in the morning, as D’Arnot and Tarzan were breakfasting. Monsieur Flaubert was an impressively polite gentleman. With many low bows he delivered Monsieur le Count de Coude’s challenge to Monsieur Tarzan. Would monsieur be so very kind as to arrange to have a friend meet Monsieur Flaubert at as early an hour as convenient, that the details might be arranged to the mutual satisfaction of all concerned?
Nor was D’Arnot mistaken. A week later, Monsieur Flaubert was announced around eleven in the morning while D’Arnot and Tarzan were having breakfast. Monsieur Flaubert was an impressively polite gentleman. With many low bows, he delivered Count de Coude’s challenge to Tarzan. Would he be so kind as to arrange for a friend to meet Monsieur Flaubert at a time that was convenient, so the details could be worked out to everyone's satisfaction?
Certainly. Monsieur Tarzan would be delighted to place his interests unreservedly in the hands of his friend, Lieutenant D’Arnot. And so it was arranged that D’Arnot was to call on Monsieur Flaubert at two that afternoon, and the polite Monsieur Flaubert, with many bows, left them.
Certainly. Mr. Tarzan would be happy to fully trust his friend, Lieutenant D’Arnot. So, it was agreed that D’Arnot would visit Mr. Flaubert at two that afternoon, and the polite Mr. Flaubert, with many bows, took his leave.
When they were again alone D’Arnot looked quizzically at Tarzan.
When they were alone again, D’Arnot looked at Tarzan with a curious expression.
“Well?” he said.
"Well?" he asked.
“Now to my sins I must add murder, or else myself be killed,” said Tarzan. “I am progressing rapidly in the ways of my civilized brothers.”
“Now I have to add murder to my sins, or else I’ll end up dead,” said Tarzan. “I’m quickly catching up to my civilized brothers.”
“What weapons shall you select?” asked D’Arnot. “De Coude is accredited with being a master with the sword, and a splendid shot.”
“What weapons will you choose?” D’Arnot asked. “De Coude is known to be a master with the sword and an excellent shot.”
“I might then choose poisoned arrows at twenty paces, or spears at the same distance,” laughed Tarzan. “Make it pistols, Paul.”
“I might then pick poisoned arrows at twenty paces or spears at the same distance,” laughed Tarzan. “Let’s go with pistols, Paul.”
“He will kill you, Jean.”
"He’s going to kill you, Jean."
“I have no doubt of it,” replied Tarzan. “I must die some day.”
“I have no doubt about it,” Tarzan replied. “I have to die someday.”
“We had better make it swords,” said D’Arnot. “He will be satisfied with wounding you, and there is less danger of a mortal wound.”
“We should use swords,” said D’Arnot. “He'll be fine with just wounding you, and there's a lower risk of a fatal injury.”
“Pistols,” said Tarzan, with finality.
“Guns,” said Tarzan, with finality.
D’Arnot tried to argue him out of it, but without avail, so pistols it was.
D'Arnot tried to talk him out of it, but it didn't work, so pistols it was.
D’Arnot returned from his conference with Monsieur Flaubert shortly after four.
D'Arnot came back from his meeting with Monsieur Flaubert shortly after four.
“It is all arranged,” he said. “Everything is satisfactory. Tomorrow morning at daylight—there is a secluded spot on the road not far from Etamps. For some personal reason Monsieur Flaubert preferred it. I did not demur.”
“It’s all set,” he said. “Everything is good to go. Tomorrow morning at dawn—there’s a quiet place on the road not far from Etamps. For some personal reason, Monsieur Flaubert preferred it. I didn’t object.”
“Good!” was Tarzan’s only comment. He did not refer to the matter again even indirectly. That night he wrote several letters before he retired. After sealing and addressing them he placed them all in an envelope addressed to D’Arnot. As he undressed D’Arnot heard him humming a music-hall ditty.
“Good!” was Tarzan’s only response. He didn’t mention the issue again, even in passing. That night, he wrote several letters before going to bed. After sealing and addressing them, he put all of them in an envelope addressed to D’Arnot. As he was getting undressed, D’Arnot heard him humming a tune from a music hall.
The Frenchman swore under his breath. He was very unhappy, for he was positive that when the sun rose the next morning it would look down upon a dead Tarzan. It grated upon him to see Tarzan so unconcerned.
The Frenchman cursed quietly. He was extremely unhappy, convinced that when the sun rose the next morning, it would shine down on a dead Tarzan. It irritated him to see Tarzan so unconcerned.
“This is a most uncivilized hour for people to kill each other,” remarked the ape-man when he had been routed out of a comfortable bed in the blackness of the early morning hours. He had slept well, and so it seemed that his head scarcely touched the pillow ere his man deferentially aroused him. His remark was addressed to D’Arnot, who stood fully dressed in the doorway of Tarzan’s bedroom.
“This is a really uncivilized time for people to be killing each other,” the ape-man said after being dragged out of a cozy bed in the darkness of the early morning. He had slept well, and it felt like he had barely laid his head on the pillow before his man politely woke him up. He was talking to D’Arnot, who was standing fully dressed in the doorway of Tarzan’s bedroom.
D’Arnot had scarcely slept at all during the night. He was nervous, and therefore inclined to be irritable.
D'Arnot had barely slept at all that night. He was anxious, which made him a bit short-tempered.
“I presume you slept like a baby all night,” he said.
“I assume you slept really well all night,” he said.
Tarzan laughed. “From your tone, Paul, I infer that you rather harbor the fact against me. I could not help it, really.”
Tarzan laughed. “From the way you’re speaking, Paul, I can tell you’re holding that against me. I really couldn’t help it.”
“No, Jean; it is not that,” replied D’Arnot, himself smiling. “But you take the entire matter with such infernal indifference—it is exasperating. One would think that you were going out to shoot at a target, rather than to face one of the best shots in France.”
“No, Jean; it’s not that,” D’Arnot replied with a smile. “But you treat the whole situation with such awful indifference—it’s really frustrating. You’d think you were just going out to shoot at a target, instead of facing one of the best marksmen in France.”
Tarzan shrugged his shoulders. “I am going out to expiate a great wrong, Paul. A very necessary feature of the expiation is the marksmanship of my opponent. Wherefore, then, should I be dissatisfied? Have you not yourself told me that Count de Coude is a splendid marksman?”
Tarzan shrugged. “I’m going out to make up for a huge mistake, Paul. A key part of this is the skills of my opponent. So why should I be unhappy? Haven’t you told me that Count de Coude is an excellent marksman?”
“You mean that you hope to be killed?” exclaimed D’Arnot, in horror.
"You mean you actually hope to get killed?" D'Arnot exclaimed, horrified.
“I cannot say that I hope to be; but you must admit that there is little reason to believe that I shall not be killed.”
“I can’t say that I hope to survive; but you have to admit that there’s not much reason to think that I won’t be killed.”
Had D’Arnot known the thing that was in the ape-man’s mind—that had been in his mind almost from the first intimation that De Coude would call him to account on the field of honor—he would have been even more horrified than he was.
Had D’Arnot known what the ape-man was thinking—that thought had been in his mind almost from the first hint that De Coude would challenge him on the field of honor—he would have been even more horrified than he already was.
In silence they entered D’Arnot’s great car, and in similar silence they sped over the dim road that leads to Etamps. Each man was occupied with his own thoughts. D’Arnot’s were very mournful, for he was genuinely fond of Tarzan. The great friendship which had sprung up between these two men whose lives and training had been so widely different had but been strengthened by association, for they were both men to whom the same high ideals of manhood, of personal courage, and of honor appealed with equal force. They could understand one another, and each could be proud of the friendship of the other.
In silence, they got into D’Arnot’s large car, and just as quietly, they drove along the dim road to Etamps. Each man was lost in his own thoughts. D’Arnot felt particularly sad because he genuinely cared for Tarzan. The strong bond that had formed between these two men, whose backgrounds and upbringings were so different, had only grown stronger through their time together, as they both valued the same high ideals of manhood, personal courage, and honor equally. They understood each other, and both felt pride in their friendship.
Tarzan of the Apes was wrapped in thoughts of the past; pleasant memories of the happier occasions of his lost jungle life. He recalled the countless boyhood hours that he had spent cross-legged upon the table in his dead father’s cabin, his little brown body bent over one of the fascinating picture books from which, unaided, he had gleaned the secret of the printed language long before the sounds of human speech fell upon his ears. A smile of contentment softened his strong face as he thought of that day of days that he had had alone with Jane Porter in the heart of his primeval forest.
Tarzan of the Apes was lost in thoughts about the past, reminiscing about the joyful moments from his lost jungle life. He remembered the countless hours of his childhood spent sitting cross-legged on the table in his deceased father's cabin, his small brown body leaning over one of the captivating picture books from which, without any help, he had figured out the secrets of written language long before he ever heard human speech. A satisfied smile relaxed his strong face as he recalled the unforgettable day he had with Jane Porter deep in his ancient forest.
Presently his reminiscences were broken in upon by the stopping of the car—they were at their destination. Tarzan’s mind returned to the affairs of the moment. He knew that he was about to die, but there was no fear of death in him. To a denizen of the cruel jungle death is a commonplace. The first law of nature compels them to cling tenaciously to life—to fight for it; but it does not teach them to fear death.
Right now, his memories were interrupted by the car coming to a stop—they had arrived at their destination. Tarzan’s thoughts shifted back to the current situation. He realized he was about to die, but he felt no fear of death. For someone from the harsh jungle, death is an everyday occurrence. The first law of nature requires them to hold on to life tightly—to fight for it; but it doesn’t instill a fear of death.
D’Arnot and Tarzan were first upon the field of honor. A moment later De Coude, Monsieur Flaubert, and a third gentleman arrived. The last was introduced to D’Arnot and Tarzan; he was a physician.
D’Arnot and Tarzan were the first on the field of honor. A moment later, De Coude, Monsieur Flaubert, and another gentleman arrived. The last one was introduced to D’Arnot and Tarzan; he was a doctor.
D’Arnot and Monsieur Flaubert spoke together in whispers for a brief time. The Count de Coude and Tarzan stood apart at opposite sides of the field. Presently the seconds summoned them. D’Arnot and Monsieur Flaubert had examined both pistols. The two men who were to face each other a moment later stood silently while Monsieur Flaubert recited the conditions they were to observe.
D’Arnot and Mr. Flaubert quietly talked for a short while. The Count de Coude and Tarzan stood at opposite ends of the field. Soon, the seconds called them forward. D’Arnot and Mr. Flaubert had checked both pistols. The two men who were about to face each other remained silent as Mr. Flaubert stated the rules they were to follow.
They were to stand back to back. At a signal from Monsieur Flaubert they were to walk in opposite directions, their pistols hanging by their sides. When each had proceeded ten paces D’Arnot was to give the final signal—then they were to turn and fire at will until one fell, or each had expended the three shots allowed.
They were to stand back to back. When Monsieur Flaubert signaled, they were to walk in opposite directions, their pistols hanging at their sides. After they had walked ten paces, D’Arnot would give the final signal—then they were to turn and shoot freely until one of them fell, or until both had fired the three shots they were allowed.
While Monsieur Flaubert spoke Tarzan selected a cigarette from his case, and lighted it. De Coude was the personification of coolness—was he not the best shot in France?
While Monsieur Flaubert spoke, Tarzan picked a cigarette from his case and lit it. De Coude was the epitome of calm—wasn’t he the best marksman in France?
Presently Monsieur Flaubert nodded to D’Arnot, and each man placed his principal in position.
Currently, Monsieur Flaubert nodded at D'Arnot, and each man positioned his main focus.
“Are you quite ready, gentlemen?” asked Monsieur Flaubert.
“Are you all set, gentlemen?” asked Monsieur Flaubert.
“Quite,” replied De Coude.
“Sure,” replied De Coude.
Tarzan nodded. Monsieur Flaubert gave the signal. He and D’Arnot stepped back a few paces to be out of the line of fire as the men paced slowly apart. Six! Seven! Eight! There were tears in D’Arnot’s eyes. He loved Tarzan very much. Nine! Another pace, and the poor lieutenant gave the signal he so hated to give. To him it sounded the doom of his best friend.
Tarzan nodded. Monsieur Flaubert gave the signal. He and D’Arnot stepped back a few steps to stay out of the line of fire as the men slowly moved apart. Six! Seven! Eight! There were tears in D’Arnot’s eyes. He cared about Tarzan deeply. Nine! Another step, and the poor lieutenant gave the signal he dreaded to give. To him, it sounded like the end for his best friend.
Quickly De Coude wheeled and fired. Tarzan gave a little start. His pistol still dangled at his side. De Coude hesitated, as though waiting to see his antagonist crumple to the ground. The Frenchman was too experienced a marksman not to know that he had scored a hit. Still Tarzan made no move to raise his pistol. De Coude fired once more, but the attitude of the ape-man—the utter indifference that was so apparent in every line of the nonchalant ease of his giant figure, and the even unruffled puffing of his cigarette—had disconcerted the best marksman in France. This time Tarzan did not start, but again De Coude knew that he had hit.
Quickly, De Coude turned and fired. Tarzan flinched slightly. His pistol still hung at his side. De Coude paused, as if waiting to see his opponent collapse. The Frenchman was too skilled a marksman not to realize that he had scored a hit. Still, Tarzan didn’t move to draw his pistol. De Coude fired again, but the way the ape-man stood—his complete indifference that was evident in the relaxed posture of his massive figure, and even the calm way he puffed on his cigarette—had thrown off the best marksman in France. This time, Tarzan didn't flinch, but again De Coude knew he had hit his target.
Suddenly the explanation leaped to his mind—his antagonist was coolly taking these terrible chances in the hope that he would receive no staggering wound from any of De Coude’s three shots. Then he would take his own time about shooting De Coude down deliberately, coolly, and in cold blood. A little shiver ran up the Frenchman’s spine. It was fiendish—diabolical. What manner of creature was this that could stand complacently with two bullets in him, waiting for the third?
Suddenly, the explanation hit him—his opponent was calmly taking these huge risks, hoping he wouldn’t get severely injured by any of De Coude’s three shots. Then he would take his time shooting De Coude down deliberately, coolly, and without any emotion. A shiver ran up the Frenchman’s spine. It was evil—diabolical. What kind of creature could stand there, unfazed with two bullets already in him, waiting for a third?
And so De Coude took careful aim this time, but his nerve was gone, and he made a clean miss. Not once had Tarzan raised his pistol hand from where it hung beside his leg.
And so De Coude took careful aim this time, but he lost his nerve and completely missed. Not once did Tarzan lift his pistol hand from where it rested beside his leg.
For a moment the two stood looking straight into each other’s eyes. On Tarzan’s face was a pathetic expression of disappointment. On De Coude’s a rapidly growing expression of horror—yes, of terror.
For a moment, the two stood looking straight into each other’s eyes. Tarzan's face showed a heartbreaking look of disappointment. De Coude's face was quickly changing to one of horror—yes, terror.
He could endure it no longer.
He couldn't handle it anymore.
“Mother of God! Monsieur—shoot!” he screamed.
“Mother of God! Sir—shoot!” he yelled.
But Tarzan did not raise his pistol. Instead, he advanced toward De Coude, and when D’Arnot and Monsieur Flaubert, misinterpreting his intention, would have rushed between them, he raised his left hand in a sign of remonstrance.
But Tarzan didn't lift his pistol. Instead, he moved toward De Coude, and when D’Arnot and Monsieur Flaubert, misunderstanding his intention, were about to step in between them, he raised his left hand as a sign to hold back.
“Do not fear,” he said to them, “I shall not harm him.”
“Don’t worry,” he said to them, “I won’t hurt him.”
It was most unusual, but they halted. Tarzan advanced until he was quite close to De Coude.
It was very strange, but they stopped. Tarzan moved forward until he was almost right next to De Coude.
“There must have been something wrong with monsieur’s pistol,” he said. “Or monsieur is unstrung. Take mine, monsieur, and try again,” and Tarzan offered his pistol, butt foremost, to the astonished De Coude.
“There must be something wrong with your pistol,” he said. “Or you’re just off your game. Take mine and give it another shot,” Tarzan offered, holding his pistol out, butt first, to the surprised De Coude.
“Mon Dieu, monsieur!” cried the latter. “Are you mad?”
“My God, sir!” exclaimed the other. “Are you crazy?”
“No, my friend,” replied the ape-man; “but I deserve to die. It is the only way in which I may atone for the wrong I have done a very good woman. Take my pistol and do as I bid.”
“No, my friend,” replied the ape-man; “but I deserve to die. It’s the only way I can make up for the wrong I’ve done to a really good woman. Take my pistol and do as I say.”
“It would be murder,” replied De Coude. “But what wrong did you do my wife? She swore to me that—”
“It would be murder,” replied De Coude. “But what did you do to my wife? She promised me that—”
“I do not mean that,” said Tarzan quickly. “You saw all the wrong that passed between us. But that was enough to cast a shadow upon her name, and to ruin the happiness of a man against whom I had no enmity. The fault was all mine, and so I hoped to die for it this morning. I am disappointed that monsieur is not so wonderful a marksman as I had been led to believe.”
“I didn’t mean that,” Tarzan said quickly. “You witnessed all the misunderstandings between us. But that was enough to tarnish her reputation and ruin the happiness of a man I had no grudge against. The blame is entirely mine, and I hoped to pay for it with my life this morning. I’m disappointed that you’re not as great a marksman as I had been led to believe.”
“You say that the fault was all yours?” asked De Coude eagerly.
“You're saying the fault was all yours?” asked De Coude eagerly.
“All mine, monsieur. Your wife is a very pure woman. She loves only you. The fault that you saw was all mine. The thing that brought me there was no fault of either the Countess de Coude or myself. Here is a paper which will quite positively demonstrate that,” and Tarzan drew from his pocket the statement Rokoff had written and signed.
“All mine, sir. Your wife is a very pure woman. She loves only you. The mistake you noticed was entirely mine. The reason I was there was not a fault of either the Countess de Coude or me. Here’s a document that will definitely prove that,” and Tarzan took out the statement that Rokoff had written and signed.
De Coude took it and read. D’Arnot and Monsieur Flaubert had drawn near. They were interested spectators of this strange ending of a strange duel. None spoke until De Coude had quite finished, then he looked up at Tarzan.
De Coude took it and read. D’Arnot and Monsieur Flaubert had moved closer. They were curious onlookers to this unusual conclusion of a peculiar duel. No one said anything until De Coude had completely finished reading, then he looked up at Tarzan.
“You are a very brave and chivalrous gentleman,” he said. “I thank God that I did not kill you.”
“You're a really brave and noble guy,” he said. “I thank God that I didn't end up killing you.”
De Coude was a Frenchman. Frenchmen are impulsive. He threw his arms about Tarzan and embraced him. Monsieur Flaubert embraced D’Arnot. There was no one to embrace the doctor. So possibly it was pique which prompted him to interfere, and demand that he be permitted to dress Tarzan’s wounds.
De Coude was a Frenchman. Frenchmen are impulsive. He threw his arms around Tarzan and hugged him. Monsieur Flaubert hugged D’Arnot. There was no one to hug the doctor. So maybe it was annoyance that made him interfere and insist on being allowed to dress Tarzan’s wounds.
“This gentleman was hit once at least,” he said. “Possibly thrice.”
“This guy was hit at least once,” he said. “Maybe three times.”
“Twice,” said Tarzan. “Once in the left shoulder, and again in the left side—both flesh wounds, I think.” But the doctor insisted upon stretching him upon the sward, and tinkering with him until the wounds were cleansed and the flow of blood checked.
“Twice,” said Tarzan. “Once in the left shoulder, and again in the left side—both flesh wounds, I think.” But the doctor insisted on lying him down on the grass and working on him until the wounds were cleaned and the bleeding stopped.
One result of the duel was that they all rode back to Paris together in D’Arnot’s car, the best of friends. De Coude was so relieved to have had this double assurance of his wife’s loyalty that he felt no rancor at all toward Tarzan. It is true that the latter had assumed much more of the fault than was rightly his, but if he lied a little he may be excused, for he lied in the service of a woman, and he lied like a gentleman.
One result of the duel was that they all rode back to Paris together in D’Arnot’s car, the best of friends. De Coude was so relieved to have this double assurance of his wife’s loyalty that he felt no bitterness at all toward Tarzan. It’s true that the latter took on much more of the blame than he deserved, but if he told a few lies, he can be excused, since he lied in the service of a woman, and he lied like a gentleman.
The ape-man was confined to his bed for several days. He felt that it was foolish and unnecessary, but the doctor and D’Arnot took the matter so to heart that he gave in to please them, though it made him laugh to think of it.
The ape-man was stuck in bed for several days. He thought it was silly and pointless, but the doctor and D’Arnot were so worried that he went along with it to make them happy, even though it made him laugh just thinking about it.
“It is droll,” he said to D’Arnot. “To lie abed because of a pin prick! Why, when Bolgani, the king gorilla, tore me almost to pieces, while I was still but a little boy, did I have a nice soft bed to lie on? No, only the damp, rotting vegetation of the jungle. Hidden beneath some friendly bush I lay for days and weeks with only Kala to nurse me—poor, faithful Kala, who kept the insects from my wounds and warned off the beasts of prey.
“It’s funny,” he said to D’Arnot. “To stay in bed because of a pinprick! When Bolgani, the king gorilla, nearly ripped me apart when I was just a kid, did I have a nice soft bed to lie on? No, just the damp, decaying plants of the jungle. Hidden under some friendly bushes, I lay for days and weeks with only Kala to take care of me—poor, loyal Kala, who kept the insects away from my wounds and scared off the predators.
“When I called for water she brought it to me in her own mouth—the only way she knew to carry it. There was no sterilized gauze, there was no antiseptic bandage—there was nothing that would not have driven our dear doctor mad to have seen. Yet I recovered—recovered to lie in bed because of a tiny scratch that one of the jungle folk would scarce realize unless it were upon the end of his nose.”
“When I asked for water, she brought it to me in her own mouth— the only way she knew how to carry it. There was no sterile gauze, no antiseptic bandage—nothing that wouldn’t have driven our dear doctor crazy if he had seen it. Yet I recovered—recovered to lie in bed because of a tiny scratch that one of the jungle folks would hardly notice unless it were on the end of his nose.”
But the time was soon over, and before he realized it Tarzan found himself abroad again. Several times De Coude had called, and when he found that Tarzan was anxious for employment of some nature he promised to see what could be done to find a berth for him.
But the time passed quickly, and before he knew it, Tarzan found himself out in the world again. De Coude had visited several times, and when he discovered that Tarzan was looking for some kind of work, he promised to help find a job for him.
It was the first day that Tarzan was permitted to go out that he received a message from De Coude requesting him to call at the count’s office that afternoon.
It was the first day that Tarzan was allowed to go out when he got a message from De Coude asking him to come to the count's office that afternoon.
He found De Coude awaiting him with a very pleasant welcome, and a sincere congratulation that he was once more upon his feet. Neither had ever mentioned the duel or the cause of it since that morning upon the field of honor.
He found De Coude waiting for him with a warm welcome and genuine congratulations that he was back on his feet. Neither had ever talked about the duel or what caused it since that morning on the field of honor.
“I think that I have found just the thing for you, Monsieur Tarzan,” said the count. “It is a position of much trust and responsibility, which also requires considerably physical courage and prowess. I cannot imagine a man better fitted than you, my dear Monsieur Tarzan, for this very position. It will necessitate travel, and later it may lead to a very much better post—possibly in the diplomatic service.
“I think I’ve found just the right opportunity for you, Monsieur Tarzan,” said the count. “It’s a job that comes with a lot of trust and responsibility, and it also demands significant physical courage and skill. I can’t think of anyone better suited than you, my dear Monsieur Tarzan, for this role. It will involve travel, and later it could lead to an even better position—possibly in the diplomatic service.
“At first, for a short time only, you will be a special agent in the service of the ministry of war. Come, I will take you to the gentleman who will be your chief. He can explain the duties better than I, and then you will be in a position to judge if you wish to accept or no.”
“At first, for just a little while, you'll be a special agent for the ministry of war. Come on, I’ll take you to the guy who will be your boss. He can explain the responsibilities better than I can, and then you’ll be able to decide if you want to accept it or not.”
De Coude himself escorted Tarzan to the office of General Rochere, the chief of the bureau to which Tarzan would be attached if he accepted the position. There the count left him, after a glowing description to the general of the many attributes possessed by the ape-man which should fit him for the work of the service.
De Coude himself took Tarzan to the office of General Rochere, the head of the department where Tarzan would be assigned if he took the job. There, the count left him after giving the general a glowing description of the many qualities the ape-man had that would make him suitable for the work.
A half hour later Tarzan walked out of the office the possessor of the first position he had ever held. On the morrow he was to return for further instructions, though General Rochere had made it quite plain that Tarzan might prepare to leave Paris for an almost indefinite period, possibly on the morrow.
A half hour later, Tarzan walked out of the office as the holder of the first position he had ever had. The next day, he was supposed to go back for more instructions, although General Rochere had made it very clear that Tarzan should be ready to leave Paris for an almost indefinite time, possibly as soon as the next day.
It was with feelings of the keenest elation that he hastened home to bear the good news to D’Arnot. At last he was to be of some value in the world. He was to earn money, and, best of all, to travel and see the world.
He hurried home, bursting with excitement to share the good news with D’Arnot. Finally, he was going to be valuable in the world. He would earn money, and, best of all, get to travel and explore the world.
He could scarcely wait to get well inside D’Arnot’s sitting room before he burst out with the glad tidings. D’Arnot was not so pleased.
He could hardly wait to get fully into D’Arnot’s living room before he excitedly shared the good news. D’Arnot was not as thrilled.
“It seems to delight you to think that you are to leave Paris, and that we shall not see each other for months, perhaps. Tarzan, you are a most ungrateful beast!” and D’Arnot laughed.
“It seems to make you happy to think that you're leaving Paris and that we might not see each other for months, maybe. Tarzan, you are such an ungrateful beast!” and D’Arnot laughed.
“No, Paul; I am a little child. I have a new toy, and I am tickled to death.”
“No, Paul; I’m still a kid. I got a new toy, and I’m so excited.”
And so it came that on the following day Tarzan left Paris en route for Marseilles and Oran.
And so it happened that the next day, Tarzan left Paris headed for Marseilles and Oran.
Chapter VII
The Dancing Girl of Sidi Aissa
Tarzan’s first mission did not bid fair to be either exciting or vastly important. There was a certain lieutenant of spahis whom the government had reason to suspect of improper relations with a great European power. This Lieutenant Gernois, who was at present stationed at Sidi-bel-Abbes, had recently been attached to the general staff, where certain information of great military value had come into his possession in the ordinary routine of his duties. It was this information which the government suspected the great power was bartering for with the officer.
Tarzan's first mission didn't seem to be very exciting or particularly important. There was a lieutenant of spahis that the government suspected of having improper connections with a major European power. Lieutenant Gernois, who was currently stationed at Sidi-bel-Abbes, had recently been assigned to the general staff, where he had gained access to certain highly valuable military information during his normal duties. This was the information the government believed the major power was trying to trade for with the officer.
It was at most but a vague hint dropped by a certain notorious Parisienne in a jealous mood that had caused suspicion to rest upon the lieutenant. But general staffs are jealous of their secrets, and treason so serious a thing that even a hint of it may not be safely neglected. And so it was that Tarzan had come to Algeria in the guise of an American hunter and traveler to keep a close eye upon Lieutenant Gernois.
It was mostly just a vague suggestion made by a certain infamous Parisian in a fit of jealousy that had put the lieutenant under suspicion. But military staffs guard their secrets fiercely, and treason is such a serious matter that even a hint of it can’t be overlooked. And that’s why Tarzan had arrived in Algeria pretending to be an American hunter and traveler, to keep a watchful eye on Lieutenant Gernois.
He had looked forward with keen delight to again seeing his beloved Africa, but this northern aspect of it was so different from his tropical jungle home that he might as well have been back in Paris for all the heart thrills of homecoming that he experienced. At Oran he spent a day wandering through the narrow, crooked alleys of the Arab quarter enjoying the strange, new sights. The next day found him at Sidi-bel-Abbes, where he presented his letters of introduction to both civil and military authorities—letters which gave no clew to the real significance of his mission.
He had eagerly anticipated seeing his beloved Africa again, but this northern part was so different from his tropical jungle home that he might as well have been back in Paris for all the excitement of returning home that he felt. In Oran, he spent a day exploring the narrow, winding alleys of the Arab quarter, enjoying the strange, new sights. The next day, he was in Sidi-bel-Abbes, where he delivered his letters of introduction to both civil and military officials—letters that revealed nothing about the true purpose of his mission.
Tarzan possessed a sufficient command of English to enable him to pass among Arabs and Frenchmen as an American, and that was all that was required of it. When he met an Englishman he spoke French in order that he might not betray himself, but occasionally talked in English to foreigners who understood that tongue, but could not note the slight imperfections of accent and pronunciation that were his.
Tarzan had enough of a grasp of English to fit in with Arabs and French people as an American, and that was all he needed. When he met an Englishman, he spoke French so he wouldn’t give himself away, but sometimes he spoke English to foreigners who understood it, even if they didn’t notice the slight flaws in his accent and pronunciation.
Here he became acquainted with many of the French officers, and soon became a favorite among them. He met Gernois, whom he found to be a taciturn, dyspeptic-looking man of about forty, having little or no social intercourse with his fellows.
Here, he got to know many of the French officers and quickly became a favorite among them. He met Gernois, who turned out to be a quiet, grumpy-looking man in his forties, with very little social interaction with others.
For a month nothing of moment occurred. Gernois apparently had no visitors, nor did he on his occasional visits to the town hold communication with any who might even by the wildest flight of imagination be construed into secret agents of a foreign power. Tarzan was beginning to hope that, after all, the rumor might have been false, when suddenly Gernois was ordered to Bou Saada in the Petit Sahara far to the south.
For a month, nothing significant happened. Gernois seemed to have no visitors, and during his rare trips to town, he didn't talk to anyone who could even remotely be seen as a secret agent for a foreign power. Tarzan was starting to think that maybe the rumor was untrue when suddenly Gernois was ordered to Bou Saada in the Petit Sahara, way down south.
A company of spahis and three officers were to relieve another company already stationed there. Fortunately one of the officers, Captain Gerard, had become an excellent friend of Tarzan’s, and so when the ape-man suggested that he should embrace the opportunity of accompanying him to Bou Saada, where he expected to find hunting, it caused not the slightest suspicion.
A company of spahis and three officers were meant to replace another company already stationed there. Luckily, one of the officers, Captain Gerard, had become a great friend of Tarzan’s, so when the ape-man suggested that he take the chance to join him in Bou Saada, where he hoped to find some good hunting, it raised no suspicions at all.
At Bouira the detachment detrained, and the balance of the journey was made in the saddle. As Tarzan was dickering at Bouira for a mount he caught a brief glimpse of a man in European clothes eying him from the doorway of a native coffeehouse, but as Tarzan looked the man turned and entered the little, low-ceilinged mud hut, and but for a haunting impression that there had been something familiar about the face or figure of the fellow, Tarzan gave the matter no further thought.
At Bouira, the group got off the train, and the rest of the journey was on horseback. While Tarzan was negotiating for a horse at Bouira, he briefly spotted a man in European clothes watching him from the doorway of a local coffeehouse. However, as Tarzan looked over, the man turned and went into the small, low-ceilinged mud hut. Aside from a nagging feeling that the guy's face or figure looked familiar, Tarzan didn't think much more about it.
The march to Aumale was fatiguing to Tarzan, whose equestrian experiences hitherto had been confined to a course of riding lessons in a Parisian academy, and so it was that he quickly sought the comforts of a bed in the Hotel Grossat, while the officers and troops took up their quarters at the military post.
The march to Aumale was tiring for Tarzan, whose only riding experience so far had been a series of lessons at a riding school in Paris. So, he quickly chose to relax in a bed at the Hotel Grossat, while the officers and troops settled in at the military post.
Although Tarzan was called early the following morning, the company of spahis was on the march before he had finished his breakfast. He was hurrying through his meal that the soldiers might not get too far in advance of him when he glanced through the door connecting the dining room with the bar.
Although Tarzan was called early the next morning, the group of spahis was already on the move before he had finished his breakfast. He was rushing through his meal so the soldiers wouldn't get too far ahead of him when he looked through the door that connected the dining room to the bar.
To his surprise, he saw Gernois standing there in conversation with the very stranger he had seen in the coffee-house at Bouira the day previous. He could not be mistaken, for there was the same strangely familiar attitude and figure, though the man’s back was toward him.
To his surprise, he saw Gernois talking to the same stranger he had seen at the coffee shop in Bouira the day before. He couldn't be mistaken, because the man's posture and build were oddly familiar, even though the man had his back to him.
As his eyes lingered on the two, Gernois looked up and caught the intent expression on Tarzan’s face. The stranger was talking in a low whisper at the time, but the French officer immediately interrupted him, and the two at once turned away and passed out of the range of Tarzan’s vision.
As he watched the two, Gernois looked up and noticed the focused expression on Tarzan’s face. The stranger was speaking in a low whisper at that moment, but the French officer quickly interrupted him, and both of them immediately turned away and moved out of Tarzan’s sight.
This was the first suspicious occurrence that Tarzan had ever witnessed in connection with Gernois’ actions, but he was positive that the men had left the barroom solely because Gernois had caught Tarzan’s eyes upon them; then there was the persistent impression of familiarity about the stranger to further augment the ape-man’s belief that here at length was something which would bear watching.
This was the first strange thing that Tarzan had ever seen related to Gernois' behavior, but he was sure that the men had left the bar only because Gernois caught Tarzan watching them; then there was the constant feeling of familiarity about the stranger, which only strengthened the ape-man's belief that there was something worth keeping an eye on.
A moment later Tarzan entered the barroom, but the men had left, nor did he see aught of them in the street beyond, though he found a pretext to ride to various shops before he set out after the column which had now considerable start of him. He did not overtake them until he reached Sidi Aissa shortly after noon, where the soldiers had halted for an hour’s rest. Here he found Gernois with the column, but there was no sign of the stranger.
A moment later, Tarzan walked into the barroom, but the men were gone, and he didn’t see any of them outside either. He made up a reason to stop by several shops before heading after the column, which had already gotten quite a head start. He didn’t catch up to them until he arrived in Sidi Aissa just after noon, where the soldiers had taken a break for an hour. There, he found Gernois with the column, but there was no sign of the stranger.
It was market day at Sidi Aissa, and the numberless caravans of camels coming in from the desert, and the crowds of bickering Arabs in the market place, filled Tarzan with a consuming desire to remain for a day that he might see more of these sons of the desert. Thus it was that the company of spahis marched on that afternoon toward Bou Saada without him. He spent the hours until dark wandering about the market in company with a youthful Arab, one Abdul, who had been recommended to him by the innkeeper as a trustworthy servant and interpreter.
It was market day in Sidi Aissa, and the countless caravans of camels arriving from the desert, along with the crowds of arguing Arabs in the marketplace, made Tarzan eager to stay for a day to learn more about these sons of the desert. So, the group of spahis continued on that afternoon toward Bou Saada without him. He spent the hours until dark exploring the market with a young Arab named Abdul, who the innkeeper had recommended as a reliable servant and interpreter.
Here Tarzan purchased a better mount than the one he had selected at Bouira, and, entering into conversation with the stately Arab to whom the animal had belonged, learned that the seller was Kadour ben Saden, sheik of a desert tribe far south of Djelfa. Through Abdul, Tarzan invited his new acquaintance to dine with him. As the three were making their way through the crowds of marketers, camels, donkeys, and horses that filled the market place with a confusing babel of sounds, Abdul plucked at Tarzan’s sleeve.
Here, Tarzan bought a better horse than the one he had chosen in Bouira, and as he chatted with the dignified Arab who owned the animal, he found out that the seller was Kadour ben Saden, the chief of a desert tribe far south of Djelfa. Through Abdul, Tarzan invited his new friend to have dinner with him. As the three of them navigated through the throngs of vendors, camels, donkeys, and horses that filled the marketplace with a chaotic mix of noises, Abdul tugged at Tarzan’s sleeve.
“Look, master, behind us,” and he turned, pointing at a figure which disappeared behind a camel as Tarzan turned. “He has been following us about all afternoon,” continued Abdul.
“Look, master, behind us,” he said, turning and pointing at a figure that vanished behind a camel as Tarzan turned around. “He has been following us this whole afternoon,” Abdul added.
“I caught only a glimpse of an Arab in a dark-blue burnoose and white turban,” replied Tarzan. “Is it he you mean?”
“I only saw a quick glimpse of an Arab in a dark blue burnoose and a white turban,” Tarzan replied. “Is that who you’re talking about?”
“Yes. I suspected him because he seems a stranger here, without other business than following us, which is not the way of the Arab who is honest, and also because he keeps the lower part of his face hidden, only his eyes showing. He must be a bad man, or he would have honest business of his own to occupy his time.”
“Yes. I had my doubts about him because he seems out of place here, with no reason to be following us. That's not typical behavior for an honest Arab. Plus, he keeps the lower part of his face covered, showing only his eyes. He must be a bad guy; otherwise, he'd have his own honest work to keep him busy.”
“He is on the wrong scent then, Abdul,” replied Tarzan, “for no one here can have any grievance against me. This is my first visit to your country, and none knows me. He will soon discover his error, and cease to follow us.”
“He's following the wrong lead, Abdul,” Tarzan replied, “because no one here has any reason to be upset with me. This is my first time in your country, and no one knows me. He'll figure out his mistake soon and stop chasing us.”
“Unless he be bent on robbery,” returned Abdul.
“Unless he’s planning to steal,” Abdul replied.
“Then all we can do is wait until he is ready to try his hand upon us,” laughed Tarzan, “and I warrant that he will get his bellyful of robbing now that we are prepared for him,” and so he dismissed the subject from his mind, though he was destined to recall it before many hours through a most unlooked-for occurrence.
“Then all we can do is wait until he's ready to take a shot at us,” laughed Tarzan, “and I bet he’ll get a good dose of robbing now that we’re ready for him,” and with that, he pushed the topic aside, even though he was set to remember it later on due to a completely unexpected event.
Kadour ben Saden, having dined well, prepared to take leave of his host. With dignified protestations of friendship, he invited Tarzan to visit him in his wild domain, where the antelope, the stag, the boar, the panther, and the lion might still be found in sufficient numbers to tempt an ardent huntsman.
Kadour ben Saden, having enjoyed a good meal, got ready to say goodbye to his host. With sincere expressions of friendship, he invited Tarzan to come visit him in his wild territory, where antelope, deer, wild boar, panthers, and lions could still be found in enough numbers to allure an eager hunter.
On his departure the ape-man, with Abdul, wandered again into the streets of Sidi Aissa, where he was soon attracted by the wild din of sound coming from the open doorway of one of the numerous cafés maures. It was after eight, and the dancing was in full swing as Tarzan entered. The room was filled to repletion with Arabs. All were smoking, and drinking their thick, hot coffee.
On his way out, the ape-man, along with Abdul, roamed back into the streets of Sidi Aissa, where he was quickly drawn in by the loud noises coming from the open doorway of one of the many cafés maures. It was after eight, and the dancing was in full swing as Tarzan walked in. The room was packed with Arabs. Everyone was smoking and sipping their thick, hot coffee.
Tarzan and Abdul found seats near the center of the room, though the terrific noise produced by the musicians upon their Arab drums and pipes would have rendered a seat farther from them more acceptable to the quiet-loving ape-man. A rather good-looking Ouled-Nail was dancing, and, perceiving Tarzan’s European clothes, and scenting a generous gratuity, she threw her silken handkerchief upon his shoulder, to be rewarded with a franc.
Tarzan and Abdul took seats near the center of the room, even though the loud noise from the musicians playing their Arab drums and pipes would have made a spot further away more enjoyable for the peace-loving ape-man. A pretty Ouled-Nail was dancing, and when she saw Tarzan’s European clothes and caught a whiff of a nice tip, she tossed her silk handkerchief onto his shoulder, hoping to get a franc in return.
When her place upon the floor had been taken by another the bright-eyed Abdul saw her in conversation with two Arabs at the far side of the room, near a side door that let upon an inner court, around the gallery of which were the rooms occupied by the girls who danced in this café.
When someone else took her spot on the floor, the bright-eyed Abdul saw her chatting with two Arabs on the far side of the room, near a side door that opened into an inner courtyard, around which were the rooms used by the girls who danced in this café.
At first he thought nothing of the matter, but presently he noticed from the corner of his eye one of the men nod in their direction, and the girl turn and shoot a furtive glance at Tarzan. Then the Arabs melted through the doorway into the darkness of the court.
At first, he didn’t think much of it, but soon he caught one of the men nodding in their direction from the corner of his eye, and the girl turned to sneak a glance at Tarzan. Then the Arabs slipped through the doorway into the darkness of the courtyard.
When it came again the girl’s turn to dance she hovered close to Tarzan, and for the ape-man alone were her sweetest smiles. Many an ugly scowl was cast upon the tall European by swarthy, dark-eyed sons of the desert, but neither smiles nor scowls produced any outwardly visible effect upon him. Again the girl cast her handkerchief upon his shoulder, and again was she rewarded with a franc piece. As she was sticking it upon her forehead, after the custom of her kind, she bent low toward Tarzan, whispering a quick word in his ear.
When it was the girl's turn to dance again, she moved in close to Tarzan, and only for him did she give her biggest smiles. Many dark, scowling looks were aimed at the tall European by the swarthy, dark-eyed sons of the desert, but neither smiles nor scowls affected him in any visible way. Once more, the girl tossed her handkerchief onto his shoulder, and once again, she was rewarded with a franc piece. As she was placing it on her forehead, a tradition of her people, she leaned in toward Tarzan and whispered a quick word in his ear.
“There are two without in the court,” she said quickly, in broken French, “who would harm m’sieur. At first I promised to lure you to them, but you have been kind, and I cannot do it. Go quickly, before they find that I have failed them. I think that they are very bad men.”
“There are two outside the court,” she said quickly, in broken French, “who want to harm you. At first, I promised to lead you to them, but you have been kind, and I can't do it. Hurry, before they realize that I have let them down. I think they are really dangerous men.”
Tarzan thanked the girl, assuring her that he would be careful, and, having finished her dance, she crossed to the little doorway and went out into the court. But Tarzan did not leave the café as she had urged.
Tarzan thanked the girl, promising her that he would be careful, and after she finished her dance, she walked over to the small doorway and stepped out into the courtyard. But Tarzan didn't leave the café as she had encouraged him to do.
For another half hour nothing unusual occurred, then a surly-looking Arab entered the café from the street. He stood near Tarzan, where he deliberately made insulting remarks about the European, but as they were in his native tongue Tarzan was entirely innocent of their purport until Abdul took it upon himself to enlighten him.
For another half hour, nothing out of the ordinary happened, then a grumpy-looking Arab walked into the café from the street. He stood next to Tarzan, purposely making rude comments about the European, but since they were in his native language, Tarzan had no idea what they meant until Abdul decided to fill him in.
“This fellow is looking for trouble,” warned Abdul. “He is not alone. In fact, in case of a disturbance, nearly every man here would be against you. It would be better to leave quietly, master.”
“This guy is looking for trouble,” warned Abdul. “He’s not alone. In fact, if anything goes down, almost every guy here would be against you. It’s better to just leave quietly, master.”
“Ask the fellow what he wants,” commanded Tarzan.
“Ask the guy what he wants,” commanded Tarzan.
“He says that ‘the dog of a Christian’ insulted the Ouled-Nail, who belongs to him. He means trouble, m’sieur.”
“He says that ‘the dog of a Christian’ insulted the Ouled-Nail, who belongs to him. He means trouble, sir.”
“Tell him that I did not insult his or any other Ouled-Nail, that I wish him to go away and leave me alone. That I have no quarrel with him, nor has he any with me.”
“Tell him that I didn’t insult him or any other Ouled-Nail, that I want him to go away and leave me alone. I have no issue with him, nor does he have any with me.”
“He says,” replied Abdul, after delivering this message to the Arab, “that besides being a dog yourself that you are the son of one, and that your grandmother was a hyena. Incidentally you are a liar.”
“He says,” replied Abdul, after delivering this message to the Arab, “that besides being a dog yourself, you’re the son of one, and that your grandmother was a hyena. By the way, you’re a liar.”
The attention of those near by had now been attracted by the altercation, and the sneering laughs that followed this torrent of invective easily indicated the trend of the sympathies of the majority of the audience.
The nearby people were now drawn in by the argument, and the mocking laughter that followed this outburst of insults clearly showed which side most of the audience leaned toward.
Tarzan did not like being laughed at, neither did he relish the terms applied to him by the Arab, but he showed no sign of anger as he arose from his seat upon the bench. A half smile played about his lips, but of a sudden a mighty fist shot into the face of the scowling Arab, and back of it were the terrible muscles of the ape-man.
Tarzan didn’t like being laughed at, nor did he appreciate the names the Arab called him, but he didn’t show any anger as he got up from the bench. A slight smile was on his lips, but suddenly, a powerful fist swung into the scowling Arab’s face, backed by the formidable muscles of the ape-man.
At the instant that the man fell a half dozen fierce plainsmen sprang into the room from where they had apparently been waiting for their cue in the street before the café. With cries of “Kill the unbeliever!” and “Down with the dog of a Christian!” they made straight for Tarzan. A number of the younger Arabs in the audience sprang to their feet to join in the assault upon the unarmed white man. Tarzan and Abdul were rushed back toward the end of the room by the very force of numbers opposing them. The young Arab remained loyal to his master, and with drawn knife fought at his side.
At the moment the man fell, half a dozen fierce plainsmen burst into the room, as if they had been waiting for their moment outside the café. Shouting “Kill the unbeliever!” and “Down with the dog of a Christian!” they headed straight for Tarzan. Several of the younger Arabs in the crowd jumped to their feet to join the attack on the unarmed white man. Tarzan and Abdul were pushed back toward the end of the room by the sheer force of the numbers against them. The young Arab stayed loyal to his master and fought beside him with his knife drawn.
With tremendous blows the ape-man felled all who came within reach of his powerful hands. He fought quietly and without a word, upon his lips the same half smile they had worn as he rose to strike down the man who had insulted him. It seemed impossible that either he or Abdul could survive the sea of wicked-looking swords and knives that surrounded them, but the very numbers of their assailants proved the best bulwark of their safety. So closely packed was the howling, cursing mob that no weapon could be wielded to advantage, and none of the Arabs dared use a firearm for fear of wounding one of his compatriots.
With powerful strikes, the ape-man took down everyone who got within reach of his strong hands. He fought silently and without a word, wearing the same half-smile he had when he got ready to attack the man who had insulted him. It seemed impossible that either he or Abdul could survive the sea of menacing swords and knives that surrounded them, but the sheer number of their attackers ended up being their best defense. The howling, cursing mob was so tightly packed that no one could swing a weapon effectively, and none of the Arabs dared to use a gun for fear of hitting one of their own.
Finally Tarzan succeeded in seizing one of the most persistent of his attackers. With a quick wrench he disarmed the fellow, and then, holding him before them as a shield, he backed slowly beside Abdul toward the little door which led into the inner courtyard. At the threshold he paused for an instant, and, lifting the struggling Arab above his head, hurled him, as though from a catapult, full in the faces of his on-pressing fellows.
Finally, Tarzan managed to grab one of his most persistent attackers. With a swift motion, he disarmed the guy, and then, using him as a shield, he slowly backed up next to Abdul toward the small door that led into the inner courtyard. At the doorway, he paused for a moment and, lifting the struggling Arab above his head, threw him like a catapult right into the faces of the advancing attackers.
Then Tarzan and Abdul stepped into the semidarkness of the court. The frightened Ouled-Nails were crouching at the tops of the stairs which led to their respective rooms, the only light in the courtyard coming from the sickly candles which each girl had stuck with its own grease to the woodwork of her door-frame, the better to display her charms to those who might happen to traverse the dark inclosure.
Then Tarzan and Abdul stepped into the dim light of the courtyard. The scared Ouled-Nails were huddled at the top of the stairs leading to their rooms, with the only light in the courtyard coming from the weak candles each girl had stuck with her own grease to the woodwork of her doorframe, so they could showcase their beauty to anyone passing through the dark space.
Scarcely had Tarzan and Abdul emerged from the room ere a revolver spoke close at their backs from the shadows beneath one of the stairways, and as they turned to meet this new antagonist, two muffled figures sprang toward them, firing as they came. Tarzan leaped to meet these two new assailants. The foremost lay, a second later, in the trampled dirt of the court, disarmed and groaning from a broken wrist. Abdul’s knife found the vitals of the second in the instant that the fellow’s revolver missed fire as he held it to the faithful Arab’s forehead.
Barely had Tarzan and Abdul stepped out of the room when a gunshot rang out from the shadows beneath one of the stairways. As they turned to face this new threat, two masked figures lunged towards them, firing as they approached. Tarzan jumped to confront these attackers. In an instant, the first one was lying in the dirt of the courtyard, disarmed and groaning from a broken wrist. Abdul's knife found its mark in the second assailant just as the guy's gun misfired while it was aimed at the loyal Arab's forehead.
The maddened horde within the café were now rushing out in pursuit of their quarry. The Ouled-Nails had extinguished their candles at a cry from one of their number, and the only light within the yard came feebly from the open and half-blocked door of the café. Tarzan had seized a sword from the man who had fallen before Abdul’s knife, and now he stood waiting for the rush of men that was coming in search of them through the darkness.
The frenzied crowd inside the café was now rushing out to chase down their target. The Ouled-Nails had blown out their candles at a shout from one of their own, and the only light in the yard came dimly from the open and partially blocked door of the café. Tarzan had grabbed a sword from the man who had fallen to Abdul’s knife, and now he stood ready for the rush of men that was approaching through the darkness.
Suddenly he felt a light hand upon his shoulder from behind, and a woman’s voice whispering, “Quick, m’sieur; this way. Follow me.”
Suddenly, he felt a gentle hand on his shoulder from behind, and a woman's voice whispered, “Hurry, sir; this way. Follow me.”
“Come, Abdul,” said Tarzan, in a low tone, to the youth; “we can be no worse off elsewhere than we are here.”
“Come on, Abdul,” said Tarzan quietly to the young man; “we can't be worse off anywhere else than we are here.”
The woman turned and led them up the narrow stairway that ended at the door of her quarters. Tarzan was close beside her. He saw the gold and silver bracelets upon her bare arms, the strings of gold coin that depended from her hair ornaments, and the gorgeous colors of her dress. He saw that she was a Ouled-Nail, and instinctively he knew that she was the same who had whispered the warning in his ear earlier in the evening.
The woman turned and guided them up the narrow staircase that ended at the door to her room. Tarzan was right beside her. He noticed the gold and silver bracelets on her bare arms, the strings of gold coins hanging from her hair accessories, and the vibrant colors of her dress. He recognized that she was a Ouled-Nail, and he instinctively realized she was the one who had whispered the warning in his ear earlier that evening.
As they reached the top of the stairs they could hear the angry crowd searching the yard beneath.
As they got to the top of the stairs, they could hear the furious crowd searching the yard below.
“Soon they will search here,” whispered the girl. “They must not find you, for, though you fight with the strength of many men, they will kill you in the end. Hasten; you can drop from the farther window of my room to the street beyond. Before they discover that you are no longer in the court of the buildings you will be safe within the hotel.”
“Soon they’ll search here,” whispered the girl. “They must not find you, because even though you fight with the strength of many men, they will kill you in the end. Hurry; you can jump from the window at the far end of my room to the street below. Before they realize you’re no longer in the courtyard of the buildings, you will be safe inside the hotel.”
But even as she spoke, several men had started up the stairway at the head of which they stood. There was a sudden cry from one of the searchers. They had been discovered. Quickly the crowd rushed for the stairway. The foremost assailant leaped quickly upward, but at the top he met the sudden sword that he had not expected—the quarry had been unarmed before.
But even as she talked, several men started up the stairs at the top of which they stood. There was a sudden shout from one of the searchers. They had been found out. Quickly, the crowd rushed for the stairs. The first attacker jumped up fast, but at the top, he unexpectedly encountered the sword he hadn't seen coming—the target had been unarmed before.
With a cry, the man toppled back upon those behind him. Like tenpins they rolled down the stairs. The ancient and rickety structure could not withstand the strain of this unwonted weight and jarring. With a creaking and rending of breaking wood it collapsed beneath the Arabs, leaving Tarzan, Abdul, and the girl alone upon the frail platform at the top.
With a shout, the man fell back onto the people behind him. They tumbled down the stairs like bowling pins. The old and shaky building couldn't handle the unexpected weight and impact. With a creaking and splintering of breaking wood, it collapsed beneath the Arabs, leaving Tarzan, Abdul, and the girl alone on the fragile platform at the top.
“Come!” cried the Ouled-Nail. “They will reach us from another stairway through the room next to mine. We have not a moment to spare.”
“Come!” shouted the Ouled-Nail. “They’ll come at us from another staircase through the room next to mine. We don’t have a moment to waste.”
Just as they were entering the room Abdul heard and translated a cry from the yard below for several to hasten to the street and cut off escape from that side.
Just as they were entering the room, Abdul heard and translated a shout from the yard below, urging several people to hurry to the street and block off any escape from that side.
“We are lost now,” said the girl simply.
“We're lost now,” the girl said plainly.
“We?” questioned Tarzan.
"We?" asked Tarzan.
“Yes, m’sieur,” she responded; “they will kill me as well. Have I not aided you?”
“Yes, sir,” she replied; “they will kill me too. Haven't I helped you?”
This put a different aspect on the matter. Tarzan had rather been enjoying the excitement and danger of the encounter. He had not for an instant supposed that either Abdul or the girl could suffer except through accident, and he had only retreated just enough to keep from being killed himself. He had had no intention of running away until he saw that he was hopelessly lost were he to remain.
This changed the situation. Tarzan had actually been enjoying the thrill and danger of the encounter. He hadn’t thought for a second that either Abdul or the girl could get hurt except by accident, and he had only stepped back just enough to avoid getting killed himself. He hadn’t planned on running away until he realized he would be completely lost if he stayed.
Alone he could have sprung into the midst of that close-packed mob, and, laying about him after the fashion of Numa, the lion, have struck the Arabs with such consternation that escape would have been easy. Now he must think entirely of these two faithful friends.
Alone, he could have jumped right into the middle of that tightly packed crowd and, fighting like Numa the lion, could have struck fear into the Arabs so that escaping would have been easy. Now he had to focus entirely on these two loyal friends.
He crossed to the window which overlooked the street. In a minute there would be enemies below. Already he could hear the mob clambering the stairway to the next quarters—they would be at the door beside him in another instant. He put a foot upon the sill and leaned out, but he did not look down. Above him, within arm’s reach, was the low roof of the building. He called to the girl. She came and stood beside him. He put a great arm about her and lifted her across his shoulder.
He walked over to the window that looked out onto the street. In a minute, there would be enemies below. He could already hear the crowd climbing the stairs to the next floor—they would be at the door next to him any second now. He put a foot on the ledge and leaned out, but he didn’t look down. Above him, within reach, was the low roof of the building. He called for the girl. She came and stood next to him. He wrapped a strong arm around her and lifted her over his shoulder.
“Wait here until I reach down for you from above,” he said to Abdul. “In the meantime shove everything in the room against that door—it may delay them long enough.” Then he stepped to the sill of the narrow window with the girl upon his shoulders. “Hold tight,” he cautioned her. A moment later he had clambered to the roof above with the ease and dexterity of an ape. Setting the girl down, he leaned far over the roof’s edge, calling softly to Abdul. The youth ran to the window.
“Wait here until I reach for you from above,” he told Abdul. “In the meantime, push everything in the room against that door—it might hold them off long enough.” Then he stepped to the edge of the narrow window with the girl on his shoulders. “Hold on tight,” he warned her. A moment later, he climbed up to the roof with the agility of a monkey. Setting the girl down, he leaned over the roof’s edge, calling softly to Abdul. The young man ran to the window.
“Your hand,” whispered Tarzan. The men in the room beyond were battering at the door. With a sudden crash it fell splintering in, and at the same instant Abdul felt himself lifted like a feather onto the roof above. They were not a moment too soon, for as the men broke into the room which they had just quitted a dozen more rounded the corner in the street below and came running to a spot beneath the girl’s window.
“Your hand,” whispered Tarzan. The men in the next room were smashing the door. With a loud crash, it burst open and at the same moment, Abdul felt himself being lifted effortlessly onto the roof above. They weren’t a second too late, because just as the men entered the room they had just left, a dozen more turned the corner in the street below and rushed to a spot under the girl’s window.
Chapter VIII
The Fight in the Desert
As the three squatted upon the roof above the quarters of the Ouled-Nails they heard the angry cursing of the Arabs in the room beneath. Abdul translated from time to time to Tarzan.
As the three crouched on the roof above the quarters of the Ouled-Nails, they could hear the furious cursing of the Arabs in the room below. Abdul occasionally translated for Tarzan.
“They are berating those in the street below now,” said Abdul, “for permitting us to escape so easily. Those in the street say that we did not come that way—that we are still within the building, and that those above, being too cowardly to attack us, are attempting to deceive them into believing that we have escaped. In a moment they will have fighting of their own to attend to if they continue their brawling.”
“They're yelling at the people in the street below now,” said Abdul, “for letting us get away so easily. The people in the street say we didn’t come that way—that we’re still inside the building, and that those above, too scared to come after us, are trying to trick them into thinking we’ve escaped. Any minute now, they’ll have their own fight to deal with if they keep this up.”
Presently those in the building gave up the search, and returned to the café. A few remained in the street below, smoking and talking.
Currently, the people in the building stopped looking and went back to the café. A few stayed on the street below, smoking and chatting.
Tarzan spoke to the girl, thanking her for the sacrifice she had made for him, a total stranger.
Tarzan thanked the girl for the sacrifice she had made for him, a complete stranger.
“I liked you,” she said simply. “You were unlike the others who come to the café. You did not speak coarsely to me—the manner in which you gave me money was not an insult.”
“I liked you,” she said simply. “You were different from the others who come to the café. You didn’t talk rudely to me—the way you handed me money wasn’t an insult.”
“What shall you do after tonight?” he asked. “You cannot return to the café. Can you even remain with safety in Sidi Aissa?”
“What are you going to do after tonight?” he asked. “You can't go back to the café. Can you even stay safely in Sidi Aissa?”
“Tomorrow it will be forgotten,” she replied. “But I should be glad if it might be that I need never return to this or another café. I have not remained because I wished to; I have been a prisoner.”
“Tomorrow it will be forgotten,” she said. “But I would be happy if I never have to come back to this or any other café. I haven't stayed here because I wanted to; I've been stuck.”
“A prisoner!” ejaculated Tarzan incredulously.
“A prisoner!” exclaimed Tarzan incredulously.
“A slave would be the better word,” she answered. “I was stolen in the night from my father’s douar by a band of marauders. They brought me here and sold me to the Arab who keeps this café. It has been nearly two years now since I saw the last of mine own people. They are very far to the south. They never come to Sidi Aissa.”
“A slave would be the better word,” she answered. “I was taken in the night from my father’s douar by a group of raiders. They brought me here and sold me to the Arab who runs this café. It has been almost two years since I last saw my own people. They are very far to the south. They never come to Sidi Aissa.”
“You would like to return to your people?” asked Tarzan. “Then I shall promise to see you safely so far as Bou Saada at least. There we can doubtless arrange with the commandant to send you the rest of the way.”
“You want to go back to your people?” asked Tarzan. “Then I promise to make sure you get to Bou Saada safely, at the very least. From there, we can probably work something out with the commandant to help you get the rest of the way.”
“Oh, m’sieur,” she cried, “how can I ever repay you! You cannot really mean that you will do so much for a poor Ouled-Nail. But my father can reward you, and he will, for is he not a great sheik? He is Kadour ben Saden.”
“Oh, sir,” she exclaimed, “how can I ever repay you! You can’t seriously mean that you’ll do all this for a poor Ouled-Nail. But my father can reward you, and he will, because isn’t he a great sheik? He is Kadour ben Saden.”
“Kadour ben Saden!” ejaculated Tarzan. “Why, Kadour ben Saden is in Sidi Aissa this very night. He dined with me but a few hours since.”
“Kadour ben Saden!” exclaimed Tarzan. “Why, Kadour ben Saden is in Sidi Aissa tonight. He had dinner with me just a few hours ago.”
“My father in Sidi Aissa?” cried the amazed girl. “Allah be praised then, for I am indeed saved.”
“My dad in Sidi Aissa?” exclaimed the amazed girl. “Thank God then, because I’m truly saved.”
“Hssh!” cautioned Abdul. “Listen.”
“Hush!” cautioned Abdul. “Listen.”
From below came the sound of voices, quite distinguishable upon the still night air. Tarzan could not understand the words, but Abdul and the girl translated.
From below came the sound of voices, clearly audible in the still night air. Tarzan couldn't understand the words, but Abdul and the girl translated.
“They have gone now,” said the latter. “It is you they want, m’sieur. One of them said that the stranger who had offered money for your slaying lay in the house of Akmed din Soulef with a broken wrist, but that he had offered a still greater reward if some would lay in wait for you upon the road to Bou Saada and kill you.”
“They've left now,” said the other. “It's you they're after, sir. One of them mentioned that the stranger who had put out money for your death is in the house of Akmed din Soulef with a broken wrist, but he has offered an even bigger reward if someone would wait for you on the road to Bou Saada and take you out.”
“It is he who followed m’sieur about the market today,” exclaimed Abdul. “I saw him again within the café—him and another; and the two went out into the inner court after talking with this girl here. It was they who attacked and fired upon us, as we came out of the café. Why do they wish to kill you, m’sieur?”
“It’s him who followed you around the market today,” exclaimed Abdul. “I saw him again at the café—him and someone else; and the two went out into the inner court after talking to this girl here. They were the ones who attacked and shot at us when we left the café. Why do they want to kill you, sir?”
“I do not know,” replied Tarzan, and then, after a pause: “Unless—” But he did not finish, for the thought that had come to his mind, while it seemed the only reasonable solution of the mystery, appeared at the same time quite improbable. Presently the men in the street went away. The courtyard and the café were deserted. Cautiously Tarzan lowered himself to the sill of the girl’s window. The room was empty. He returned to the roof and let Abdul down, then he lowered the girl to the arms of the waiting Arab.
“I don’t know,” Tarzan replied, then after a pause: “Unless—” But he didn’t finish, because the thought that came to him, which seemed like the only reasonable explanation for the mystery, also felt quite unlikely. Soon, the men in the street left. The courtyard and the café were empty. Carefully, Tarzan lowered himself to the sill of the girl’s window. The room was vacant. He returned to the roof and let Abdul down, then he lowered the girl into the arms of the waiting Arab.
From the window Abdul dropped the short distance to the street below, while Tarzan took the girl in his arms and leaped down as he had done on so many other occasions in his own forest with a burden in his arms. A little cry of alarm was startled from the girl’s lips, but Tarzan landed in the street with but an imperceptible jar, and lowered her in safety to her feet.
From the window, Abdul dropped the short distance to the street below, while Tarzan picked up the girl in his arms and jumped down as he had done countless times in his own forest with a load to carry. The girl let out a small cry of surprise, but Tarzan landed in the street with barely a jolt and gently set her down on her feet.
She clung to him for a moment.
She held onto him for a moment.
“How strong m’sieur is, and how active,” she cried. “El Adrea, the black lion, himself is not more so.”
“How strong you are, sir, and how lively,” she exclaimed. “El Adrea, the black lion, himself is not more so.”
“I should like to meet this el Adrea of yours,” he said. “I have heard much about him.”
“I'd like to meet this el Adrea of yours,” he said. “I've heard a lot about him.”
“And you come to the douar of my father you shall see him,” said the girl. “He lives in a spur of the mountains north of us, and comes down from his lair at night to rob my father’s douar. With a single blow of his mighty paw he crushes the skull of a bull, and woe betide the belated wayfarer who meets el Adrea abroad at night.”
“And when you get to my father's douar, you'll see him,” the girl said. “He lives on a mountain ridge to the north of us, and he comes down from his hideout at night to steal from my father's douar. With one powerful strike of his huge paw, he can crush a bull's skull, and anyone who encounters el Adrea outside at night is in for trouble.”
Without further mishap they reached the hotel. The sleepy landlord objected strenuously to instituting a search for Kadour ben Saden until the following morning, but a piece of gold put a different aspect on the matter, so that a few moments later a servant had started to make the rounds of the lesser native hostelries where it might be expected that a desert sheik would find congenial associations. Tarzan had felt it necessary to find the girl’s father that night, for fear he might start on his homeward journey too early in the morning to be intercepted.
Without any more trouble, they arrived at the hotel. The sleepy landlord strongly opposed starting a search for Kadour ben Saden until the next morning, but a gold coin changed his mind. A few moments later, a servant began to check the smaller native inns where a desert sheik might be found. Tarzan felt it was urgent to locate the girl's father that night, worried he might leave for home too early in the morning to be stopped.
They had waited perhaps half an hour when the messenger returned with Kadour ben Saden. The old sheik entered the room with a questioning expression upon his proud face.
They had waited maybe half an hour when the messenger came back with Kadour ben Saden. The old sheik walked into the room with a questioning look on his proud face.
“Monsieur has done me the honor to—” he commenced, and then his eyes fell upon the girl. With outstretched arms he crossed the room to meet her. “My daughter!” he cried. “Allah is merciful!” and tears dimmed the martial eyes of the old warrior.
“Monsieur has honored me by—” he started, and then his gaze landed on the girl. With open arms, he crossed the room to reach her. “My daughter!” he exclaimed. “Allah is merciful!” and tears blurred the fierce eyes of the old warrior.
When the story of her abduction and her final rescue had been told to Kadour ben Saden he extended his hand to Tarzan.
When Kadour ben Saden heard the story of her kidnapping and eventual rescue, he reached out his hand to Tarzan.
“All that is Kadour ben Saden’s is thine, my friend, even to his life,” he said very simply, but Tarzan knew that those were no idle words.
“All that belongs to Kadour ben Saden is yours, my friend, even his life,” he said plainly, but Tarzan understood that those were not just empty words.
It was decided that although three of them would have to ride after practically no sleep, it would be best to make an early start in the morning, and attempt to ride all the way to Bou Saada in one day. It would have been comparatively easy for the men, but for the girl it was sure to be a fatiguing journey.
It was decided that even though three of them would have to ride with hardly any sleep, it would be best to set off early in the morning and try to reach Bou Saada in a single day. This would be relatively easy for the men, but it would definitely be a tiring journey for the girl.
She, however, was the most anxious to undertake it, for it seemed to her that she could not quickly enough reach the family and friends from whom she had been separated for two years.
She was the most eager to take it on, as it felt to her that she couldn’t get to her family and friends, whom she had been away from for two years, fast enough.
It seemed to Tarzan that he had not closed his eyes before he was awakened, and in another hour the party was on its way south toward Bou Saada. For a few miles the road was good, and they made rapid progress, but suddenly it became only a waste of sand, into which the horses sank fetlock deep at nearly every step. In addition to Tarzan, Abdul, the sheik, and his daughter were four of the wild plainsmen of the sheik’s tribe who had accompanied him upon the trip to Sidi Aissa. Thus, seven guns strong, they entertained little fear of attack by day, and if all went well they should reach Bou Saada before nightfall.
It felt to Tarzan like he hadn’t even closed his eyes before he was woken up, and in another hour, the group was heading south toward Bou Saada. For a few miles, the road was good, and they made quick progress, but then it suddenly turned into a stretch of sand, where the horses sank up to their fetlocks with almost every step. Along with Tarzan, Abdul, the sheik, and his daughter, there were four wild plainsmen from the sheik’s tribe who had joined him for the trip to Sidi Aissa. So, with seven guns in total, they were not too worried about an attack during the day, and if everything went smoothly, they should reach Bou Saada before nightfall.
A brisk wind enveloped them in the blowing sand of the desert, until Tarzan’s lips were parched and cracked. What little he could see of the surrounding country was far from alluring—a vast expanse of rough country, rolling in little, barren hillocks, and tufted here and there with clumps of dreary shrub. Far to the south rose the dim lines of the Saharan Atlas range. How different, thought Tarzan, from the gorgeous Africa of his boyhood!
A strong wind surrounded them, scattering sand from the desert, until Tarzan’s lips were dry and cracked. What little he could see of the area was far from appealing—a huge stretch of rough terrain, dotted with small, barren hills, and sporadically filled with patches of dull shrubs. In the distance to the south, the faint outline of the Saharan Atlas mountains appeared. How different this was, Tarzan thought, from the beautiful Africa of his childhood!
Abdul, always on the alert, looked backward quite as often as he did ahead. At the top of each hillock that they mounted he would draw in his horse and, turning, scan the country to the rear with utmost care. At last his scrutiny was rewarded.
Abdul, always on the lookout, glanced back as frequently as he looked forward. At the top of each hill they climbed, he would pull in his horse and, turning around, carefully surveyed the land behind them. Finally, his watchfulness paid off.
“Look!” he cried. “There are six horsemen behind us.”
“Look!” he shouted. “There are six horsemen following us.”
“Your friends of last evening, no doubt, monsieur,” remarked Kadour ben Saden dryly to Tarzan.
“Your friends from last night, no doubt, sir,” said Kadour ben Saden dryly to Tarzan.
“No doubt,” replied the ape-man. “I am sorry that my society should endanger the safety of your journey. At the next village I shall remain and question these gentlemen, while you ride on. There is no necessity for my being at Bou Saada tonight, and less still why you should not ride in peace.”
“No doubt,” replied the ape-man. “I’m sorry that my society puts your journey at risk. At the next village, I’ll stay and question these gentlemen while you continue on. I don’t need to be in Bou Saada tonight, and there’s even less reason for you not to ride in peace.”
“If you stop we shall stop,” said Kadour ben Saden. “Until you are safe with your friends, or the enemy has left your trail, we shall remain with you. There is nothing more to say.”
“If you stop, we’ll stop,” said Kadour ben Saden. “Until you’re safe with your friends, or the enemy has lost your trail, we’ll stay with you. There’s nothing more to say.”
Tarzan nodded his head. He was a man of few words, and possibly it was for this reason as much as any that Kadour ben Saden had taken to him, for if there be one thing that an Arab despises it is a talkative man.
Tarzan nodded. He was a man of few words, and maybe that’s why Kadour ben Saden had warmed up to him, because if there’s one thing an Arab can’t stand, it’s a chatty person.
All the balance of the day Abdul caught glimpses of the horsemen in their rear. They remained always at about the same distance. During the occasional halts for rest, and at the longer halt at noon, they approached no closer.
All day long, Abdul caught glimpses of the horsemen behind him. They stayed at about the same distance the whole time. Even during the occasional breaks to rest, and the longer pause at noon, they didn’t get any closer.
“They are waiting for darkness,” said Kadour ben Saden.
“They’re waiting for nightfall,” said Kadour ben Saden.
And darkness came before they reached Bou Saada. The last glimpse that Abdul had of the grim, white-robed figures that trailed them, just before dusk made it impossible to distinguish them, had made it apparent that they were rapidly closing up the distance that intervened between them and their intended quarry. He whispered this fact to Tarzan, for he did not wish to alarm the girl. The ape-man drew back beside him.
And darkness fell before they got to Bou Saada. The last sight Abdul had of the grim, white-robed figures following them, just before it got dark enough to lose sight of them, made it clear that they were quickly closing the gap between them and their target. He quietly told this to Tarzan, not wanting to scare the girl. The ape-man moved back beside him.
“You will ride ahead with the others, Abdul,” said Tarzan. “This is my quarrel. I shall wait at the next convenient spot, and interview these fellows.”
“You’ll ride ahead with the others, Abdul,” said Tarzan. “This is my issue. I’ll wait at the next good spot and talk to these guys.”
“Then Abdul shall wait at thy side,” replied the young Arab, nor would any threats or commands move him from his decision.
“Then Abdul will wait by your side,” replied the young Arab, and no threats or commands would change his mind.
“Very well, then,” replied Tarzan. “Here is as good a place as we could wish. Here are rocks at the top of this hillock. We shall remain hidden here and give an account of ourselves to these gentlemen when they appear.”
“Alright, then,” replied Tarzan. “This spot is as good as any. We have rocks at the top of this hill. We'll stay hidden here and explain ourselves to these gentlemen when they show up.”
They drew in their horses and dismounted. The others riding ahead were already out of sight in the darkness. Beyond them shone the lights of Bou Saada. Tarzan removed his rifle from its boot and loosened his revolver in its holster. He ordered Abdul to withdraw behind the rocks with the horses, so that they should be shielded from the enemies’ bullets should they fire. The young Arab pretended to do as he was bid, but when he had fastened the two animals securely to a low shrub he crept back to lie on his belly a few paces behind Tarzan.
They pulled in their horses and got down. The others riding ahead had already disappeared into the darkness. Beyond them, the lights of Bou Saada glimmered. Tarzan took his rifle out of its boot and adjusted his revolver in its holster. He told Abdul to move behind the rocks with the horses to protect them from any bullets if they fired. The young Arab acted like he was following orders, but after tying the two animals securely to a low shrub, he stealthily crawled back and lay on his belly a few paces behind Tarzan.
The ape-man stood erect in the middle of the road, waiting. Nor did he have long to wait. The sound of galloping horses came suddenly out of the darkness below him, and a moment later he discerned the moving blotches of lighter color against the solid background of the night.
The ape-man stood up straight in the middle of the road, waiting. He didn’t have to wait long. The sound of galloping horses suddenly emerged from the darkness below him, and a moment later he noticed the moving patches of lighter color against the solid backdrop of the night.
“Halt,” he cried, “or we fire!”
“Halt,” he shouted, “or we’ll shoot!”
The white figures came to a sudden stop, and for a moment there was silence. Then came the sound of a whispered council, and like ghosts the phantom riders dispersed in all directions. Again the desert lay still about him, yet it was an ominous stillness that foreboded evil.
The white figures suddenly stopped, and for a moment, there was silence. Then came the sound of a whispered discussion, and like ghosts, the phantom riders scattered in all directions. Again, the desert was quiet around him, but it was an unsettling quiet that hinted at danger.
Abdul raised himself to one knee. Tarzan cocked his jungle-trained ears, and presently there came to him the sound of horses walking quietly through the sand to the east of him, to the west, to the north, and to the south. They had been surrounded. Then a shot came from the direction in which he was looking, a bullet whirred through the air above his head, and he fired at the flash of the enemy’s gun.
Abdul got down on one knee. Tarzan tuned his jungle-honed senses, and soon he heard the sound of horses walking quietly through the sand all around him—east, west, north, and south. They were surrounded. Then, a shot came from the direction he was facing; a bullet whizzed through the air above his head, and he fired at the flash of the enemy’s gun.
Instantly the soundless waste was torn with the quick staccato of guns upon every hand. Abdul and Tarzan fired only at the flashes—they could not yet see their foemen. Presently it became evident that the attackers were circling their position, drawing closer and closer in as they began to realize the paltry numbers of the party which opposed them.
Instantly, the silent wasteland erupted with the rapid crack of gunfire all around. Abdul and Tarzan shot only at the flashes—they couldn’t see their enemies yet. Soon, it became clear that the attackers were circling their position, getting closer as they began to realize how few people were opposing them.
But one came too close, for Tarzan was accustomed to using his eyes in the darkness of the jungle night, than which there is no more utter darkness this side the grave, and with a cry of pain a saddle was emptied.
But one got too close, because Tarzan was used to relying on his eyes in the darkness of the jungle night, which is more complete darkness than anything beyond the grave, and with a cry of pain, a saddle was emptied.
“The odds are evening, Abdul,” said Tarzan, with a low laugh.
“The odds are leveling out, Abdul,” said Tarzan, with a quiet laugh.
But they were still far too one-sided, and when the five remaining horsemen whirled at a signal and charged full upon them it looked as if there would be a sudden ending of the battle. Both Tarzan and Abdul sprang to the shelter of the rocks, that they might keep the enemy in front of them. There was a mad clatter of galloping hoofs, a volley of shots from both sides, and the Arabs withdrew to repeat the maneuver; but there were now only four against the two.
But they were still way too one-sided, and when the five remaining horsemen turned at a signal and charged straight at them, it seemed like the battle would suddenly come to an end. Both Tarzan and Abdul jumped to the safety of the rocks so they could keep the enemy in front of them. There was a wild noise of galloping hooves, a barrage of gunfire from both sides, and the Arabs pulled back to do the same thing again; but now there were only four against the two.
For a few moments there came no sound from out of the surrounding blackness. Tarzan could not tell whether the Arabs, satisfied with their losses, had given up the fight, or were waiting farther along the road to waylay them as they proceeded on toward Bou Saada. But he was not left long in doubt, for now all from one direction came the sound of a new charge. But scarcely had the first gun spoken ere a dozen shots rang out behind the Arabs. There came the wild shouts of a new party to the controversy, and the pounding of the feet of many horses from down the road to Bou Saada.
For a few moments, there was no sound from the surrounding darkness. Tarzan couldn't tell if the Arabs, content with their losses, had given up the fight or were waiting further down the road to ambush them as they continued toward Bou Saada. But he didn't stay uncertain for long, as suddenly, the sound of a new charge came from one direction. Just as the first gun fired, a dozen shots rang out behind the Arabs. There were wild shouts from a new group joining the conflict, along with the sound of many horses pounding down the road to Bou Saada.
The Arabs did not wait to learn the identity of the oncomers. With a parting volley as they dashed by the position which Tarzan and Abdul were holding, they plunged off along the road toward Sidi Aissa. A moment later Kadour ben Saden and his men dashed up.
The Arabs didn’t stick around to find out who was coming. With a final shot as they rushed past where Tarzan and Abdul were standing, they took off down the road toward Sidi Aissa. A moment later, Kadour ben Saden and his crew came running up.
The old sheik was much relieved to find that neither Tarzan nor Abdul had received a scratch. Not even had their horses been wounded. They sought out the two men who had fallen before Tarzan’s shots, and, finding that both were dead, left them where they lay.
The old sheik felt a huge sense of relief to see that neither Tarzan nor Abdul had been hurt. Not even their horses had sustained any injuries. They looked for the two men who had fallen from Tarzan’s shots and, discovering that both were dead, left them where they were.
“Why did you not tell me that you contemplated ambushing those fellows?” asked the sheik in a hurt tone. “We might have had them all if the seven of us had stopped to meet them.”
“Why didn’t you tell me you were thinking about ambushing those guys?” the sheik asked, sounding hurt. “We could have taken them all if the seven of us had paused to meet them.”
“Then it would have been useless to stop at all,” replied Tarzan, “for had we simply ridden on toward Bou Saada they would have been upon us presently, and all could have been engaged. It was to prevent the transfer of my own quarrel to another’s shoulders that Abdul and I stopped off to question them. Then there is your daughter—I could not be the cause of exposing her needlessly to the marksmanship of six men.”
“Then it would have been pointless to stop at all,” replied Tarzan, “because if we had just continued toward Bou Saada, they would have attacked us soon enough, and everyone would have been involved. Abdul and I decided to stop and question them to avoid dragging my own fight onto someone else. And then there’s your daughter—I couldn’t let her be unnecessarily exposed to the gunfire from six men.”
Kadour ben Saden shrugged his shoulders. He did not relish having been cheated out of a fight.
Kadour ben Saden shrugged his shoulders. He didn't enjoy being tricked out of a fight.
The little battle so close to Bou Saada had drawn out a company of soldiers. Tarzan and his party met them just outside the town. The officer in charge halted them to learn the significance of the shots.
The small skirmish near Bou Saada had brought out a group of soldiers. Tarzan and his team encountered them just outside the town. The officer in charge stopped them to find out what the gunfire was about.
“A handful of marauders,” replied Kadour ben Saden. “They attacked two of our number who had dropped behind, but when we returned to them the fellows soon dispersed. They left two dead. None of my party was injured.”
“A few marauders,” replied Kadour ben Saden. “They attacked two of our people who had fallen behind, but when we went back to them, the guys quickly scattered. They left two dead. None of my group was hurt.”
This seemed to satisfy the officer, and after taking the names of the party he marched his men on toward the scene of the skirmish to bring back the dead men for purposes of identification, if possible.
This seemed to satisfy the officer, and after taking the names of the group, he led his men toward the site of the skirmish to bring back the deceased for identification, if possible.
Two days later, Kadour ben Saden, with his daughter and followers, rode south through the pass below Bou Saada, bound for their home in the far wilderness. The sheik had urged Tarzan to accompany him, and the girl had added her entreaties to those of her father; but, though he could not explain it to them, Tarzan’s duties loomed particularly large after the happenings of the past few days, so that he could not think of leaving his post for an instant. But he promised to come later if it lay within his power to do so, and they had to content themselves with that assurance.
Two days later, Kadour ben Saden, along with his daughter and followers, rode south through the pass below Bou Saada, heading home to the remote wilderness. The sheik had asked Tarzan to join him, and his daughter had added her pleas to her father's; but even though he couldn't explain it to them, Tarzan felt an overwhelming sense of duty after the events of the past few days, so he couldn’t consider leaving his post for even a moment. However, he promised to come later if he could, and they had to settle for that assurance.
During these two days Tarzan had spent practically all his time with Kadour ben Saden and his daughter. He was keenly interested in this race of stern and dignified warriors, and embraced the opportunity which their friendship offered to learn what he could of their lives and customs. He even commenced to acquire the rudiments of their language under the pleasant tutorage of the brown-eyed girl. It was with real regret that he saw them depart, and he sat his horse at the opening to the pass, as far as which he had accompanied them, gazing after the little party as long as he could catch a glimpse of them.
During these two days, Tarzan had spent almost all his time with Kadour ben Saden and his daughter. He was really interested in this group of serious and noble warriors, and took the chance their friendship gave him to learn about their lives and traditions. He even started to pick up the basics of their language, thanks to the enjoyable lessons from the brown-eyed girl. He felt a genuine sadness when they left, and he remained on his horse at the entrance to the pass, as far as he had accompanied them, watching the small group until they disappeared from view.
Here were people after his own heart! Their wild, rough lives, filled with danger and hardship, appealed to this half-savage man as nothing had appealed to him in the midst of the effeminate civilization of the great cities he had visited. Here was a life that excelled even that of the jungle, for here he might have the society of men—real men whom he could honor and respect, and yet be near to the wild nature that he loved. In his head revolved an idea that when he had completed his mission he would resign and return to live for the remainder of his life with the tribe of Kadour ben Saden.
Here were people who resonated with him! Their wild, tough lives, filled with danger and struggles, attracted this somewhat wild man more than anything had in the soft civilization of the big cities he had visited. This was a life that surpassed even that of the jungle, because here he could be around real men—men he could admire and respect—while still being close to the wild nature he adored. He imagined that once he finished his mission, he would quit and go back to live the rest of his life with the tribe of Kadour ben Saden.
Then he turned his horse’s head and rode slowly back to Bou Saada.
Then he turned his horse around and rode slowly back to Bou Saada.
The front of the Hotel du Petit Sahara, where Tarzan stopped in Bou Saada, is taken up with the bar, two dining-rooms, and the kitchens. Both of the dining-rooms open directly off the bar, and one of them is reserved for the use of the officers of the garrison. As you stand in the barroom you may look into either of the dining-rooms if you wish.
The front of the Hotel du Petit Sahara, where Tarzan paused in Bou Saada, features the bar, two dining rooms, and the kitchens. Both dining rooms open straight off the bar, with one reserved for the garrison officers. If you stand in the bar, you can see into either dining room if you'd like.
It was to the bar that Tarzan repaired after speeding Kadour ben Saden and his party on their way. It was yet early in the morning, for Kadour ben Saden had elected to ride far that day, so that it happened that when Tarzan returned there were guests still at breakfast.
It was to the bar that Tarzan went after sending Kadour ben Saden and his group on their way. It was still early in the morning, since Kadour ben Saden had chosen to ride far that day, so when Tarzan returned, there were still guests having breakfast.
As his casual glance wandered into the officers’ dining-room, Tarzan saw something which brought a look of interest to his eyes. Lieutenant Gernois was sitting there, and as Tarzan looked a white-robed Arab approached and, bending, whispered a few words into the lieutenant’s ear. Then he passed on out of the building through another door.
As his casual glance drifted into the officers’ dining room, Tarzan noticed something that sparked his interest. Lieutenant Gernois was sitting there, and as Tarzan observed, a white-robed Arab approached and leaned in to whisper a few words in the lieutenant’s ear. Then he exited the building through another door.
In itself the thing was nothing, but as the man had stooped to speak to the officer, Tarzan had caught sight of something which the accidental parting of the man’s burnoose had revealed—he carried his left arm in a sling.
The thing itself was insignificant, but as the man leaned down to talk to the officer, Tarzan noticed something that the chance opening of the man’s burnoose had shown—he had his left arm in a sling.
Chapter IX
Numa “El Adrea”
On the same day that Kadour ben Saden rode south the diligence from the north brought Tarzan a letter from D’Arnot which had been forwarded from Sidi-bel-Abbes. It opened the old wound that Tarzan would have been glad to have forgotten; yet he was not sorry that D’Arnot had written, for one at least of his subjects could never cease to interest the ape-man. Here is the letter:
On the same day that Kadour ben Saden rode south, the bus from the north brought Tarzan a letter from D’Arnot that had been sent over from Sidi-bel-Abbes. It reopened an old wound that Tarzan would have preferred to forget; however, he was glad that D’Arnot had reached out, because one of his subjects could never stop fascinating the ape-man. Here is the letter:
MY DEAR JEAN:
My Dear Jean:
Since last I wrote you I have been across to London on a matter of business. I was there but three days. The very first day I came upon an old friend of yours—quite unexpectedly—in Henrietta Street. Now you never in the world would guess whom. None other than Mr. Samuel T. Philander. But it is true. I can see your look of incredulity. Nor is this all. He insisted that I return to the hotel with him, and there I found the others—Professor Archimedes Q. Porter, Miss Porter, and that enormous black woman, Miss Porter’s maid—Esmeralda, you will recall. While I was there Clayton came in. They are to be married soon, or rather sooner, for I rather suspect that we shall receive announcements almost any day. On account of his father’s death it is to be a very quiet affair—only blood relatives.
Since the last time I wrote to you, I've been to London for a business matter. I was there for just three days. On the very first day, I unexpectedly ran into an old friend of yours on Henrietta Street. You won't believe who it was—none other than Mr. Samuel T. Philander. I can see the look of disbelief on your face. But that's not all. He insisted that I go back to the hotel with him, and there I found the others—Professor Archimedes Q. Porter, Miss Porter, and that huge black woman, Miss Porter’s maid—Esmeralda, you remember. While I was there, Clayton dropped by. They’re going to get married soon, or rather sooner than that, because I suspect we'll get announcements any day now. Due to his father's passing, it’s going to be a very low-key event—only close family.
While I was alone with Mr. Philander the old fellow became rather confidential. Said Miss Porter had already postponed the wedding on three different occasions. He confided that it appeared to him that she was not particularly anxious to marry Clayton at all; but this time it seems that it is quite likely to go through.
While I was alone with Mr. Philander, the old guy got pretty chatty. He said Miss Porter had already delayed the wedding three times. He shared that it seemed like she wasn't really eager to marry Clayton at all; but this time, it looks like it’s actually going to happen.
Of course they all asked after you, but I respected your wishes in the matter of your true origin, and only spoke to them of your present affairs.
Of course, they all asked about you, but I honored your wishes regarding your true origin and only talked to them about your current situation.
Miss Porter was especially interested in everything I had to say about you, and asked many questions. I am afraid I took a rather unchivalrous delight in picturing your desire and resolve to go back eventually to your native jungle. I was sorry afterward, for it did seem to cause her real anguish to contemplate the awful dangers to which you wished to return. “And yet,” she said, “I do not know. There are more unhappy fates than the grim and terrible jungle presents to Monsieur Tarzan. At least his conscience will be free from remorse. And there are moments of quiet and restfulness by day, and vistas of exquisite beauty. You may find it strange that I should say it, who experienced such terrifying experiences in that frightful forest, yet at times I long to return, for I cannot but feel that the happiest moments of my life were spent there.”
Miss Porter was really interested in everything I shared about you and asked a lot of questions. I have to admit I took a somewhat unchivalrous pleasure in imagining your eagerness and determination to one day return to your native jungle. I felt bad afterward because it seemed to genuinely upset her to think about the terrible dangers you wanted to go back to. “And yet,” she said, “I don’t know. There are worse fates than the grim and terrifying jungle that Monsieur Tarzan faces. At least his conscience will be free of guilt. And there are moments of peace and beauty during the day. It might seem strange for me to say this, having gone through such horrifying experiences in that dreadful forest, but sometimes I long to return because I can't help but feel that the happiest moments of my life were spent there.”
There was an expression of ineffable sadness on her face as she spoke, and I could not but feel that she knew that I knew her secret, and that this was her way of transmitting to you a last tender message from a heart that might still enshrine your memory, though its possessor belonged to another.
There was an indescribable sadness on her face as she spoke, and I couldn’t shake the feeling that she knew I knew her secret. This seemed like her way of sending you a final heartfelt message from a heart that might still hold your memory, even though its owner was with someone else.
Clayton appeared nervous and ill at ease while you were the subject of conversation. He wore a worried and harassed expression. Yet he was very kindly in his expressions of interest in you. I wonder if he suspects the truth about you?
Clayton looked anxious and uncomfortable while you were being talked about. He had a worried and stressed look on his face. Still, he was very nice in showing his concern for you. I wonder if he has an inkling of the truth about you?
Tennington came in with Clayton. They are great friends, you know. He is about to set out upon one of his interminable cruises in that yacht of his, and was urging the entire party to accompany him. Tried to inveigle me into it, too. Is thinking of circumnavigating Africa this time. I told him that his precious toy would take him and some of his friends to the bottom of the ocean one of these days if he didn’t get it out of his head that she was a liner or a battleship.
Tennington came in with Clayton. They're really good friends, you know. He's about to head out on one of his never-ending cruises in his yacht and kept trying to persuade everyone to join him. He even tried to get me to go along. This time, he's thinking about sailing around Africa. I told him that his precious toy would eventually take him and some of his friends to the bottom of the ocean if he didn't realize it's not a cruise ship or a battleship.
I returned to Paris day before yesterday, and yesterday I met the Count and Countess de Coude at the races. They inquired after you. De Coude really seems quite fond of you. Doesn’t appear to harbor the least ill will. Olga is as beautiful as ever, but a trifle subdued. I imagine that she learned a lesson through her acquaintance with you that will serve her in good stead during the balance of her life. It is fortunate for her, and for De Coude as well, that it was you and not another man more sophisticated.
I got back to Paris the day before yesterday, and yesterday I ran into Count and Countess de Coude at the races. They asked about you. De Coude really seems to care about you. He doesn’t seem to hold any grudges. Olga is still as beautiful as ever, but a bit more reserved. I bet she learned a lesson from getting to know you that will help her for the rest of her life. It’s lucky for her, and for De Coude too, that it was you and not some other, more sophisticated guy.
Had you really paid court to Olga’s heart I am afraid that there would have been no hope for either of you.
If you had truly pursued Olga’s heart, I’m afraid there would have been no hope for either of you.
She asked me to tell you that Nikolas had left France. She paid him twenty thousand francs to go away, and stay. She is congratulating herself that she got rid of him before he tried to carry out a threat he recently made her that he should kill you at the first opportunity. She said that she should hate to think that her brother’s blood was on your hands, for she is very fond of you, and made no bones in saying so before the count. It never for a moment seemed to occur to her that there might be any possibility of any other outcome of a meeting between you and Nikolas. The count quite agreed with her in that. He added that it would take a regiment of Rokoffs to kill you. He has a most healthy respect for your prowess.
She asked me to tell you that Nikolas has left France. She paid him twenty thousand francs to go away and stay away. She feels proud of herself for getting rid of him before he could act on a threat he recently made to kill you at the first chance he got. She said she would hate to think that her brother's blood was on your hands because she really cares about you and openly said so in front of the count. It never seemed to cross her mind that there could be any other outcome from a meeting between you and Nikolas. The count completely agreed with her on that. He added that it would take a whole army of Rokoffs to kill you. He has a strong respect for your abilities.
Have been ordered back to my ship. She sails from Havre in two days under sealed orders. If you will address me in her care, the letters will find me eventually. I shall write you as soon as another opportunity presents.
I've been ordered back to my ship. She leaves from Havre in two days with sealed orders. If you send any letters addressed to me in her care, they'll reach me eventually. I'll write to you as soon as I have another chance.
Your sincere friend,
PAUL D’ARNOT.
Your true friend,
PAUL D’ARNOT.
“I fear,” mused Tarzan, half aloud, “that Olga has thrown away her twenty thousand francs.”
"I’m afraid," Tarzan said to himself, "that Olga has wasted her twenty thousand francs."
He read over that part of D’Arnot’s letter several times in which he had quoted from his conversation with Jane Porter. Tarzan derived a rather pathetic happiness from it, but it was better than no happiness at all.
He read that part of D'Arnot's letter several times where he quoted his conversation with Jane Porter. Tarzan found a somewhat sad happiness in it, but it was better than having no happiness at all.
The following three weeks were quite uneventful. On several occasions Tarzan saw the mysterious Arab, and once again he had been exchanging words with Lieutenant Gernois; but no amount of espionage or shadowing by Tarzan revealed the Arab’s lodgings, the location of which Tarzan was anxious to ascertain.
The next three weeks were pretty uneventful. Tarzan spotted the mysterious Arab a few times, and once again he was seen talking to Lieutenant Gernois; but no amount of spying or following by Tarzan uncovered where the Arab was staying, a place that Tarzan was eager to find out.
Gernois, never cordial, had kept more than ever aloof from Tarzan since the episode in the dining-room of the hotel at Aumale. His attitude on the few occasions that they had been thrown together had been distinctly hostile.
Gernois, who was never friendly, had kept even more distance from Tarzan since the incident in the hotel dining room at Aumale. His behavior during the rare times they had been together was clearly hostile.
That he might keep up the appearance of the character he was playing, Tarzan spent considerable time hunting in the vicinity of Bou Saada. He would spend entire days in the foothills, ostensibly searching for gazelle, but on the few occasions that he came close enough to any of the beautiful little animals to harm them he invariably allowed them to escape without so much as taking his rifle from its boot. The ape-man could see no sport in slaughtering the most harmless and defenseless of God’s creatures for the mere pleasure of killing.
To maintain the appearance of the character he was portraying, Tarzan spent a lot of time hunting around Bou Saada. He would spend whole days in the foothills, seemingly looking for gazelles, but on the rare occasions he got close enough to any of the beautiful little animals to hurt them, he always let them go without even taking his rifle out of its holster. The ape-man saw no fun in killing the most harmless and defenseless of God's creatures just for the thrill of it.
In fact, Tarzan had never killed for “pleasure,” nor to him was there pleasure in killing. It was the joy of righteous battle that he loved—the ecstasy of victory. And the keen and successful hunt for food in which he pitted his skill and craftiness against the skill and craftiness of another; but to come out of a town filled with food to shoot down a soft-eyed, pretty gazelle—ah, that was crueller than the deliberate and cold-blooded murder of a fellow man. Tarzan would have none of it, and so he hunted alone that none might discover the sham that he was practicing.
In fact, Tarzan had never killed for “pleasure,” nor did he find pleasure in killing. He loved the thrill of a righteous fight—the excitement of winning. He enjoyed the keen and successful hunt for food where he tested his skill and cleverness against that of another. But coming out of a town full of food to shoot a soft-eyed, beautiful gazelle—ah, that was crueler than the cold-blooded murder of another person. Tarzan wanted no part of it, so he hunted alone to keep his secret from being discovered.
And once, probably because of the fact that he rode alone, he was like to have lost his life. He was riding slowly through a little ravine when a shot sounded close behind him, and a bullet passed through the cork helmet he wore. Although he turned at once and galloped rapidly to the top of the ravine, there was no sign of any enemy, nor did he see aught of another human being until he reached Bou Saada.
And once, probably because he was riding alone, he nearly lost his life. He was slowly riding through a small ravine when a shot rang out close behind him, and a bullet went through the cork helmet he was wearing. Although he immediately turned and galloped quickly to the top of the ravine, there was no sign of any enemy, nor did he see anyone else until he reached Bou Saada.
“Yes,” he soliloquized, in recalling the occurrence, “Olga has indeed thrown away her twenty thousand francs.”
“Yes,” he thought to himself, remembering the event, “Olga has really thrown away her twenty thousand francs.”
That night he was Captain Gerard’s guest at a little dinner.
That night, he was Captain Gerard's guest at a small dinner.
“Your hunting has not been very fortunate?” questioned the officer.
“Your hunting hasn't gone very well?” asked the officer.
“No,” replied Tarzan; “the game hereabout is timid, nor do I care particularly about hunting game birds or antelope. I think I shall move on farther south, and have a try at some of your Algerian lions.”
“No,” replied Tarzan; “the animals around here are skittish, and I’m not really interested in hunting game birds or antelope. I think I’ll head further south and try my luck with some of your Algerian lions.”
“Good!” exclaimed the captain. “We are marching toward Djelfa on the morrow. You shall have company that far at least. Lieutenant Gernois and I, with a hundred men, are ordered south to patrol a district in which the marauders are giving considerable trouble. Possibly we may have the pleasure of hunting the lion together—what say you?”
“Great!” shouted the captain. “We’re heading to Djelfa tomorrow. At least you’ll have some company for that part of the journey. Lieutenant Gernois and I, along with a hundred men, have been assigned to patrol a region where the marauders are causing quite a bit of trouble. Maybe we’ll even get the chance to hunt a lion together—what do you think?”
Tarzan was more than pleased, nor did he hesitate to say so; but the captain would have been astonished had he known the real reason of Tarzan’s pleasure. Gernois was sitting opposite the ape-man. He did not seem so pleased with his captain’s invitation.
Tarzan was very happy, and he didn’t hold back in expressing it; however, the captain would have been shocked if he knew the true reason behind Tarzan’s happiness. Gernois was sitting across from the ape-man. He didn’t appear as thrilled with his captain’s invitation.
“You will find lion hunting more exciting than gazelle shooting,” remarked Captain Gerard, “and more dangerous.”
"You'll find hunting lions more thrilling than shooting gazelles," Captain Gerard said, "and it's also more dangerous."
“Even gazelle shooting has its dangers,” replied Tarzan. “Especially when one goes alone. I found it so today. I also found that while the gazelle is the most timid of animals, it is not the most cowardly.”
“Even shooting gazelles has its risks,” Tarzan replied. “Especially when you go alone. I discovered that today. I also learned that while the gazelle is the most timid of animals, it’s not the most cowardly.”
He let his glance rest only casually upon Gernois after he had spoken, for he did not wish the man to know that he was under suspicion, or surveillance, no matter what he might think. The effect of his remark upon him, however, might tend to prove his connection with, or knowledge of, certain recent happenings. Tarzan saw a dull red creep up from beneath Gernois’ collar. He was satisfied, and quickly changed the subject.
He casually glanced at Gernois after speaking, not wanting him to realize he was suspected or being watched, regardless of what he might assume. However, the impact of his comment on Gernois could indicate his involvement or awareness of some recent events. Tarzan noticed a flush of red rise from beneath Gernois’ collar. He was pleased and quickly shifted the topic.
When the column rode south from Bou Saada the next morning there were half a dozen Arabs bringing up the rear.
When the column headed south from Bou Saada the next morning, there were about six Arabs bringing up the rear.
“They are not attached to the command,” replied Gerard in response to Tarzan’s query. “They merely accompany us on the road for companionship.”
“They aren’t attached to the command,” Gerard replied to Tarzan’s question. “They’re just traveling with us for company.”
Tarzan had learned enough about Arab character since he had been in Algeria to know that this was no real motive, for the Arab is never overfond of the companionship of strangers, and especially of French soldiers. So his suspicions were aroused, and he decided to keep a sharp eye on the little party that trailed behind the column at a distance of about a quarter of a mile. But they did not come close enough even during the halts to enable him to obtain a close scrutiny of them.
Tarzan had learned enough about Arab culture since arriving in Algeria to understand that there was no genuine reason behind it, as Arabs are not typically fond of associating with strangers, especially French soldiers. This raised his suspicions, and he decided to closely monitor the small group that followed the column from about a quarter of a mile away. However, they never got close enough, even during the breaks, for him to get a good look at them.
He had long been convinced that there were hired assassins on his trail, nor was he in great doubt but that Rokoff was at the bottom of the plot. Whether it was to be revenge for the several occasions in the past that Tarzan had defeated the Russian’s purposes and humiliated him, or was in some way connected with his mission in the Gernois affair, he could not determine. If the latter, and it seemed probable since the evidence he had had that Gernois suspected him, then he had two rather powerful enemies to contend with, for there would be many opportunities in the wilds of Algeria, for which they were bound, to dispatch a suspected enemy quietly and without attracting suspicion.
He had long been convinced that there were hired killers after him, and he had little doubt that Rokoff was behind the scheme. He couldn’t tell if it was revenge for the times Tarzan had thwarted the Russian’s plans and embarrassed him, or if it was somehow connected to his mission in the Gernois case. If it was the latter, which seemed likely given that Gernois had reason to suspect him, then he was facing two powerful enemies. In the wilds of Algeria, where they were headed, there would be plenty of chances to eliminate a suspected rival quietly and without drawing attention.
After camping at Djelfa for two days the column moved to the southwest, from whence word had come that the marauders were operating against the tribes whose douars were situated at the foot of the mountains.
After camping at Djelfa for two days, the group moved southwest, where reports had come in that the raiders were attacking the tribes whose douars were located at the base of the mountains.
The little band of Arabs who had accompanied them from Bou Saada had disappeared suddenly the very night that orders had been given to prepare for the morrow’s march from Djelfa. Tarzan made casual inquiries among the men, but none could tell him why they had left, or in what direction they had gone. He did not like the looks of it, especially in view of the fact that he had seen Gernois in conversation with one of them some half hour after Captain Gerard had issued his instructions relative to the new move. Only Gernois and Tarzan knew the direction of the proposed march. All the soldiers knew was that they were to be prepared to break camp early the next morning. Tarzan wondered if Gernois could have revealed their destination to the Arabs.
The small group of Arabs who had traveled with them from Bou Saada had suddenly vanished the night orders were given to get ready for the next day’s march from Djelfa. Tarzan casually asked the men about it, but none could tell him why they had left or where they had gone. He didn’t like the situation, especially since he had seen Gernois talking to one of them about half an hour after Captain Gerard had given instructions regarding the new movement. Only Gernois and Tarzan knew the direction of the planned march. All the soldiers were aware that they needed to be ready to break camp early the next morning. Tarzan wondered if Gernois had accidentally revealed their destination to the Arabs.
Late that afternoon they went into camp at a little oasis in which was the douar of a sheik whose flocks were being stolen, and whose herdsmen were being killed. The Arabs came out of their goatskin tents, and surrounded the soldiers, asking many questions in the native tongue, for the soldiers were themselves natives. Tarzan, who, by this time, with the assistance of Abdul, had picked up quite a smattering of Arab, questioned one of the younger men who had accompanied the sheik while the latter paid his respects to Captain Gerard.
Late that afternoon, they set up camp at a small oasis where the sheik lived, whose flocks were being stolen and whose herdsmen were being killed. The Arabs came out of their goatskin tents and gathered around the soldiers, asking a lot of questions in their native language, since the soldiers were also locals. By this point, Tarzan, with Abdul's help, had learned a bit of Arabic, so he asked one of the younger men who had come with the sheik while the sheik paid his respects to Captain Gerard.
No, he had seen no party of six horsemen riding from the direction of Djelfa. There were other oases scattered about—possibly they had been journeying to one of these. Then there were the marauders in the mountains above—they often rode north to Bou Saada in small parties, and even as far as Aumale and Bouira. It might indeed have been a few marauders returning to the band from a pleasure trip to one of these cities.
No, he hadn’t seen a group of six horsemen coming from the direction of Djelfa. There were other oases nearby—maybe they were heading to one of those. Then there were the raiders in the mountains above—they often traveled north to Bou Saada in small groups, even reaching Aumale and Bouira. It could very well have been a few raiders coming back to their gang from a fun trip to one of those cities.
Early the next morning Captain Gerard split his command in two, giving Lieutenant Gernois command of one party, while he headed the other. They were to scour the mountains upon opposite sides of the plain.
Early the next morning, Captain Gerard divided his command into two, assigning Lieutenant Gernois to lead one group while he took charge of the other. They were to search the mountains on opposite sides of the plain.
“And with which detachment will Monsieur Tarzan ride?” asked the captain. “Or maybe it is that monsieur does not care to hunt marauders?”
“And which unit will Monsieur Tarzan be riding with?” the captain asked. “Or is it that monsieur isn't interested in hunting down marauders?”
“Oh, I shall be delighted to go,” Tarzan hastened to explain. He was wondering what excuse he could make to accompany Gernois. His embarrassment was short-lived, and was relieved from a most unexpected source. It was Gernois himself who spoke.
“Oh, I’d be happy to go,” Tarzan quickly clarified. He was trying to think of a reason to join Gernois. His embarrassment didn’t last long, and it was eased by a completely unexpected source. It was Gernois himself who spoke.
“If my captain will forego the pleasure of Monsieur Tarzan’s company for this once, I shall esteem it an honor indeed to have monsieur ride with me today,” he said, nor was his tone lacking in cordiality. In fact, Tarzan imagined that he had overdone it a trifle, but, even so, he was both astounded and pleased, hastening to express his delight at the arrangement.
“If my captain is willing to skip the pleasure of Monsieur Tarzan’s company this time, I would be truly honored to have monsieur ride with me today,” he said, and his tone was genuinely friendly. In fact, Tarzan thought he might have gone a bit overboard, but still, he was both shocked and happy, quickly expressing his excitement about the plan.
And so it was that Lieutenant Gernois and Tarzan rode off side by side at the head of the little detachment of spahis. Gernois’ cordiality was short-lived. No sooner had they ridden out of sight of Captain Gerard and his men than he lapsed once more into his accustomed taciturnity. As they advanced the ground became rougher. Steadily it ascended toward the mountains, into which they filed through a narrow cañon close to noon. By the side of a little rivulet Gernois called the midday halt. Here the men prepared and ate their frugal meal, and refilled their canteens.
And so it was that Lieutenant Gernois and Tarzan rode side by side at the front of the small group of spahis. Gernois’ friendliness was short-lived. As soon as they were out of sight of Captain Gerard and his men, he fell back into his usual silence. As they moved on, the terrain became rougher. It gradually rose toward the mountains, and they entered through a narrow canyon around noon. Next to a small stream, Gernois called for a midday break. Here, the men prepared and ate their simple meal, and refilled their canteens.
After an hour’s rest they advanced again along the cañon, until they presently came to a little valley, from which several rocky gorges diverged. Here they halted, while Gernois minutely examined the surrounding heights from the center of the depression.
After an hour of resting, they moved forward again through the canyon until they reached a small valley, where several rocky gorges branched off. They stopped here while Gernois carefully looked over the surrounding heights from the center of the depression.
“We shall separate here,” he said, “several riding into each of these gorges,” and then he commenced to detail his various squads and issue instructions to the non-commissioned officers who were to command them. When he had done he turned to Tarzan. “Monsieur will be so good as to remain here until we return.”
“We'll split up here,” he said, “with several heading into each of these gorges,” and then he began to outline his different teams and give instructions to the non-commissioned officers who would lead them. Once he finished, he turned to Tarzan. “Could you please stay here until we get back?”
Tarzan demurred, but the officer cut him short. “There may be fighting for one of these sections,” he said, “and troops cannot be embarrassed by civilian noncombatants during action.”
Tarzan hesitated, but the officer interrupted him. “There might be fighting for one of these areas,” he said, “and troops can’t be held back by civilian noncombatants during combat.”
“But, my dear lieutenant,” expostulated Tarzan, “I am most ready and willing to place myself under command of yourself or any of your sergeants or corporals, and to fight in the ranks as they direct. It is what I came for.”
“But, my dear lieutenant,” argued Tarzan, “I am very ready and willing to put myself under your command or any of your sergeants or corporals, and to fight in the ranks as they direct. It's what I came for.”
“I should be glad to think so,” retorted Gernois, with a sneer he made no attempt to disguise. Then shortly: “You are under my orders, and they are that you remain here until we return. Let that end the matter,” and he turned and spurred away at the head of his men. A moment later Tarzan found himself alone in the midst of a desolate mountain fastness.
“I’d be happy to think that,” Gernois shot back, sneering openly. Then, more sternly: “You’re under my orders, and they say you stay here until we get back. That’s the end of it,” and he turned, urging his horse forward with his men. Moments later, Tarzan found himself alone in the middle of a barren mountain wilderness.
The sun was hot, so he sought the shelter of a nearby tree, where he tethered his horse, and sat down upon the ground to smoke. Inwardly he swore at Gernois for the trick he had played upon him. A mean little revenge, thought Tarzan, and then suddenly it occurred to him that the man would not be such a fool as to antagonize him through a trivial annoyance of so petty a description. There must be something deeper than this behind it. With the thought he arose and removed his rifle from its boot. He looked to its loads and saw that the magazine was full. Then he inspected his revolver. After this preliminary precaution he scanned the surrounding heights and the mouths of the several gorges—he was determined that he should not be caught napping.
The sun was blazing, so he looked for the shade of a nearby tree, where he tied up his horse and sat on the ground to smoke. Inside, he cursed Gernois for the trick he had pulled on him. A pathetic little revenge, thought Tarzan, but then it hit him that the man wouldn’t be stupid enough to annoy him over something so trivial. There had to be something more serious behind it. With that in mind, he stood up and took his rifle out of its scabbard. He checked the magazine and saw it was fully loaded. Then he looked over his revolver. After these precautions, he surveyed the surrounding hills and the openings of the various gorges—he was resolved not to let his guard down.
The sun sank lower and lower, yet there was no sign of returning SPAHIS. At last the valley was submerged in shadow Tarzan was too proud to go back to camp until he had given the detachment ample time to return to the valley, which he thought was to have been their rendezvous. With the closing in of night he felt safer from attack, for he was at home in the dark. He knew that none might approach him so cautiously as to elude those alert and sensitive ears of his; then there were his eyes, too, for he could see well at night; and his nose, if they came toward him from up-wind, would apprise him of the approach of an enemy while they were still a great way off.
The sun sank lower and lower, but there was still no sign of the SPAHIS returning. Eventually, the valley was engulfed in shadow. Tarzan was too proud to head back to camp until he had given the team enough time to make it back to the valley, which he believed was supposed to be their meeting point. As night closed in, he felt safer from an attack since he was at home in the dark. He knew that no one could sneak up on him without being detected by his keen and sensitive ears; plus, his night vision was excellent, and if they approached him from upwind, his nose would alert him to an enemy's presence from far away.
So he felt that he was in little danger, and thus lulled to a sense of security he fell asleep, with his back against the tree.
So he felt that he was in no real danger, and feeling secure like this, he fell asleep with his back against the tree.
He must have slept for several hours, for when he was suddenly awakened by the frightened snorting and plunging of his horse the moon was shining full upon the little valley, and there, not ten paces before him, stood the grim cause of the terror of his mount.
He must have slept for several hours because when he was suddenly jolted awake by the scared snorting and thrashing of his horse, the moonlight was shining brightly on the small valley, and there, not ten steps in front of him, stood the grim reason for his horse's fear.
Superb, majestic, his graceful tail extended and quivering, and his two eyes of fire riveted full upon his prey, stood Numa el adrea, the black lion. A little thrill of joy tingled through Tarzan’s nerves. It was like meeting an old friend after years of separation. For a moment he sat rigid to enjoy the magnificent spectacle of this lord of the wilderness.
Superb and majestic, with his graceful tail extended and quivering, and his two fiery eyes locked onto his prey, stood Numa el adrea, the black lion. A small thrill of joy ran through Tarzan’s nerves. It felt like meeting an old friend after years apart. For a moment, he sat still to take in the magnificent sight of this king of the wilderness.
But now Numa was crouching for the spring. Very slowly Tarzan raised his gun to his shoulder. He had never killed a large animal with a gun in all his life—heretofore he had depended upon his spear, his poisoned arrows, his rope, his knife, or his bare hands. Instinctively he wished that he had his arrows and his knife—he would have felt surer with them.
But now Numa was crouching to spring. Very slowly, Tarzan raised his gun to his shoulder. He had never killed a large animal with a gun in his life—before, he had relied on his spear, his poisoned arrows, his rope, his knife, or his bare hands. Instinctively, he wished that he had his arrows and his knife—he would have felt more confident with them.
Numa was lying quite flat upon the ground now, presenting only his head. Tarzan would have preferred to fire a little from one side, for he knew what terrific damage the lion could do if he lived two minutes, or even a minute after he was hit. The horse stood trembling in terror at Tarzan’s back. The ape-man took a cautious step to one side—Numa but followed him with his eyes. Another step he took, and then another. Numa had not moved. Now he could aim at a point between the eye and the ear.
Numa was lying flat on the ground now, showing only his head. Tarzan would have preferred to shoot from the side because he knew how much damage the lion could inflict if it lived for even a minute after getting hit. The horse was trembling in fear behind Tarzan. The ape-man took a careful step to one side—Numa followed him with his eyes. He took another step, and then another. Numa hadn't moved. Now he could aim at a spot between the eye and the ear.
His finger tightened upon the trigger, and as he fired Numa sprang. At the same instant the terrified horse made a last frantic effort to escape—the tether parted, and he went careening down the cañon toward the desert.
His finger tightened on the trigger, and as he shot, Numa leaped. At the same moment, the scared horse made one last desperate attempt to flee—the tether broke, and he took off racing down the canyon toward the desert.
No ordinary man could have escaped those frightful claws when Numa sprang from so short a distance, but Tarzan was no ordinary man. From earliest childhood his muscles had been trained by the fierce exigencies of his existence to act with the rapidity of thought. As quick as was el adrea, Tarzan of the Apes was quicker, and so the great beast crashed against a tree where he had expected to feel the soft flesh of man, while Tarzan, a couple of paces to the right, pumped another bullet into him that brought him clawing and roaring to his side.
No ordinary man could have escaped those terrifying claws when Numa lunged from such a short distance, but Tarzan was no ordinary man. From a young age, his muscles had been shaped by the harsh realities of his life to respond with the speed of thought. As fast as el adrea was, Tarzan of the Apes was even faster, and so the great beast slammed into a tree where he had expected to feel the soft flesh of a man, while Tarzan, just a couple of steps to the right, shot another bullet into him that sent him clawing and roaring to his side.
Twice more Tarzan fired in quick succession, and then el adrea lay still and roared no more. It was no longer Monsieur Jean Tarzan; it was Tarzan of the Apes that put a savage foot upon the body of his savage kill, and, raising his face to the full moon, lifted his mighty voice in the weird and terrible challenge of his kind—a bull ape had made his kill. And the wild things in the wild mountains stopped in their hunting, and trembled at this new and awful voice, while down in the desert the children of the wilderness came out of their goatskin tents and looked toward the mountains, wondering what new and savage scourge had come to devastate their flocks.
Twice more, Tarzan fired in quick succession, and then el adrea lay still and roared no more. It was no longer Monsieur Jean Tarzan; it was Tarzan of the Apes who put a savage foot on the body of his brutal kill, and, raising his face to the full moon, unleashed his powerful voice in the strange and terrifying challenge of his kind—a male ape had made his kill. The wild creatures in the wild mountains paused their hunting and trembled at this new and fearsome sound, while down in the desert, the children of the wilderness emerged from their goatskin tents and looked toward the mountains, wondering what new and fierce threat had come to ravage their flocks.
A half mile from the valley in which Tarzan stood, a score of white-robed figures, bearing long, wicked-looking guns, halted at the sound, and looked at one another with questioning eyes. But presently, as it was not repeated, they took up their silent, stealthy way toward the valley.
A half mile from the valley where Tarzan was standing, a group of twenty white-robed figures, carrying long, dangerous-looking guns, stopped at the sound and exchanged curious glances. But soon, since there was no further noise, they continued their quiet, sneaky approach toward the valley.
Tarzan was now confident that Gernois had no intention of returning for him, but he could not fathom the object that had prompted the officer to desert him, yet leave him free to return to camp. His horse gone, he decided that it would be foolish to remain longer in the mountains, so he set out toward the desert.
Tarzan was now sure that Gernois didn’t plan to come back for him, but he couldn’t understand what had caused the officer to abandon him while still allowing him the chance to return to camp. With his horse gone, he figured it would be pointless to stay in the mountains any longer, so he headed toward the desert.
He had scarcely entered the confines of the cañon when the first of the white-robed figures emerged into the valley upon the opposite side. For a moment they scanned the little depression from behind sheltering bowlders, but when they had satisfied themselves that it was empty they advanced across it. Beneath the tree at one side they came upon the body of el adrea. With muttered exclamations they crowded about it. Then, a moment later, they hurried down the cañon which Tarzan was threading a brief distance in advance of them. They moved cautiously and in silence, taking advantage of shelter, as men do who are stalking man.
He had barely stepped into the canyon when the first of the figures in white robes appeared in the valley across from him. For a brief moment, they surveyed the little dip from behind some protective boulders, and once they confirmed it was empty, they moved forward. Underneath a tree on one side, they found the body of el adrea. With murmured exclamations, they gathered around it. A moment later, they rushed down the canyon, where Tarzan was moving just a short distance ahead of them. They proceeded carefully and quietly, using cover like anyone stalking a person.
Chapter X
Through the Valley of the Shadow
As Tarzan walked down the wild cañon beneath the brilliant African moon the call of the jungle was strong upon him. The solitude and the savage freedom filled his heart with life and buoyancy. Again he was Tarzan of the Apes—every sense alert against the chance of surprise by some jungle enemy—yet treading lightly and with head erect, in proud consciousness of his might.
As Tarzan walked through the wild canyon under the bright African moon, he felt the call of the jungle deeply. The solitude and raw freedom filled him with energy and lightness. Once again, he was Tarzan of the Apes—every sense heightened, ready for any surprise from a jungle predator—yet moving softly and with his head held high, proudly aware of his strength.
The nocturnal sounds of the mountains were new to him, yet they fell upon his ears like the soft voice of a half-forgotten love. Many he intuitively sensed—ah, there was one that was familiar indeed; the distant coughing of Sheeta, the leopard; but there was a strange note in the final wail which made him doubt. It was a panther he heard.
The nighttime sounds of the mountains were unfamiliar to him, yet they reached his ears like the gentle whisper of a long-lost love. Many he could sense instinctively—ah, there was one that he recognized; the far-off coughing of Sheeta, the leopard; but there was a strange quality to the last cry that made him second-guess. It was a panther he heard.
Presently a new sound—a soft, stealthy sound—obtruded itself among the others. No human ears other than the ape-man’s would have detected it. At first he did not translate it, but finally he realized that it came from the bare feet of a number of human beings. They were behind him, and they were coming toward him quietly. He was being stalked.
Currently, a new sound—a soft, sneaky sound—inserted itself among the others. No human ears except for the ape-man’s would have picked it up. At first, he didn’t quite understand it, but eventually he figured out that it came from the bare feet of several people. They were behind him, and they were quietly approaching him. He was being hunted.
In a flash he knew why he had been left in that little valley by Gernois; but there had been a hitch in the arrangements—the men had come too late. Closer and closer came the footsteps. Tarzan halted and faced them, his rifle ready in his hand. Now he caught a fleeting glimpse of a white burnoose. He called aloud in French, asking what they would of him. His reply was the flash of a long gun, and with the sound of the shot Tarzan of the Apes plunged forward upon his face.
In an instant, he realized why Gernois had left him in that small valley; however, there was a problem with the plan—the men had arrived too late. The footsteps grew louder and closer. Tarzan stopped and turned to face them, his rifle poised in his hand. Just then, he caught a brief glimpse of a white burnoose. He shouted in French, asking what they wanted from him. In response, he saw the flash of a long gun, and with the sound of the shot, Tarzan of the Apes fell forward onto his face.
The Arabs did not rush out immediately; instead, they waited to be sure that their victim did not rise. Then they came rapidly from their concealment, and bent over him. It was soon apparent that he was not dead. One of the men put the muzzle of his gun to the back of Tarzan’s head to finish him, but another waved him aside. “If we bring him alive the reward is to be greater,” explained the latter. So they bound his hands and feet, and, picking him up, placed him on the shoulders of four of their number. Then the march was resumed toward the desert. When they had come out of the mountains they turned toward the south, and about daylight came to the spot where their horses stood in care of two of their number.
The Arabs didn’t rush out immediately; they waited to make sure their victim was really dead. Then they quickly emerged from their hiding spots and leaned over him. It soon became clear that he was still alive. One of the men aimed his gun at the back of Tarzan’s head to finish him off, but another stopped him. “If we bring him back alive, the reward will be greater,” he explained. So they tied his hands and feet, then lifted him onto the shoulders of four of their group. Then they continued their march toward the desert. Once they had exited the mountains, they turned south and arrived at the location where their horses were being watched by two others around dawn.
From here on their progress was more rapid. Tarzan, who had regained consciousness, was tied to a spare horse, which they evidently had brought for the purpose. His wound was but a slight scratch, which had furrowed the flesh across his temple. It had stopped bleeding, but the dried and clotted blood smeared his face and clothing. He had said no word since he had fallen into the hands of these Arabs, nor had they addressed him other than to issue a few brief commands to him when the horses had been reached.
From this point on, they moved faster. Tarzan, who had come to, was tied to an extra horse that they had clearly brought along for this reason. His injury was just a small scratch that ran across his temple. It had stopped bleeding, but dried and clotted blood stained his face and clothes. He hadn’t said anything since he was captured by these Arabs, and they had only spoken to him briefly to give some commands when they reached the horses.
For six hours they rode rapidly across the burning desert, avoiding the oases near which their way led. About noon they came to a douar of about twenty tents. Here they halted, and as one of the Arabs was releasing the alfa-grass ropes which bound him to his mount they were surrounded by a mob of men, women, and children. Many of the tribe, and more especially the women, appeared to take delight in heaping insults upon the prisoner, and some had even gone so far as to throw stones at him and strike him with sticks, when an old sheik appeared and drove them away.
For six hours, they quickly rode across the scorching desert, steering clear of the oases along their path. Around noon, they arrived at a douar with about twenty tents. They stopped here, and as one of the Arabs was untieing the alfa-grass ropes that secured him to his horse, they were surrounded by a crowd of men, women, and children. Many from the tribe, especially the women, seemed to enjoy throwing insults at the prisoner, and some even went so far as to throw stones at him and hit him with sticks, until an old sheik showed up and drove them away.
“Ali-ben-Ahmed tells me,” he said, “that this man sat alone in the mountains and slew el adrea. What the business of the stranger who sent us after him may be, I know not, and what he may do with this man when we turn him over to him, I care not; but the prisoner is a brave man, and while he is in our hands he shall be treated with the respect that be due one who hunts the lord with the large head alone and by night—and slays him.”
“Ali-ben-Ahmed told me,” he said, “that this man sat alone in the mountains and killed el adrea. I don’t know what the stranger who sent us after him wants, and I don’t care what he will do with this man once we hand him over; but the prisoner is a brave man, and while he is in our custody, he will be treated with the respect deserved by someone who hunts the lord with the large head alone and at night—and kills him.”
Tarzan had heard of the respect in which Arabs held a lion-killer, and he was not sorry that chance had played into his hands thus favorably to relieve him of the petty tortures of the tribe. Shortly after this he was taken to a goat-skin tent upon the upper side of the douar. There he was fed, and then, securely bound, was left lying on a piece of native carpet, alone in the tent.
Tarzan had heard about the respect Arabs had for a lion-killer, and he was glad that fate had worked in his favor, freeing him from the tribe's minor torments. Soon after, he was taken to a goat-skin tent on the upper side of the douar. There, he was fed, and then, securely tied up, he was left lying on a piece of native carpet, alone in the tent.
He could see a guard sitting before the door of his frail prison, but when he attempted to force the stout bonds that held him he realized that any extra precaution on the part of his captors was quite unnecessary; not even his giant muscles could part those numerous strands.
He could see a guard sitting in front of the door to his weak prison, but when he tried to break the strong restraints that held him, he realized that any extra caution from his captors was completely unnecessary; even his massive muscles couldn't break those many ties.
Just before dusk several men approached the tent where he lay, and entered it. All were in Arab dress, but presently one of the number advanced to Tarzan’s side, and as he let the folds of cloth that had hidden the lower half of his face fall away the ape-man saw the malevolent features of Nikolas Rokoff. There was a nasty smile on the bearded lips. “Ah, Monsieur Tarzan,” he said, “this is indeed a pleasure. But why do you not rise and greet your guest?” Then, with an ugly oath, “Get up, you dog!” and, drawing back his booted foot, he kicked Tarzan heavily in the side. “And here is another, and another, and another,” he continued, as he kicked Tarzan about the face and side. “One for each of the injuries you have done me.”
Just before dusk, several men walked up to the tent where he was lying and went inside. They were all dressed in Arab clothing, but soon one of them stepped closer to Tarzan. As he pulled away the cloth covering the lower half of his face, the ape-man recognized the malicious features of Nikolas Rokoff. A nasty smile spread across his bearded lips. “Ah, Monsieur Tarzan,” he said, “what a pleasure this is. But why don’t you get up and greet your guest?” Then, after cursing, he shouted, “Get up, you dog!” and, pulling back his booted foot, he kicked Tarzan hard in the side. “And here’s another, and another, and another,” he continued, as he kicked Tarzan in the face and side. “One for each injury you’ve done me.”
The ape-man made no reply—he did not even deign to look upon the Russian again after the first glance of recognition. Finally the sheik, who had been standing a mute and frowning witness of the cowardly attack, intervened.
The ape-man didn’t respond—he didn’t even bother to look at the Russian again after their initial wave of recognition. Finally, the sheik, who had been silently and grimly observing the cowardly attack, stepped in.
“Stop!” he commanded. “Kill him if you will, but I will see no brave man subjected to such indignities in my presence. I have half a mind to turn him loose, that I may see how long you would kick him then.”
“Stop!” he ordered. “Go ahead and kill him if you want, but I won’t let any brave man be humiliated like that in front of me. I’m half tempted to set him free just to see how long you’d keep kicking him after that.”
This threat put a sudden end to Rokoff’s brutality, for he had no craving to see Tarzan loosed from his bonds while he was within reach of those powerful hands.
This threat abruptly stopped Rokoff's cruelty, as he had no desire to see Tarzan freed from his restraints while he was near those strong hands.
“Very well,” he replied to the Arab; “I shall kill him presently.”
“Alright,” he responded to the Arab; “I’ll take care of him soon.”
“Not within the precincts of my douar,” returned the sheik. “When he leaves here he leaves alive. What you do with him in the desert is none of my concern, but I shall not have the blood of a Frenchman on the hands of my tribe on account of another man’s quarrel—they would send soldiers here and kill many of my people, and burn our tents and drive away our flocks.”
“Not in my village,” the sheik responded. “When he leaves here, he leaves alive. What you do with him in the desert is not my concern, but I won’t have the blood of a Frenchman on my tribe’s hands because of someone else’s fight—they would send soldiers here and kill many of my people, burn our tents, and drive away our livestock.”
“As you say,” growled Rokoff. “I’ll take him out into the desert below the douar, and dispatch him.”
“As you say,” growled Rokoff. “I’ll take him out into the desert below the douar, and take care of him.”
“You will take him a day’s ride from my country,” said the sheik, firmly, “and some of my children shall follow you to see that you do not disobey me—otherwise there may be two dead Frenchmen in the desert.”
“You will take him a day’s ride from my country,” said the sheik, firmly, “and some of my children will follow you to make sure you don’t disobey me—otherwise, there might be two dead Frenchmen in the desert.”
Rokoff shrugged. “Then I shall have to wait until the morrow—it is already dark.”
Rokoff shrugged. “Then I’ll have to wait until tomorrow—it’s already dark.”
“As you will,” said the sheik. “But by an hour after dawn you must be gone from my douar. I have little liking for unbelievers, and none at all for a coward.”
“As you wish,” said the sheik. “But by an hour after dawn, you must leave my douar. I have little tolerance for unbelievers, and none at all for cowards.”
Rokoff would have made some kind of retort, but he checked himself, for he realized that it would require but little excuse for the old man to turn upon him. Together they left the tent. At the door Rokoff could not resist the temptation to turn and fling a parting taunt at Tarzan. “Sleep well, monsieur,” he said, “and do not forget to pray well, for when you die tomorrow it will be in such agony that you will be unable to pray for blaspheming.”
Rokoff would have said something back, but he stopped himself, realizing it wouldn't take much for the old man to snap at him. They left the tent together. At the door, Rokoff couldn't help but throw a parting insult at Tarzan. “Sleep well, monsieur,” he said, “and don’t forget to pray hard, because when you die tomorrow, it will be in such agony that you won't be able to pray for your blaspheming.”
No one had bothered to bring Tarzan either food or water since noon, and consequently he suffered considerably from thirst. He wondered if it would be worth while to ask his guard for water, but after making two or three requests without receiving any response, he decided that it would not.
No one had thought to bring Tarzan any food or water since noon, so he was really suffering from thirst. He considered asking his guard for some water, but after making a couple of requests and getting no reply, he figured it wasn’t worth it.
Far up in the mountains he heard a lion roar. How much safer one was, he soliloquized, in the haunts of wild beasts than in the haunts of men. Never in all his jungle life had he been more relentlessly tracked down than in the past few months of his experience among civilized men. Never had he been any nearer death.
Far up in the mountains, he heard a lion roar. He thought about how much safer one felt in the territories of wild animals than in those of people. Never in all his time in the jungle had he been pursued more relentlessly than in the past few months among civilized people. Never had he been closer to death.
Again the lion roared. It sounded a little nearer. Tarzan felt the old, wild impulse to reply with the challenge of his kind. His kind? He had almost forgotten that he was a man and not an ape. He tugged at his bonds. God, if he could but get them near those strong teeth of his. He felt a wild wave of madness sweep over him as his efforts to regain his liberty met with failure.
Again, the lion roared. It sounded a little closer. Tarzan felt the old, wild urge to respond with the challenge of his kind. His kind? He had almost forgotten that he was a man and not an ape. He tugged at his restraints. God, if only he could get them close to those strong teeth of his. He felt a surge of madness as his attempts to regain his freedom failed.
Numa was roaring almost continually now. It was quite evident that he was coming down into the desert to hunt. It was the roar of a hungry lion. Tarzan envied him, for he was free. No one would tie him with ropes and slaughter him like a sheep. It was that which galled the ape-man. He did not fear to die, no—it was the humiliation of defeat before death, without even a chance to battle for his life.
Numa was roaring almost nonstop now. It was clear he was heading into the desert to hunt. It was the roar of a hungry lion. Tarzan envied him because he was free. No one could tie him up and kill him like a sheep. That’s what frustrated the ape-man. He didn’t fear death; it was the humiliation of being defeated before dying, without even getting a chance to fight for his life.
It must be near midnight, thought Tarzan. He had several hours to live. Possibly he would yet find a way to take Rokoff with him on the long journey. He could hear the savage lord of the desert quite close by now. Possibly he sought his meat from among the penned animals within the douar.
It must be close to midnight, Tarzan thought. He had a few hours left to live. Maybe he would still manage to take Rokoff with him on the long journey. He could hear the fierce lord of the desert nearby now. Perhaps he was looking for his next meal among the penned animals in the douar.
For a long time silence reigned, then Tarzan’s trained ears caught the sound of a stealthily moving body. It came from the side of the tent nearest the mountains—the back. Nearer and nearer it came. He waited, listening intently, for it to pass. For a time there was silence without, such a terrible silence that Tarzan was surprised that he did not hear the breathing of the animal he felt sure must be crouching close to the back wall of his tent.
For a long time, there was complete silence, then Tarzan’s sharp ears picked up the sound of something moving quietly. It was coming from the side of the tent closest to the mountains—the back. It got closer and closer. He waited, listening carefully, for it to pass. For a while, there was an eerie silence outside, so intense that Tarzan was surprised he couldn't hear the breathing of the animal he was sure must be hiding just behind the back wall of his tent.
There! It is moving again. Closer it creeps. Tarzan turns his head in the direction of the sound. It is very dark within the tent. Slowly the back rises from the ground, forced up by the head and shoulders of a body that looks all black in the semi-darkness. Beyond is a faint glimpse of the dimly starlit desert. A grim smile plays about Tarzan’s lips. At least Rokoff will be cheated. How mad he will be! And death will be more merciful than he could have hoped for at the hands of the Russian.
There! It’s moving again. It creeps closer. Tarzan turns his head toward the sound. It’s really dark inside the tent. Slowly, the back lifts off the ground, pushed up by the head and shoulders of a figure that looks completely black in the dim light. In the distance, there’s a faint hint of the starlit desert. A grim smile crosses Tarzan’s lips. At least Rokoff will be left disappointed. How furious he will be! And death will be kinder than he could have ever expected from the Russian.
Now the back of the tent drops into place, and all is darkness again—whatever it is is inside the tent with him. He hears it creeping close to him—now it is beside him. He closes his eyes and waits for the mighty paw. Upon his upturned face falls the gentle touch of a soft hand groping in the dark, and then a girl’s voice in a scarcely audible whisper pronounces his name.
Now the back of the tent falls into place, and everything is dark again—whatever it is, it's inside the tent with him. He hears it creeping closer—now it's right beside him. He shuts his eyes and waits for the huge paw. A gentle touch of a soft hand brushes against his face in the dark, and then a girl’s voice, barely a whisper, calls his name.
“Yes, it is I,” he whispers in reply. “But in the name of Heaven who are you?”
“Yes, it’s me,” he whispers back. “But for heaven’s sake, who are you?”
“The Ouled-Nail of Sisi Aissa,” came the answer. While she spoke Tarzan could feel her working about his bonds. Occasionally the cold steel of a knife touched his flesh. A moment later he was free.
“The Ouled-Nail of Sisi Aissa,” came the answer. As she spoke, Tarzan could feel her moving around his bonds. Every once in a while, the cold steel of a knife grazed his skin. A moment later, he was free.
“Come!” she whispered.
"Come on!" she whispered.
On hands and knees he followed her out of the tent by the way she had come. She continued crawling thus flat to the ground until she reached a little patch of shrub. There she halted until he gained her side. For a moment he looked at her before he spoke.
On his hands and knees, he followed her out of the tent the same way she had come. She kept crawling flat against the ground until she reached a small patch of bushes. There, she stopped and waited for him to catch up. For a moment, he looked at her before he spoke.
“I cannot understand,” he said at last. “Why are you here? How did you know that I was a prisoner in that tent? How does it happen that it is you who have saved me?”
“I don’t get it,” he finally said. “Why are you here? How did you know I was a prisoner in that tent? How is it that you’re the one who saved me?”
She smiled. “I have come a long way tonight,” she said, “and we have a long way to go before we shall be out of danger. Come; I shall tell you all about it as we go.”
She smiled. “I've come a long way tonight,” she said, “and we still have a long way to go before we’re in the clear. Come on; I'll fill you in as we go.”
Together they rose and set off across the desert in the direction of the mountains.
Together, they stood up and headed across the desert toward the mountains.
“I was not quite sure that I should ever reach you,” she said at last. “El adrea is abroad tonight, and after I left the horses I think he winded me and was following—I was terribly frightened.”
“I wasn’t really sure I would ever find you,” she finally said. “El adrea is out tonight, and after I left the horses, I think he caught my scent and was following me—I was really scared.”
“What a brave girl,” he said. “And you ran all that risk for a stranger—an alien—an unbeliever?”
“What a brave girl,” he said. “And you took all that risk for a stranger—someone from another place—someone who doesn’t believe?”
She drew herself up very proudly.
She stood up proudly.
“I am the daughter of the Sheik Kabour ben Saden,” she answered. “I should be no fit daughter of his if I would not risk my life to save that of the man who saved mine while he yet thought that I was but a common Ouled-Nail.”
“I am the daughter of Sheik Kabour ben Saden,” she replied. “I wouldn’t be a worthy daughter of his if I didn’t risk my life to save the man who saved mine when he still thought I was just an ordinary Ouled-Nail.”
“Nevertheless,” he insisted, “you are a very brave girl. But how did you know that I was a prisoner back there?”
“Still,” he said, “you’re a really brave girl. But how did you know I was a prisoner back there?”
“Achmet-din-Taieb, who is my cousin on my father’s side, was visiting some friends who belong to the tribe that captured you. He was at the douar when you were brought in. When he reached home he was telling us about the big Frenchman who had been captured by Ali-ben-Ahmed for another Frenchman who wished to kill him. From the description I knew that it must be you. My father was away. I tried to persuade some of the men to come and save you, but they would not do it, saying: ‘Let the unbelievers kill one another if they wish. It is none of our affair, and if we go and interfere with Ali-ben-Ahmed’s plans we shall only stir up a fight with our own people.’
“Achmet-din-Taieb, who is my cousin on my dad’s side, was visiting some friends from the tribe that captured you. He was at the douar when you arrived. When he got home, he told us about the big French guy who had been captured by Ali-ben-Ahmed for another Frenchman who wanted to kill him. From the description, I realized it must be you. My dad was away. I tried to get some of the men to come and rescue you, but they wouldn’t do it, saying: ‘Let the unbelievers kill each other if they want. It’s not our business, and if we go and mess with Ali-ben-Ahmed’s plans, we’ll just start a fight with our own people.’”
“So when it was dark I came alone, riding one horse and leading another for you. They are tethered not far from here. By morning we shall be within my father’s douar. He should be there himself by now—then let them come and try to take Kadour ben Saden’s friend.”
“So when it got dark, I came by myself, riding one horse and leading another for you. They're tied up not far from here. By morning, we’ll be at my father’s douar. He should be there by now—so let them come and try to take Kadour ben Saden’s friend.”
For a few moments they walked on in silence.
For a few moments, they walked on in silence.
“We should be near the horses,” she said. “It is strange that I do not see them here.”
“We should be close to the horses,” she said. “It’s odd that I don’t see them here.”
Then a moment later she stopped, with a little cry of consternation.
Then a moment later, she stopped with a small gasp of surprise.
“They are gone!” she exclaimed. “It is here that I tethered them.”
“They're gone!” she exclaimed. “This is where I tied them up.”
Tarzan stooped to examine the ground. He found that a large shrub had been torn up by the roots. Then he found something else. There was a wry smile on his face as he rose and turned toward the girl.
Tarzan bent down to look at the ground. He saw that a big bush had been uprooted. Then he noticed something else. A sly smile appeared on his face as he stood up and faced the girl.
“El adrea has been here. From the signs, though, I rather think that his prey escaped him. With a little start they would be safe enough from him in the open.”
"El adrea has been here. From the signs, though, I think his prey got away from him. With a quick start, they would be safe from him out in the open."
There was nothing to do but continue on foot. The way led them across a low spur of the mountains, but the girl knew the trail as well as she did her mother’s face. They walked in easy, swinging strides, Tarzan keeping a hand’s breadth behind the girl’s shoulder, that she might set the pace, and thus be less fatigued. As they walked they talked, occasionally stopping to listen for sounds of pursuit.
There was nothing to do but keep walking. The path took them across a low ridge of the mountains, but the girl knew the trail as well as she knew her mother’s face. They walked with easy, long strides, Tarzan staying just behind the girl’s shoulder so she could set the pace and not get too tired. As they walked, they talked, occasionally stopping to listen for any signs of being followed.
It was now a beautiful, moonlit night. The air was crisp and invigorating. Behind them lay the interminable vista of the desert, dotted here and there with an occasional oasis. The date palms of the little fertile spot they had just left, and the circle of goatskin tents, stood out in sharp relief against the yellow sand—a phantom paradise upon a phantom sea. Before them rose the grim and silent mountains. Tarzan’s blood leaped in his veins. This was life! He looked down upon the girl beside him—a daughter of the desert walking across the face of a dead world with a son of the jungle. He smiled at the thought. He wished that he had had a sister, and that she had been like this girl. What a bully chum she would have been!
It was now a beautiful, moonlit night. The air was crisp and refreshing. Behind them stretched the endless view of the desert, with an occasional oasis scattered here and there. The date palms of the small fertile area they had just left and the circle of goatskin tents stood out sharply against the yellow sand—a ghostly paradise on a ghostly sea. In front of them loomed the dark and silent mountains. Tarzan’s blood raced in his veins. This was life! He looked down at the girl beside him—a daughter of the desert walking across a lifeless world with a son of the jungle. He smiled at the thought. He wished he had a sister and that she had been like this girl. What a great friend she would have been!
They had entered the mountains now, and were progressing more slowly, for the trail was steeper and very rocky.
They had entered the mountains now and were moving more slowly because the trail was steeper and really rocky.
For a few minutes they had been silent. The girl was wondering if they would reach her father’s douar before the pursuit had overtaken them. Tarzan was wishing that they might walk on thus forever. If the girl were only a man they might. He longed for a friend who loved the same wild life that he loved. He had learned to crave companionship, but it was his misfortune that most of the men he knew preferred immaculate linen and their clubs to nakedness and the jungle. It was, of course, difficult to understand, yet it was very evident that they did.
For a few minutes, they were quiet. The girl was wondering if they would get to her father's douar before being caught. Tarzan wished they could keep walking like this forever. If the girl were just a guy, they could. He yearned for a friend who shared his love for the wild. He had come to crave companionship, but unfortunately, most of the men he knew preferred clean clothes and their clubs over being naked in the jungle. It was hard to understand, but it was clear that they did.
The two had just turned a projecting rock around which the trail ran when they were brought to a sudden stop. There, before them, directly in the middle of the path, stood Numa, el adrea, the black lion. His green eyes looked very wicked, and he bared his teeth, and lashed his bay-black sides with his angry tail. Then he roared—the fearsome, terror-inspiring roar of the hungry lion which is also angry.
The two had just rounded a jutting rock on the trail when they came to an abrupt halt. Right there in the middle of the path stood Numa, el adrea, the black lion. His green eyes looked wicked, he bared his teeth, and lashed his dark bay sides with his angry tail. Then he roared—the terrifying, fear-inducing roar of a hungry and angry lion.
“Your knife,” said Tarzan to the girl, extending his hand. She slipped the hilt of the weapon into his waiting palm. As his fingers closed upon it he drew her back and pushed her behind him. “Walk back to the desert as rapidly as you can. If you hear me call you will know that all is well, and you may return.”
“Your knife,” Tarzan said to the girl, extending his hand. She slipped the hilt of the weapon into his waiting palm. As his fingers closed around it, he pulled her back and pushed her behind him. “Walk back to the desert as quickly as you can. If you hear me call, you’ll know everything is fine, and you can come back.”
“It is useless,” she replied, resignedly. “This is the end.”
“It’s pointless,” she said, feeling defeated. “This is it.”
“Do as I tell you,” he commanded. “Quickly! He is about to charge.” The girl dropped back a few paces, where she stood watching for the terrible sight that she knew she should soon witness.
“Do what I say,” he ordered. “Hurry! He's about to charge.” The girl stepped back a few paces, where she stood waiting for the horrifying scene she knew she was about to see.
The lion was advancing slowly toward Tarzan, his nose to the ground, like a challenging bull, his tail extended now and quivering as though with intense excitement.
The lion was slowly moving toward Tarzan, its nose to the ground, like a challenging bull, its tail extended now and trembling as if with intense excitement.
The ape-man stood, half crouching, the long Arab knife glistening in the moonlight. Behind him the tense figure of the girl, motionless as a carven statue. She leaned slightly forward, her lips parted, her eyes wide. Her only conscious thought was wonder at the bravery of the man who dared face with a puny knife the lord with the large head. A man of her own blood would have knelt in prayer and gone down beneath those awful fangs without resistance. In either case the result would be the same—it was inevitable; but she could not repress a thrill of admiration as her eyes rested upon the heroic figure before her. Not a tremor in the whole giant frame—his attitude as menacing and defiant as that of el adrea himself.
The ape-man stood, half crouching, the long Arab knife shining in the moonlight. Behind him was the tense figure of the girl, still as a carved statue. She leaned slightly forward, her lips slightly parted and her eyes wide. The only thing on her mind was wondering about the bravery of the man who dared to face the lord with the large head wielding just a puny knife. A man from her own blood would have knelt in prayer and succumbed to those terrifying fangs without putting up a fight. In either case, the outcome would be the same—it was unavoidable; but she couldn't help feeling a rush of admiration as her eyes fell on the heroic figure before her. Not a tremor in his entire giant frame—his stance was as threatening and defiant as that of el adrea himself.
The lion was quite close to him now—but a few paces intervened—he crouched, and then, with a deafening roar, he sprang.
The lion was really close to him now—but there were only a few steps in between—he crouched down, and then, with a thunderous roar, he leaped.
Chapter XI
John Caldwell, London
As Numa el adrea launched himself with widespread paws and bared fangs he looked to find this puny man as easy prey as the score who had gone down beneath him in the past. To him man was a clumsy, slow-moving, defenseless creature—he had little respect for him.
As Numa el adrea launched himself with outstretched paws and bared fangs, he expected to find this weak man an easy target, just like the ones he had taken down before. To him, humans were awkward, slow, and defenseless—he had little respect for them.
But this time he found that he was pitted against a creature as agile and as quick as himself. When his mighty frame struck the spot where the man had been he was no longer there.
But this time he realized he was up against a creature just as agile and quick as he was. When his powerful body hit the spot where the man had been, he was gone.
The watching girl was transfixed by astonishment at the ease with which the crouching man eluded the great paws. And now, O Allah! He had rushed in behind el adrea’s shoulder even before the beast could turn, and had grasped him by the mane. The lion reared upon his hind legs like a horse—Tarzan had known that he would do this, and he was ready. A giant arm encircled the black-maned throat, and once, twice, a dozen times a sharp blade darted in and out of the bay-black side behind the left shoulder.
The girl watching was amazed at how easily the crouching man avoided the massive paws. And now, oh Allah! He had dashed in behind el adrea’s shoulder before the beast could even turn and had grabbed him by the mane. The lion stood up on its hind legs like a horse—Tarzan had anticipated this, and he was ready. A strong arm wrapped around the black-maned throat, and once, twice, a dozen times, a sharp blade sliced in and out of the jet-black side behind the left shoulder.
Frantic were the leaps of Numa—awful his roars of rage and pain; but the giant upon his back could not be dislodged or brought within reach of fangs or talons in the brief interval of life that remained to the lord with the large head. He was quite dead when Tarzan of the Apes released his hold and arose. Then the daughter of the desert witnessed a thing that terrified her even more than had the presence of el adrea. The man placed a foot upon the carcass of his kill, and, with his handsome face raised toward the full moon, gave voice to the most frightful cry that ever had smote upon her ears.
Numa jumped around frantically—his roars of rage and pain were terrible; but the giant on his back couldn't be shaken off or brought within reach of fangs or talons in the short time left for the lord with the large head. He was completely dead when Tarzan of the Apes let go and stood up. Then the desert girl saw something that scared her even more than the presence of el adrea. The man put a foot on the body of his kill, and, with his handsome face turned up to the full moon, let out the most terrifying cry she had ever heard.
With a little cry of fear she shrank away from him—she thought that the fearful strain of the encounter had driven him mad. As the last note of that fiendish challenge died out in the diminishing echoes of the distance the man dropped his eyes until they rested upon the girl.
With a small cry of fear, she pulled away from him—she thought that the intense pressure of the encounter had pushed him over the edge. As the last sound of that menacing challenge faded into the distant echoes, the man lowered his gaze until it settled on the girl.
Instantly his face was lighted by the kindly smile that was ample assurance of his sanity, and the girl breathed freely once again, smiling in response.
Instantly, his face brightened with a warm smile that reassured her he was completely sane, and the girl exhaled in relief, smiling back at him.
“What manner of man are you?” she asked. “The thing you have done is unheard of. Even now I cannot believe that it is possible for a lone man armed only with a knife to have fought hand to hand with el adrea and conquered him, unscathed—to have conquered him at all. And that cry—it was not human. Why did you do that?”
“What kind of man are you?” she asked. “What you’ve done is unbelievable. Even now, I can’t wrap my head around the idea that a single man with just a knife could fight hand to hand with el adrea and come out unhurt—to have actually defeated him at all. And that cry—it wasn’t human. Why did you do that?”
Tarzan flushed. “It is because I forget,” he said, “sometimes, that I am a civilized man. When I kill it must be that I am another creature.” He did not try to explain further, for it always seemed to him that a woman must look with loathing upon one who was yet so nearly a beast.
Tarzan blushed. “It's because I sometimes forget,” he said, “that I’m a civilized man. When I kill, it must be as if I’m another creature.” He didn’t try to explain more, since it always seemed to him that a woman would look at someone like him with disgust, someone who was still so close to being a beast.
Together they continued their journey. The sun was an hour high when they came out into the desert again beyond the mountains. Beside a little rivulet they found the girl’s horses grazing. They had come this far on their way home, and with the cause of their fear no longer present had stopped to feed.
Together they kept going. The sun was up for an hour when they emerged into the desert again past the mountains. Next to a small stream, they found the girl’s horses grazing. They had made it this far on their way home, and with the source of their fear no longer around, they had stopped to eat.
With little trouble Tarzan and the girl caught them, and, mounting, rode out into the desert toward the douar of Sheik Kadour ben Saden.
With minimal effort, Tarzan and the girl caught up with them, and after mounting, they rode out into the desert toward the douar of Sheik Kadour ben Saden.
No sign of pursuit developed, and they came in safety about nine o’clock to their destination. The sheik had but just returned. He was frantic with grief at the absence of his daughter, whom he thought had been again abducted by the marauders. With fifty men he was already mounted to go in search of her when the two rode into the douar.
No sign of a chase appeared, and they arrived safely at their destination around nine o'clock. The sheik had just returned. He was frantic with grief over his daughter's absence, fearing she had been kidnapped again by the marauders. With fifty men, he was already mounted and ready to search for her when the two rode into the douar.
His joy at the safe return of his daughter was only equaled by his gratitude to Tarzan for bringing her safely to him through the dangers of the night, and his thankfulness that she had been in time to save the man who had once saved her.
His happiness at his daughter's safe return was matched only by his gratitude to Tarzan for bringing her back to him safely through the dangers of the night, and his appreciation that she had been there just in time to save the man who had once saved her.
No honor that Kadour ben Saden could heap upon the ape-man in acknowledgment of his esteem and friendship was neglected. When the girl had recited the story of the slaying of el adrea Tarzan was surrounded by a mob of worshiping Arabs—it was a sure road to their admiration and respect.
No honor that Kadour ben Saden could give to the ape-man in recognition of his esteem and friendship was overlooked. After the girl told the story of the killing of el adrea, Tarzan was surrounded by a crowd of admiring Arabs—it was a guaranteed path to their admiration and respect.
The old sheik insisted that Tarzan remain indefinitely as his guest. He even wished to adopt him as a member of the tribe, and there was for some time a half-formed resolution in the ape-man’s mind to accept and remain forever with these wild people, whom he understood and who seemed to understand him. His friendship and liking for the girl were potent factors in urging him toward an affirmative decision.
The old sheik insisted that Tarzan stay indefinitely as his guest. He even wanted to adopt him as part of the tribe, and for a while, Tarzan had a vague intention of accepting and staying forever with these wild people, whom he understood and who seemed to understand him. His friendship and affection for the girl were strong reasons pushing him toward a positive decision.
Had she been a man, he argued, he should not have hesitated, for it would have meant a friend after his own heart, with whom he could ride and hunt at will; but as it was they would be hedged by the conventionalities that are even more strictly observed by the wild nomads of the desert than by their more civilized brothers and sisters. And in a little while she would be married to one of these swarthy warriors, and there would be an end to their friendship. So he decided against the sheik’s proposal, though he remained a week as his guest.
Had she been a man, he argued, he wouldn't have hesitated, because it would have meant having a friend after his own heart, someone with whom he could ride and hunt freely. But as it stood, they would be restricted by the social norms that are even more strictly followed by the wild nomads of the desert than by their more civilized counterparts. In a little while, she would marry one of these dark-skinned warriors, and that would put an end to their friendship. So he turned down the sheik’s proposal, even though he stayed as his guest for a week.
When he left, Kadour ben Saden and fifty white-robed warriors rode with him to Bou Saada. While they were mounting in the douar of Kadour ben Saden the morning of their departure, the girl came to bid farewell to Tarzan.
When he left, Kadour ben Saden and fifty white-robed warriors rode with him to Bou Saada. While they were getting on their horses in the douar of Kadour ben Saden that morning, the girl came to say goodbye to Tarzan.
“I have prayed that you would remain with us,” she said simply, as he leaned from his saddle to clasp her hand in farewell, “and now I shall pray that you will return.” There was an expression of wistfulness in her beautiful eyes, and a pathetic droop at the corners of her mouth. Tarzan was touched.
“I’ve prayed that you’d stay with us,” she said earnestly as he leaned from his saddle to take her hand in goodbye, “and now I’ll pray that you come back.” There was a hint of longing in her beautiful eyes and a sad droop at the corners of her mouth. Tarzan felt moved.
“Who knows?” and then he turned and rode after the departing Arabs.
“Who knows?” he said, then turned and rode after the departing Arabs.
Outside Bou Saada he bade Kadour ben Saden and his men good-by, for there were reasons which made him wish to make his entry into the town as secret as possible, and when he had explained them to the sheik the latter concurred in his decision. The Arabs were to enter Bou Saada ahead of him, saying nothing as to his presence with them. Later Tarzan would come in alone, and go directly to an obscure native inn.
Outside Bou Saada, he said goodbye to Kadour ben Saden and his men because he wanted to keep his entry into the town as secret as possible. After explaining his reasons to the sheik, the latter agreed with his plan. The Arabs were to enter Bou Saada ahead of him, keeping quiet about his presence with them. Later, Tarzan would come in alone and go straight to a little-known local inn.
Thus, making his entrance after dark, as he did, he was not seen by any one who knew him, and reached the inn unobserved. After dining with Kadour ben Saden as his guest, he went to his former hotel by a roundabout way, and, coming in by a rear entrance, sought the proprietor, who seemed much surprised to see him alive.
So, when he arrived after dark like that, no one who recognized him saw him, and he got to the inn unnoticed. After having dinner with Kadour ben Saden as his guest, he took a longer route back to his old hotel and entered through a back entrance to find the owner, who looked quite shocked to see him alive.
Yes, there was mail for monsieur; he would fetch it. No, he would mention monsieur’s return to no one. Presently he returned with a packet of letters. One was an order from his superior to lay off on his present work, and hasten to Cape Town by the first steamer he could get. His further instructions would be awaiting him there in the hands of another agent whose name and address were given. That was all—brief but explicit. Tarzan arranged to leave Bou Saada early the next morning. Then he started for the garrison to see Captain Gerard, whom the hotel man had told him had returned with his detachment the previous day.
Yes, there was mail for the gentleman; he would get it. No, he wouldn't mention the gentleman’s return to anyone. Soon, he came back with a packet of letters. One was an order from his superior to stop his current work and hurry to Cape Town on the next steamer he could find. His further instructions would be waiting for him there with another agent whose name and address were provided. That was all—short but clear. Tarzan planned to leave Bou Saada early the next morning. Then he headed to the garrison to see Captain Gerard, who the hotel clerk had said returned with his unit the day before.
He found the officer in his quarters. He was filled with surprise and pleasure at seeing Tarzan alive and well.
He found the officer in his room. He was filled with surprise and joy at seeing Tarzan alive and well.
“When Lieutenant Gernois returned and reported that he had not found you at the spot that you had chosen to remain while the detachment was scouting, I was filled with alarm. We searched the mountain for days. Then came word that you had been killed and eaten by a lion. As proof your gun was brought to us. Your horse had returned to camp the second day after your disappearance. We could not doubt. Lieutenant Gernois was grief-stricken—he took all the blame upon himself. It was he who insisted on carrying on the search himself. It was he who found the Arab with your gun. He will be delighted to know that you are safe.”
“When Lieutenant Gernois came back and said he couldn't find you at the place you decided to stay while the team was scouting, I was filled with worry. We searched the mountain for days. Then we heard the news that you had been killed and eaten by a lion. As proof, your gun was brought to us. Your horse returned to camp two days after you went missing. We couldn't doubt it. Lieutenant Gernois was heartbroken—he took all the blame onto himself. He was the one who insisted on continuing the search himself. He was the one who found the Arab with your gun. He will be so relieved to know that you are safe.”
“Doubtless,” said Tarzan, with a grim smile.
“Of course,” said Tarzan, with a grim smile.
“He is down in the town now, or I should send for him,” continued Captain Gerard. “I shall tell him as soon as he returns.”
“He's in town right now, or I would send for him,” Captain Gerard continued. “I'll let him know as soon as he gets back.”
Tarzan let the officer think that he had been lost, wandering finally into the douar of Kadour ben Saden, who had escorted him back to Bou Saada. As soon as possible he bade the good officer adieu, and hastened back into the town. At the native inn he had learned through Kadour ben Saden a piece of interesting information. It told of a black-bearded white man who went always disguised as an Arab. For a time he had nursed a broken wrist. More recently he had been away from Bou Saada, but now he was back, and Tarzan knew his place of concealment. It was for there he headed.
Tarzan let the officer believe that he had been lost and had finally stumbled into the douar of Kadour ben Saden, who had brought him back to Bou Saada. As soon as he could, he said goodbye to the officer and hurried back into town. At the local inn, he had learned from Kadour ben Saden some intriguing information. It was about a black-bearded white man who always disguised himself as an Arab. For a while, he had been nursing a broken wrist. He had recently been away from Bou Saada, but now he was back, and Tarzan knew where he was hiding. That's where he was headed.
Through narrow, stinking alleys, black as Erebus, he groped, and then up a rickety stairway, at the end of which was a closed door and a tiny, unglazed window. The window was high under the low eaves of the mud building. Tarzan could just reach the sill. He raised himself slowly until his eyes topped it. The room within was lighted, and at a table sat Rokoff and Gernois. Gernois was speaking.
Through narrow, stinky alleys, as dark as night, he fumbled his way, and then up a shaky stairway, at the end of which was a closed door and a tiny, unglazed window. The window was high under the low eaves of the mud building. Tarzan could just reach the sill. He pulled himself up slowly until his eyes were above it. The room inside was lit, and at a table sat Rokoff and Gernois. Gernois was talking.
“Rokoff, you are a devil!” he was saying. “You have hounded me until I have lost the last shred of my honor. You have driven me to murder, for the blood of that man Tarzan is on my hands. If it were not that that other devil’s spawn, Paulvitch, still knew my secret, I should kill you here tonight with my bare hands.”
“Rokoff, you’re a devil!” he said. “You’ve hunted me down until I’ve lost every bit of my honor. You’ve pushed me to murder, and now the blood of that man Tarzan is on my hands. If it weren’t for that other devil’s kid, Paulvitch, still knowing my secret, I would kill you here tonight with my bare hands.”
Rokoff laughed. “You would not do that, my dear lieutenant,” he said. “The moment I am reported dead by assassination that dear Alexis will forward to the minister of war full proof of the affair you so ardently long to conceal; and, further, will charge you with my murder. Come, be sensible. I am your best friend. Have I not protected your honor as though it were my own?”
Rokoff laughed. “You wouldn’t do that, my dear lieutenant,” he said. “The moment I’m reported dead from assassination, that dear Alexis will send full proof of the incident you’re so eager to hide to the minister of war; and, on top of that, he will accuse you of my murder. Come on, be reasonable. I am your best friend. Haven’t I protected your honor as if it were my own?”
Gernois sneered, and spat out an oath.
Gernois scoffed and cursed.
“Just one more little payment,” continued Rokoff, “and the papers I wish, and you have my word of honor that I shall never ask another cent from you, or further information.”
“Just one more small payment,” Rokoff continued, “and I’ll get the papers I want. You have my word that I won’t ask for another cent from you or any more information.”
“And a good reason why,” growled Gernois. “What you ask will take my last cent, and the only valuable military secret I hold. You ought to be paying me for the information, instead of taking both it and money, too.”
“And a good reason why,” growled Gernois. “What you’re asking will cost me my last cent and the only valuable military secret I have. You should be paying me for the information instead of taking both it and my money.”
“I am paying you by keeping a still tongue in my head,” retorted Rokoff. “But let’s have done. Will you, or will you not? I give you three minutes to decide. If you are not agreeable I shall send a note to your commandant tonight that will end in the degradation that Dreyfus suffered—the only difference being that he did not deserve it.”
“I’m paying you by keeping quiet,” Rokoff shot back. “But let’s wrap this up. Will you agree or not? I’m giving you three minutes to decide. If you refuse, I’ll send a note to your commander tonight that will lead to the same disgrace Dreyfus faced—the only difference is he didn’t deserve it.”
For a moment Gernois sat with bowed head. At length he arose. He drew two pieces of paper from his blouse.
For a moment, Gernois sat with his head down. Finally, he stood up. He took out two pieces of paper from his shirt.
“Here,” he said hopelessly. “I had them ready, for I knew that there could be but one outcome.” He held them toward the Russian.
“Here,” he said with despair. “I had them prepared, because I knew there could only be one result.” He held them out to the Russian.
Rokoff’s cruel face lighted in malignant gloating. He seized the bits of paper.
Rokoff's cruel face lit up with malicious satisfaction. He grabbed the pieces of paper.
“You have done well, Gernois,” he said. “I shall not trouble you again—unless you happen to accumulate some more money or information,” and he grinned.
“You did a great job, Gernois,” he said. “I won’t bother you again—unless you manage to get some more money or information,” and he smiled.
“You never shall again, you dog!” hissed Gernois. “The next time I shall kill you. I came near doing it tonight. For an hour I sat with these two pieces of paper on my table before me ere I came here—beside them lay my loaded revolver. I was trying to decide which I should bring. Next time the choice shall be easier, for I already have decided. You had a close call tonight, Rokoff; do not tempt fate a second time.”
“You won’t get another chance, you dog!” Gernois hissed. “Next time, I’ll kill you. I almost did it tonight. For an hour, I sat with these two pieces of paper on my table, staring at them—next to them was my loaded revolver. I was trying to decide which one to take. Next time, the choice will be easier because I've already made my decision. You barely escaped tonight, Rokoff; don’t push your luck again.”
Then Gernois rose to leave. Tarzan barely had time to drop to the landing and shrink back into the shadows on the far side of the door. Even then he scarcely hoped to elude detection. The landing was very small, and though he flattened himself against the wall at its far edge he was scarcely more than a foot from the doorway. Almost immediately it opened, and Gernois stepped out. Rokoff was behind him. Neither spoke. Gernois had taken perhaps three steps down the stairway when he halted and half turned, as though to retrace his steps.
Then Gernois stood up to leave. Tarzan barely had time to drop down to the landing and press himself into the shadows on the far side of the door. Even then, he hardly expected to go unnoticed. The landing was very small, and even though he squeezed himself against the wall at its far edge, he was barely a foot away from the doorway. Almost immediately, it opened, and Gernois stepped out. Rokoff was right behind him. Neither of them said a word. Gernois had taken maybe three steps down the stairs when he stopped and half-turned, as if he was about to go back.
Tarzan knew that discovery would be inevitable. Rokoff still stood on the threshold a foot from him, but he was looking in the opposite direction, toward Gernois. Then the officer evidently reconsidered his decision, and resumed his downward course. Tarzan could hear Rokoff’s sigh of relief. A moment later the Russian went back into the room and closed the door.
Tarzan realized that discovery was bound to happen. Rokoff was still standing right by the door, but he was looking the other way, towards Gernois. Then the officer seemed to change his mind and started moving down again. Tarzan heard Rokoff let out a sigh of relief. A moment later, the Russian reentered the room and shut the door.
Tarzan waited until Gernois had had time to get well out of hearing, then he pushed open the door and stepped into the room. He was on top of Rokoff before the man could rise from the chair where he sat scanning the paper Gernois had given him. As his eyes turned and fell upon the ape-man’s face his own went livid.
Tarzan waited until Gernois was far enough away that he couldn’t hear him, then he pushed the door open and entered the room. He was on top of Rokoff before the man could even get up from the chair where he was sitting, looking at the paper Gernois had handed him. When Rokoff’s eyes met the ape-man’s face, his own went pale.
“You!” he gasped.
"You!" he exclaimed.
“I,” replied Tarzan.
“I,” said Tarzan.
“What do you want?” whispered Rokoff, for the look in the ape-man’s eyes frightened him. “Have you come to kill me? You do not dare. They would guillotine you. You do not dare kill me.”
“What do you want?” whispered Rokoff, feeling scared by the look in the ape-man’s eyes. “Have you come to kill me? You wouldn’t dare. They would execute you. You wouldn’t dare to kill me.”
“I dare kill you, Rokoff,” replied Tarzan, “for no one knows that you are here or that I am here, and Paulvitch would tell them that it was Gernois. I heard you tell Gernois so. But that would not influence me, Rokoff. I would not care who knew that I had killed you; the pleasure of killing you would more than compensate for any punishment they might inflict upon me. You are the most despicable cur of a coward, Rokoff, I have ever heard of. You should be killed. I should love to kill you,” and Tarzan approached closer to the man.
“I dare you to try and kill me, Rokoff,” Tarzan replied. “Because no one knows you’re here or that I am, and Paulvitch would just blame it on Gernois. I heard you say that to Gernois. But that wouldn’t affect my decision, Rokoff. I wouldn’t care who found out I killed you; the satisfaction of ending your life would far outweigh any punishment they could impose on me. You’re the most despicable coward I've ever encountered, Rokoff. You deserve to die. I would love to kill you,” and Tarzan stepped closer to the man.
Rokoff’s nerves were keyed to the breaking point. With a shriek he sprang toward an adjoining room, but the ape-man was upon his back while his leap was yet but half completed. Iron fingers sought his throat—the great coward squealed like a stuck pig, until Tarzan had shut off his wind. Then the ape-man dragged him to his feet, still choking him. The Russian struggled futilely—he was like a babe in the mighty grasp of Tarzan of the Apes.
Rokoff's nerves were on edge. With a scream, he jumped toward the next room, but the ape-man was already on his back before he barely got halfway there. Strong fingers reached for his throat— the big coward squealed like a pig until Tarzan cut off his air. Then the ape-man pulled him to his feet, still choking him. The Russian fought back helplessly— he was like a baby in the powerful hold of Tarzan of the Apes.
Tarzan sat him in a chair, and long before there was danger of the man’s dying he released his hold upon his throat. When the Russian’s coughing spell had abated Tarzan spoke to him again.
Tarzan sat him in a chair, and long before there was any risk of the man dying, he let go of his throat. Once the Russian's coughing fit had eased, Tarzan spoke to him again.
“I have given you a taste of the suffering of death,” he said. “But I shall not kill—this time. I am sparing you solely for the sake of a very good woman whose great misfortune it was to have been born of the same woman who gave birth to you. But I shall spare you only this once on her account. Should I ever learn that you have again annoyed her or her husband—should you ever annoy me again—should I hear that you have returned to France or to any French possession, I shall make it my sole business to hunt you down and complete the choking I commenced tonight.” Then he turned to the table, on which the two pieces of paper still lay. As he picked them up Rokoff gasped in horror.
"I've shown you a glimpse of the pain of death," he said. "But I won't kill you—this time. I'm sparing you just for the sake of a truly good woman, whose misfortune was to be born to the same mother as you. But I'll only let you go this once because of her. If I ever find out that you've bothered her or her husband again—if you ever annoy me again—if I hear that you've returned to France or any French territory, I will make it my mission to track you down and finish what I started tonight." Then he turned to the table, where the two pieces of paper still rested. As he picked them up, Rokoff gasped in horror.
Tarzan examined both the check and the other. He was amazed at the information the latter contained. Rokoff had partially read it, but Tarzan knew that no one could remember the salient facts and figures it held which made it of real value to an enemy of France.
Tarzan looked closely at both the check and the other document. He was shocked by the information in the latter. Rokoff had skimmed through it, but Tarzan understood that no one could remember the key facts and figures it contained, which made it really valuable to someone who was an enemy of France.
“These will interest the chief of staff,” he said, as he slipped them into his pocket. Rokoff groaned. He did not dare curse aloud.
“These will interest the chief of staff,” he said, as he put them in his pocket. Rokoff groaned. He didn’t dare swear out loud.
The next morning Tarzan rode north on his way to Bouira and Algiers. As he had ridden past the hotel Lieutenant Gernois was standing on the veranda. As his eyes discovered Tarzan he went white as chalk. The ape-man would have been glad had the meeting not occurred, but he could not avoid it. He saluted the officer as he rode past. Mechanically Gernois returned the salute, but those terrible, wide eyes followed the horseman, expressionless except for horror. It was as though a dead man looked upon a ghost.
The next morning, Tarzan headed north toward Bouira and Algiers. As he rode by the hotel, Lieutenant Gernois was standing on the veranda. When he saw Tarzan, his face went pale. The ape-man would have preferred not to have this encounter, but there was no way to avoid it. He saluted the officer as he rode past. Gernois mechanically returned the salute, but his wide, terrified eyes kept watching the horseman, completely devoid of emotion except for fear. It was like a dead man staring at a ghost.
At Sidi Aissa Tarzan met a French officer with whom he had become acquainted on the occasion of his recent sojourn in the town.
At Sidi Aissa, Tarzan met a French officer he had gotten to know during his recent stay in the town.
“You left Bou Saada early?” questioned the officer. “Then you have not heard about poor Gernois.”
"You left Bou Saada early?" the officer asked. "Then you haven't heard about poor Gernois."
“He was the last man I saw as I rode away,” replied Tarzan. “What about him?”
“He was the last guy I saw as I rode off,” Tarzan replied. “What about him?”
“He is dead. He shot himself about eight o’clock this morning.”
“He's dead. He shot himself around eight this morning.”
Two days later Tarzan reached Algiers. There he found that he would have a two days’ wait before he could catch a ship bound for Cape Town. He occupied his time in writing out a full report of his mission. The secret papers he had taken from Rokoff he did not inclose, for he did not dare trust them out of his own possession until he had been authorized to turn them over to another agent, or himself return to Paris with them.
Two days later, Tarzan arrived in Algiers. There he discovered that he would have to wait two days before he could catch a ship to Cape Town. He spent his time writing a detailed report of his mission. He did not include the secret papers he had taken from Rokoff because he didn't trust anyone else to handle them until he was authorized to give them to another agent, or until he could personally return to Paris with them.
As Tarzan boarded his ship after what seemed a most tedious wait to him, two men watched him from an upper deck. Both were fashionably dressed and smooth shaven. The taller of the two had sandy hair, but his eyebrows were very black. Later in the day they chanced to meet Tarzan on deck, but as one hurriedly called his companion’s attention to something at sea their faces were turned from Tarzan as he passed, so that he did not notice their features. In fact, he had paid no attention to them at all.
As Tarzan got on his ship after what felt like an endless wait to him, two men observed him from an upper deck. Both were dressed stylishly and clean-shaven. The taller one had sandy hair, but his eyebrows were very dark. Later that day, they happened to encounter Tarzan on deck, but as one quickly pointed out something at sea to the other, their faces were turned away from Tarzan as he walked by, so he didn't see their features. In fact, he didn't pay them any attention at all.
Following the instructions of his chief, Tarzan had booked his passage under an assumed name—John Caldwell, London. He did not understand the necessity of this, and it caused him considerable speculation. He wondered what role he was to play in Cape Town.
Following his boss's instructions, Tarzan had booked his ticket under a fake name—John Caldwell, London. He didn't get why this was necessary, and it made him think a lot. He wondered what part he was meant to play in Cape Town.
“Well,” he thought, “thank Heaven that I am rid of Rokoff. He was commencing to annoy me. I wonder if I am really becoming so civilized that presently I shall develop a set of nerves. He would give them to me if any one could, for he does not fight fair. One never knows through what new agency he is going to strike. It is as though Numa, the lion, had induced Tantor, the elephant, and Histah, the snake, to join him in attempting to kill me. I would then never have known what minute, or by whom, I was to be attacked next. But the brutes are more chivalrous than man—they do not stoop to cowardly intrigue.”
“Well,” he thought, “thank goodness I’m finally free of Rokoff. He was starting to get on my nerves. I wonder if I’m really becoming so civilized that I’ll eventually develop a whole set of nerves. He would definitely manage to do that if anyone could, because he doesn’t play fair. You never know what sneaky trick he’s going to pull next. It’s like Numa, the lion, convinced Tantor, the elephant, and Histah, the snake, to team up to try to take me down. Then I’d never know when or by whom I was going to be attacked next. But the beasts are more honorable than humans—they don’t resort to cowardly schemes."
At dinner that night Tarzan sat next to a young woman whose place was at the captain’s left. The officer introduced them.
At dinner that night, Tarzan sat next to a young woman who was seated to the captain’s left. The officer introduced them.
Miss Strong! Where had he heard the name before? It was very familiar. And then the girl’s mother gave him the clew, for when she addressed her daughter she called her Hazel.
Miss Strong! Where had he heard that name before? It sounded really familiar. Then the girl’s mom gave him a hint, because when she called out to her daughter, she referred to her as Hazel.
Hazel Strong! What memories the name inspired. It had been a letter to this girl, penned by the fair hand of Jane Porter, that had carried to him the first message from the woman he loved. How vividly he recalled the night he had stolen it from the desk in the cabin of his long-dead father, where Jane Porter had sat writing it late into the night, while he crouched in the darkness without. How terror-stricken she would have been that night had she known that the wild jungle beast squatted outside her window, watching her every move.
Hazel Strong! What memories that name brought back. It was a letter to this girl, written by Jane Porter, that had delivered the first message from the woman he loved. He remembered so clearly the night he had taken it from the desk in his long-dead father's cabin, where Jane Porter had been writing it late into the night, while he hid in the darkness outside. How terrified she would have been that night if she had known that the wild jungle beast was crouched outside her window, watching her every move.
And this was Hazel Strong—Jane Porter’s best friend!
And this was Hazel Strong—Jane Porter’s best friend!
Chapter XII
Ships That Pass
Let us go back a few months to the little, windswept platform of a railway station in northern Wisconsin. The smoke of forest fires hangs low over the surrounding landscape, its acrid fumes smarting the eyes of a little party of six who stand waiting the coming of the train that is to bear them away toward the south.
Let’s go back a few months to the small, windy platform of a train station in northern Wisconsin. The smoke from forest fires hangs low over the surrounding landscape, its harsh fumes stinging the eyes of a small group of six who are waiting for the train that will take them south.
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter, his hands clasped beneath the tails of his long coat, paces back and forth under the ever-watchful eye of his faithful secretary, Mr. Samuel T. Philander. Twice within the past few minutes he has started absent-mindedly across the tracks in the direction of a near-by swamp, only to be rescued and dragged back by the tireless Mr. Philander.
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter, his hands clasped under the back of his long coat, paces back and forth under the watchful eye of his loyal secretary, Mr. Samuel T. Philander. Twice in the last few minutes, he has absent-mindedly started to walk across the tracks toward a nearby swamp, only to be saved and pulled back by the ever-vigilant Mr. Philander.
Jane Porter, the professor’s daughter, is in strained and lifeless conversation with William Cecil Clayton and Tarzan of the Apes. Within the little waiting room, but a bare moment before, a confession of love and a renunciation had taken place that had blighted the lives and happiness of two of the party, but William Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke, was not one of them.
Jane Porter, the professor's daughter, is having a strained and lifeless conversation with William Cecil Clayton and Tarzan of the Apes. Just a moment ago in the small waiting room, a confession of love and a rejection had occurred that had ruined the lives and happiness of two people in the group, but William Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke, was not one of them.
Behind Miss Porter hovered the motherly Esmeralda. She, too, was happy, for was she not returning to her beloved Maryland? Already she could see dimly through the fog of smoke the murky headlight of the oncoming engine. The men began to gather up the hand baggage. Suddenly Clayton exclaimed.
Behind Miss Porter stood the caring Esmeralda. She, too, was happy, because she was going back to her beloved Maryland. She could already see vaguely through the smoky fog the dim headlight of the oncoming train. The men started to collect the hand luggage. Suddenly, Clayton exclaimed.
“By Jove! I’ve left my ulster in the waiting-room,” and hastened off to fetch it.
“By God! I’ve left my coat in the waiting room,” and hurried off to get it.
“Good-bye, Jane,” said Tarzan, extending his hand. “God bless you!”
“Goodbye, Jane,” said Tarzan, reaching out his hand. “God bless you!”
“Good-bye,” replied the girl faintly. “Try to forget me—no, not that—I could not bear to think that you had forgotten me.”
“Goodbye,” the girl said softly. “Try to forget me—no, not that—I couldn’t stand the thought of you forgetting me.”
“There is no danger of that, dear,” he answered. “I wish to Heaven that I might forget. It would be so much easier than to go through life always remembering what might have been. You will be happy, though; I am sure you shall—you must be. You may tell the others of my decision to drive my car on to New York—I don’t feel equal to bidding Clayton good-bye. I want always to remember him kindly, but I fear that I am too much of a wild beast yet to be trusted too long with the man who stands between me and the one person in all the world I want.”
“There's no risk of that, dear,” he replied. “I wish I could forget. It would be so much easier than going through life always remembering what could have been. You’ll be happy, though; I’m certain of it—you have to be. You can tell the others about my decision to drive my car to New York—I don’t feel up to saying goodbye to Clayton. I want to always remember him fondly, but I worry I'm still too much of a wild card to be trusted for too long with the guy who stands between me and the one person I want most in the world.”
As Clayton stooped to pick up his coat in the waiting room his eyes fell on a telegraph blank lying face down upon the floor. He stooped to pick it up, thinking it might be a message of importance which some one had dropped. He glanced at it hastily, and then suddenly he forgot his coat, the approaching train—everything but that terrible little piece of yellow paper in his hand. He read it twice before he could fully grasp the terrific weight of meaning that it bore to him.
As Clayton bent down to grab his coat in the waiting room, he noticed a telegraph blank lying face down on the floor. He picked it up, thinking it might be an important message that someone had accidentally dropped. He quickly looked at it, and then suddenly he forgot about his coat, the approaching train—everything except that shocking little piece of yellow paper in his hand. He read it twice before he could completely understand the heavy meaning it held for him.
When he had picked it up he had been an English nobleman, the proud and wealthy possessor of vast estates—a moment later he had read it, and he knew that he was an untitled and penniless beggar. It was D’Arnot’s cablegram to Tarzan, and it read:
When he picked it up, he was an English nobleman, proud and wealthy with vast estates—just a moment later, after reading it, he realized he was an untitled and broke beggar. It was D’Arnot’s cablegram to Tarzan, and it read:
Finger prints prove you Greystoke. Congratulations.
D’ARNOT.
Fingerprints confirm you're Greystoke. Congrats.
D’ARNOT.
He staggered as though he had received a mortal blow. Just then he heard the others calling to him to hurry—the train was coming to a stop at the little platform. Like a man dazed he gathered up his ulster. He would tell them about the cablegram when they were all on board the train. Then he ran out upon the platform just as the engine whistled twice in the final warning that precedes the first rumbling jerk of coupling pins. The others were on board, leaning out from the platform of a Pullman, crying to him to hurry. Quite five minutes elapsed before they were settled in their seats, nor was it until then that Clayton discovered that Tarzan was not with them.
He stumbled like he had just been hit hard. At that moment, he heard the others calling for him to hurry—the train was slowing down at the little platform. Dazed, he grabbed his coat. He would tell them about the cablegram once they were all on the train. Then he rushed out onto the platform just as the engine whistled twice, the final warning before the first jolt of the coupling pins. The others were already on board, leaning out from a Pullman, urging him to hurry. It took them almost five minutes to get settled in their seats, and it wasn’t until then that Clayton realized Tarzan wasn’t with them.
“Where is Tarzan?” he asked Jane Porter. “In another car?”
“Where's Tarzan?” he asked Jane Porter. “In another car?”
“No,” she replied; “at the last minute he determined to drive his machine back to New York. He is anxious to see more of America than is possible from a car window. He is returning to France, you know.”
“No,” she replied; “at the last minute, he decided to drive his car back to New York. He wants to experience more of America than what you can see from a car window. He’s going back to France, you know.”
Clayton did not reply. He was trying to find the right words to explain to Jane Porter the calamity that had befallen him—and her. He wondered just what the effect of his knowledge would be on her. Would she still wish to marry him—to be plain Mrs. Clayton? Suddenly the awful sacrifice which one of them must make loomed large before his imagination. Then came the question: Will Tarzan claim his own? The ape-man had known the contents of the message before he calmly denied knowledge of his parentage! He had admitted that Kala, the ape, was his mother! Could it have been for love of Jane Porter?
Clayton didn’t respond. He was trying to find the right words to explain to Jane Porter the disaster that had fallen on him—and on her. He wondered what his knowledge would mean for her. Would she still want to marry him—to become plain Mrs. Clayton? Suddenly, the terrible sacrifice that one of them would have to make became very clear in his mind. Then the question arose: Will Tarzan claim what is his? The ape-man had known the contents of the message before he calmly denied knowing his parentage! He had admitted that Kala, the ape, was his mother! Could it have been out of love for Jane Porter?
There was no other explanation which seemed reasonable. Then, having ignored the evidence of the message, was it not reasonable to assume that he meant never to claim his birthright? If this were so, what right had he, William Cecil Clayton, to thwart the wishes, to balk the self-sacrifice of this strange man? If Tarzan of the Apes could do this thing to save Jane Porter from unhappiness, why should he, to whose care she was intrusting her whole future, do aught to jeopardize her interests?
There was no other explanation that made sense. So, if he ignored the evidence in the message, could we really assume that he intended to never claim his birthright? If that was the case, what right did he, William Cecil Clayton, have to go against the wishes and undermine the selflessness of this strange man? If Tarzan of the Apes could make this sacrifice to protect Jane Porter from unhappiness, why should he, the one to whom she was entrusting her entire future, do anything to jeopardize her well-being?
And so he reasoned until the first generous impulse to proclaim the truth and relinquish his titles and his estates to their rightful owner was forgotten beneath the mass of sophistries which self-interest had advanced. But during the balance of the trip, and for many days thereafter, he was moody and distraught. Occasionally the thought obtruded itself that possibly at some later day Tarzan would regret his magnanimity, and claim his rights.
And so he thought about it until the initial strong desire to speak the truth and give up his titles and property to their rightful owner faded away under the weight of the justifications that self-interest created. But for the rest of the trip, and for many days after, he was moody and upset. Sometimes, the thought crossed his mind that maybe one day Tarzan would regret his generosity and want to assert his rights.
Several days after they reached Baltimore Clayton broached the subject of an early marriage to Jane.
Several days after they got to Baltimore, Clayton brought up the idea of getting married to Jane.
“What do you mean by early?” she asked.
“What do you mean by early?” she asked.
“Within the next few days. I must return to England at once—I want you to return with me, dear.”
“Within the next few days, I need to go back to England immediately—I want you to come with me, dear.”
“I can’t get ready so soon as that,” replied Jane. “It will take a whole month, at least.”
“I can’t get ready that quickly,” Jane replied. “It will take at least a whole month.”
She was glad, for she hoped that whatever called him to England might still further delay the wedding. She had made a bad bargain, but she intended carrying her part loyally to the bitter end—if she could manage to secure a temporary reprieve, though, she felt that she was warranted in doing so. His reply disconcerted her.
She was relieved because she hoped that whatever was pulling him to England might delay the wedding even more. She had made a poor deal, but she planned to honor her commitment to the very end—if she could just get a temporary break, she felt justified in doing that. His response threw her off balance.
“Very well, Jane,” he said. “I am disappointed, but I shall let my trip to England wait a month; then we can go back together.”
“Alright, Jane,” he said. “I’m disappointed, but I’ll postpone my trip to England for a month; then we can go back together.”
But when the month was drawing to a close she found still another excuse upon which to hang a postponement, until at last, discouraged and doubting, Clayton was forced to go back to England alone.
But as the month came to an end, she found yet another excuse to delay things, and eventually, feeling discouraged and uncertain, Clayton had to return to England by himself.
The several letters that passed between them brought Clayton no nearer to a consummation of his hopes than he had been before, and so it was that he wrote directly to Professor Porter, and enlisted his services. The old man had always favored the match. He liked Clayton, and, being of an old southern family, he put rather an exaggerated value on the advantages of a title, which meant little or nothing to his daughter.
The letters exchanged between them didn’t bring Clayton any closer to fulfilling his hopes than he had been before, so he decided to write directly to Professor Porter and ask for his help. The old man had always supported the relationship. He liked Clayton, and being from an old southern family, he placed an exaggerated importance on the advantages of a title, which meant very little to his daughter.
Clayton urged that the professor accept his invitation to be his guest in London, an invitation which included the professor’s entire little family—Mr. Philander, Esmeralda, and all. The Englishman argued that once Jane was there, and home ties had been broken, she would not so dread the step which she had so long hesitated to take.
Clayton insisted that the professor should accept his invitation to be his guest in London, which also included the professor’s whole little family—Mr. Philander, Esmeralda, and everyone. The Englishman argued that once Jane was there and the connection to home was gone, she wouldn’t be so afraid of the move she had been hesitating to make for so long.
So the evening that he received Clayton’s letter Professor Porter announced that they would leave for London the following week.
So, on the evening he got Clayton's letter, Professor Porter said they would be heading to London the next week.
But once in London Jane Porter was no more tractable than she had been in Baltimore. She found one excuse after another, and when, finally, Lord Tennington invited the party to cruise around Africa in his yacht, she expressed the greatest delight in the idea, but absolutely refused to be married until they had returned to London. As the cruise was to consume a year at least, for they were to stop for indefinite periods at various points of interest, Clayton mentally anathematized Tennington for ever suggesting such a ridiculous trip.
But once in London, Jane Porter was just as stubborn as she had been in Baltimore. She came up with one excuse after another, and when, finally, Lord Tennington invited everyone to sail around Africa on his yacht, she acted thrilled about the idea but flatly refused to get married until they returned to London. Since the cruise was expected to take at least a year and they would be stopping for an indefinite time at various interesting places, Clayton mentally cursed Tennington for ever suggesting such a silly trip.
It was Lord Tennington’s plan to cruise through the Mediterranean, and the Red Sea to the Indian Ocean, and thus down the East Coast, putting in at every port that was worth the seeing.
It was Lord Tennington’s plan to sail through the Mediterranean and the Red Sea to the Indian Ocean, then travel down the East Coast, stopping at every port worth seeing.
And so it happened that on a certain day two vessels passed in the Strait of Gibraltar. The smaller, a trim white yacht, was speeding toward the east, and on her deck sat a young woman who gazed with sad eyes upon a diamond-studded locket which she idly fingered. Her thoughts were far away, in the dim, leafy fastness of a tropical jungle—and her heart was with her thoughts.
And so it happened that on a certain day two boats crossed paths in the Strait of Gibraltar. The smaller one, a sleek white yacht, was racing toward the east, and on her deck sat a young woman who looked with sad eyes at a diamond-studded locket that she absentmindedly played with. Her thoughts were far away, in the shadowy, leafy depths of a tropical jungle—and her heart was where her thoughts were.
She wondered if the man who had given her the beautiful bauble, that had meant so much more to him than the intrinsic value which he had not even known could ever have meant to him, was back in his savage forest.
She wondered if the man who had given her the beautiful trinket, which meant so much more to him than its actual worth that he hadn't even realized could matter to him, was back in his wild forest.
And upon the deck of the larger vessel, a passenger steamer passing toward the east, the man sat with another young woman, and the two idly speculated upon the identity of the dainty craft gliding so gracefully through the gentle swell of the lazy sea.
And on the deck of the bigger ship, a passenger steamer heading east, the man sat with another young woman, and they casually wondered about the identity of the elegant boat gliding smoothly through the gentle waves of the calm sea.
When the yacht had passed the man resumed the conversation that her appearance had broken off.
When the yacht had gone by, the man picked up the conversation that her appearance had interrupted.
“Yes,” he said, “I like America very much, and that means, of course, that I like Americans, for a country is only what its people make it. I met some very delightful people while I was there. I recall one family from your own city, Miss Strong, whom I liked particularly—Professor Porter and his daughter.”
“Yes,” he said, “I really like America, and that means I like Americans, because a country is just what its people make it. I met some really great people while I was there. I remember one family from your own city, Miss Strong, that I liked a lot—Professor Porter and his daughter.”
“Jane Porter!” exclaimed the girl. “Do you mean to tell me that you know Jane Porter? Why, she is the very best friend I have in the world. We were little children together—we have known each other for ages.”
“Jane Porter!” the girl exclaimed. “Are you saying you know Jane Porter? She’s my absolute best friend in the world. We grew up together—we’ve known each other forever.”
“Indeed!” he answered, smiling. “You would have difficulty in persuading any one of the fact who had seen either of you.”
“Absolutely!” he replied with a smile. “You’d have a hard time convincing anyone of that who has seen either of you.”
“I’ll qualify the statement, then,” she answered, with a laugh. “We have known each other for two ages—hers and mine. But seriously we are as dear to each other as sisters, and now that I am going to lose her I am almost heartbroken.”
“I’ll clarify that statement, then,” she replied, laughing. “We’ve known each other for two lifetimes—hers and mine. But honestly, we’re as close as sisters, and now that I’m going to lose her, I’m almost heartbroken.”
“Going to lose her?” exclaimed Tarzan. “Why, what do you mean? Oh, yes, I understand. You mean that now that she is married and living in England, you will seldom if ever see her.”
“Going to lose her?” Tarzan exclaimed. “What do you mean? Oh, I get it. You’re saying that now that she’s married and living in England, you’ll hardly ever see her, if at all.”
“Yes,” replied she; “and the saddest part of it all is that she is not marrying the man she loves. Oh, it is terrible. Marrying from a sense of duty! I think it is perfectly wicked, and I told her so. I have felt so strongly on the subject that although I was the only person outside of blood relations who was to have been asked to the wedding I would not let her invite me, for I should not have gone to witness the terrible mockery. But Jane Porter is peculiarly positive. She has convinced herself that she is doing the only honorable thing that she can do, and nothing in the world will ever prevent her from marrying Lord Greystoke except Greystoke himself, or death.”
“Yes,” she replied; “and the saddest part is that she’s not marrying the man she loves. Oh, it’s terrible. Marrying out of duty! I think it’s completely wrong, and I told her that. I’ve felt so strongly about this that even though I was the only person outside of family who was going to be invited to the wedding, I wouldn’t let her invite me, because I couldn’t bear to witness such a terrible mockery. But Jane Porter is quite stubborn. She’s convinced herself that she’s doing the only honorable thing she can do, and nothing in the world will stop her from marrying Lord Greystoke except for Greystoke himself, or death.”
“I am sorry for her,” said Tarzan.
“I feel sorry for her,” said Tarzan.
“And I am sorry for the man she loves,” said the girl, “for he loves her. I never met him, but from what Jane tells me he must be a very wonderful person. It seems that he was born in an African jungle, and brought up by fierce, anthropoid apes. He had never seen a white man or woman until Professor Porter and his party were marooned on the coast right at the threshold of his tiny cabin. He saved them from all manner of terrible beasts, and accomplished the most wonderful feats imaginable, and then to cap the climax he fell in love with Jane and she with him, though she never really knew it for sure until she had promised herself to Lord Greystoke.”
“And I feel sorry for the guy she loves,” said the girl, “because he loves her. I’ve never met him, but from what Jane tells me, he must be an amazing person. Apparently, he was born in an African jungle and raised by fierce, anthropoid apes. He had never seen a white person until Professor Porter and his group were stranded on the coast right near his tiny cabin. He saved them from all sorts of terrifying beasts and did the most incredible things you can imagine, and then to top it all off, he fell in love with Jane, and she fell for him too, even though she never really knew for sure until she had promised herself to Lord Greystoke.”
“Most remarkable,” murmured Tarzan, cudgeling his brain for some pretext upon which to turn the subject. He delighted in hearing Hazel Strong talk of Jane, but when he was the subject of the conversation he was bored and embarrassed. But he was soon given a respite, for the girl’s mother joined them, and the talk became general.
“Most amazing,” murmured Tarzan, racking his brain for a way to change the subject. He loved hearing Hazel Strong talk about Jane, but when he was the focus of the conversation, he felt bored and uncomfortable. He soon got a break, though, when the girl’s mother joined them, and the conversation became more inclusive.
The next few days passed uneventfully. The sea was quiet. The sky was clear. The steamer plowed steadily on toward the south without pause. Tarzan spent quite a little time with Miss Strong and her mother. They whiled away their hours on deck reading, talking, or taking pictures with Miss Strong’s camera. When the sun had set they walked.
The next few days went by without anything significant happening. The sea was calm. The sky was clear. The steamer moved steadily south without stopping. Tarzan spent a good amount of time with Miss Strong and her mother. They passed their hours on deck reading, chatting, or taking photos with Miss Strong’s camera. After the sun set, they went for walks.
One day Tarzan found Miss Strong in conversation with a stranger, a man he had not seen on board before. As he approached the couple the man bowed to the girl and turned to walk away.
One day, Tarzan saw Miss Strong talking to a stranger, a man he hadn't seen on the ship before. As he got closer to them, the man bowed to the girl and began to walk away.
“Wait, Monsieur Thuran,” said Miss Strong; “you must meet Mr. Caldwell. We are all fellow passengers, and should be acquainted.”
“Wait, Mr. Thuran,” said Miss Strong; “you need to meet Mr. Caldwell. We’re all traveling together and should get to know each other.”
The two men shook hands. As Tarzan looked into the eyes of Monsieur Thuran he was struck by the strange familiarity of their expression.
The two men shook hands. As Tarzan looked into Monsieur Thuran's eyes, he was struck by how strangely familiar their expression was.
“I have had the honor of monsieur’s acquaintance in the past, I am sure,” said Tarzan, “though I cannot recall the circumstances.”
“I’m sure I’ve had the pleasure of meeting you before, sir,” said Tarzan, “even though I can’t remember the details.”
Monsieur Thuran appeared ill at ease.
Mr. Thuran seemed uncomfortable.
“I cannot say, monsieur,” he replied. “It may be so. I have had that identical sensation myself when meeting a stranger.”
“I can’t say, sir,” he replied. “It might be true. I've felt that exact feeling myself when meeting someone new.”
“Monsieur Thuran has been explaining some of the mysteries of navigation to me,” explained the girl.
“Monsieur Thuran has been explaining some of the mysteries of navigation to me,” the girl said.
Tarzan paid little heed to the conversation that ensued—he was attempting to recall where he had met Monsieur Thuran before. That it had been under peculiar circumstances he was positive. Presently the sun reached them, and the girl asked Monsieur Thuran to move her chair farther back into the shade. Tarzan happened to be watching the man at the time, and noticed the awkward manner in which he handled the chair—his left wrist was stiff. That clew was sufficient—a sudden train of associated ideas did the rest.
Tarzan barely paid attention to the conversation that followed—he was trying to remember where he had met Monsieur Thuran before. He was sure it had been under strange circumstances. Soon, the sun reached them, and the girl asked Monsieur Thuran to move her chair further back into the shade. Tarzan was watching the man at that moment and noticed the clumsy way he managed the chair—his left wrist was stiff. That clue was enough—a sudden flow of associated thoughts completed the picture.
Monsieur Thuran had been trying to find an excuse to make a graceful departure. The lull in the conversation following the moving of their position gave him an opportunity to make his excuses. Bowing low to Miss Strong, and inclining his head to Tarzan, he turned to leave them.
Monsieur Thuran had been looking for a reason to leave politely. The pause in the conversation after they shifted positions gave him a chance to say his goodbyes. He bowed deeply to Miss Strong and nodded to Tarzan before turning to walk away.
“Just a moment,” said Tarzan. “If Miss Strong will pardon me I will accompany you. I shall return in a moment, Miss Strong.”
“Just a second,” said Tarzan. “If Miss Strong doesn't mind, I'll join you. I'll be back in a moment, Miss Strong.”
Monsieur Thuran looked uncomfortable. When the two men had passed out of the girl’s sight, Tarzan stopped, laying a heavy hand on the other’s shoulder.
Monsieur Thuran looked uneasy. Once the two men were out of the girl's sight, Tarzan stopped and placed a firm hand on the other man's shoulder.
“What is your game now, Rokoff?” he asked.
“What’s your game now, Rokoff?” he asked.
“I am leaving France as I promised you,” replied the other, in a surly voice.
“I’m leaving France like I promised you,” replied the other, in a grumpy voice.
“I see you are,” said Tarzan; “but I know you so well that I can scarcely believe that your being on the same boat with me is purely a coincidence. If I could believe it the fact that you are in disguise would immediately disabuse my mind of any such idea.”
“I see you are,” said Tarzan; “but I know you so well that I can hardly believe that your being on the same boat with me is just a coincidence. If I could believe that, the fact that you’re in disguise would quickly change my mind about it.”
“Well,” growled Rokoff, with a shrug, “I cannot see what you are going to do about it. This vessel flies the English flag. I have as much right on board her as you, and from the fact that you are booked under an assumed name I imagine that I have more right.”
“Well,” Rokoff said gruffly, shrugging, “I don’t see what you’re going to do about it. This ship flies the English flag. I have just as much right to be here as you do, and since you’re booked under a fake name, I’d say I have more right.”
“We will not discuss it, Rokoff. All I wanted to say to you is that you must keep away from Miss Strong—she is a decent woman.”
“We're not going to talk about it, Rokoff. All I wanted to tell you is that you need to stay away from Miss Strong—she's a good woman.”
Rokoff turned scarlet.
Rokoff blushed.
“If you don’t I shall pitch you overboard,” continued Tarzan. “Do not forget that I am just waiting for some excuse.” Then he turned on his heel, and left Rokoff standing there trembling with suppressed rage.
“If you don’t, I’ll throw you overboard,” Tarzan said. “Don’t forget that I’m just waiting for an excuse.” Then he turned on his heel and left Rokoff standing there, shaking with restrained anger.
He did not see the man again for days, but Rokoff was not idle. In his stateroom with Paulvitch he fumed and swore, threatening the most terrible of revenges.
He didn't see the man again for days, but Rokoff wasn't idle. In his cabin with Paulvitch, he fumed and cursed, threatening the worst kinds of revenge.
“I would throw him overboard tonight,” he cried, “were I sure that those papers were not on his person. I cannot chance pitching them into the ocean with him. If you were not such a stupid coward, Alexis, you would find a way to enter his stateroom and search for the documents.”
“I would throw him overboard tonight,” he shouted, “if I was sure those papers weren't on him. I can’t risk tossing them into the ocean with him. If you weren’t such a coward, Alexis, you’d figure out a way to get into his stateroom and look for the documents.”
Paulvitch smiled. “You are supposed to be the brains of this partnership, my dear Nikolas,” he replied. “Why do you not find the means to search Monsieur Caldwell’s stateroom—eh?”
Paulvitch smiled. “You're supposed to be the brains of this partnership, my dear Nikolas,” he said. “Why don’t you figure out how to search Monsieur Caldwell’s stateroom—huh?”
Two hours later fate was kind to them, for Paulvitch, who was ever on the watch, saw Tarzan leave his room without locking the door. Five minutes later Rokoff was stationed where he could give the alarm in case Tarzan returned, and Paulvitch was deftly searching the contents of the ape-man’s luggage.
Two hours later, fortune smiled on them because Paulvitch, who was always alert, saw Tarzan leave his room without locking the door. Five minutes later, Rokoff was positioned to sound the alarm if Tarzan came back, and Paulvitch was skillfully going through the ape-man’s luggage.
He was about to give up in despair when he saw a coat which Tarzan had just removed. A moment later he grasped an official envelope in his hand. A quick glance at its contents brought a broad smile to the Russian’s face.
He was on the verge of giving up in despair when he noticed a coat that Tarzan had just taken off. A moment later, he found an official envelope in his hand. A quick look at what was inside made the Russian smile widely.
When he left the stateroom Tarzan himself could not have told that an article in it had been touched since he left it—Paulvitch was a past master in his chosen field. When he handed the packet to Rokoff in the seclusion of their stateroom the larger man rang for a steward, and ordered a pint of champagne.
When he left the stateroom, Tarzan wouldn't have been able to tell that anything in it had been disturbed since he left—Paulvitch was a true expert in his field. When he gave the packet to Rokoff in the privacy of their stateroom, the bigger man called for a steward and ordered a pint of champagne.
“We must celebrate, my dear Alexis,” he said.
“We need to celebrate, my dear Alexis,” he said.
“It was luck, Nikolas,” explained Paulvitch. “It is evident that he carries these papers always upon his person—just by chance he neglected to transfer them when he changed coats a few minutes since. But there will be the deuce to pay when he discovers his loss. I am afraid that he will immediately connect you with it. Now that he knows that you are on board he will suspect you at once.”
“It was luck, Nikolas,” Paulvitch explained. “It’s clear he always keeps these papers on him—he just happened to forget to move them when he switched coats a few minutes ago. But he’s going to be furious when he realizes they’re gone. I’m worried he’ll immediately link you to it. Now that he knows you’re on board, he’ll suspect you right away.”
“It will make no difference whom he suspects—after to-night,” said Rokoff, with a nasty grin.
“It won’t matter who he thinks it is—after tonight,” said Rokoff, with an unpleasant grin.
After Miss Strong had gone below that night Tarzan stood leaning over the rail looking far out to sea. Every night he had done this since he had come on board—sometimes he stood thus for an hour. And the eyes that had been watching his every movement since he had boarded the ship at Algiers knew that this was his habit.
After Miss Strong went below that night, Tarzan leaned over the rail, looking out at the sea. He had done this every night since he came on board—sometimes standing there for an hour. The eyes that had been watching his every move since he boarded the ship in Algiers knew this was his routine.
Even as he stood there this night those eyes were on him. Presently the last straggler had left the deck. It was a clear night, but there was no moon—objects on deck were barely discernible.
Even as he stood there that night, those eyes were on him. Soon the last straggler had left the deck. It was a clear night, but there was no moon—things on deck were barely visible.
From the shadows of the cabin two figures crept stealthily upon the ape-man from behind. The lapping of the waves against the ship’s sides, the whirring of the propeller, the throbbing of the engines, drowned the almost soundless approach of the two.
From the shadows of the cabin, two figures quietly crept up on the ape-man from behind. The sound of the waves lapping against the ship's sides, the whirring of the propeller, and the throbbing of the engines masked the nearly silent approach of the two.
They were quite close to him now, and crouching low, like tacklers on a gridiron. One of them raised his hand and lowered it, as though counting off seconds—one—two—three! As one man the two leaped for their victim. Each grasped a leg, and before Tarzan of the Apes, lightning though he was, could turn to save himself he had been pitched over the low rail and was falling into the Atlantic.
They were really close to him now, crouching low like football players getting ready to tackle. One of them raised his hand and then lowered it, as if counting off seconds—one—two—three! In unison, the two jumped for their target. Each grabbed a leg, and before Tarzan of the Apes, quick as he was, could turn to defend himself, he was thrown over the low rail and was falling into the Atlantic.
Hazel Strong was looking from her darkened port across the dark sea. Suddenly a body shot past her eyes from the deck above. It dropped so quickly into the dark waters below that she could not be sure of what it was—it might have been a man, she could not say. She listened for some outcry from above—for the always-fearsome call, “Man overboard!” but it did not come. All was silence on the ship above—all was silence in the sea below.
Hazel Strong was gazing from her dimly lit port across the dark sea. Suddenly, a body whizzed past her from the deck above. It fell so fast into the dark waters below that she couldn't tell what it was—it could have been a man, but she couldn't be sure. She listened for any shout from above—for the ever-dreaded cry, “Man overboard!” but it didn’t come. It was completely silent on the ship above—completely silent in the sea below.
The girl decided that she had but seen a bundle of refuse thrown overboard by one of the ship’s crew, and a moment later sought her berth.
The girl figured she had just seen a pile of trash tossed overboard by one of the ship's crew, and a moment later went to her bunk.
Chapter XIII
The Wreck of the “Lady Alice”
The next morning at breakfast Tarzan’s place was vacant. Miss Strong was mildly curious, for Mr. Caldwell had always made it a point to wait that he might breakfast with her and her mother. As she was sitting on deck later Monsieur Thuran paused to exchange a half dozen pleasant words with her. He seemed in most excellent spirits—his manner was the extreme of affability. As he passed on Miss Strong thought what a very delightful man was Monsieur Thuran.
The next morning at breakfast, Tarzan’s seat was empty. Miss Strong was a bit curious because Mr. Caldwell always made it a point to wait so he could have breakfast with her and her mother. Later, while she was sitting on the deck, Monsieur Thuran stopped to chat with her for a few moments. He seemed to be in great spirits—his demeanor was extremely friendly. As he walked away, Miss Strong thought about what a charming man Monsieur Thuran was.
The day dragged heavily. She missed the quiet companionship of Mr. Caldwell—there had been something about him that had made the girl like him from the first; he had talked so entertainingly of the places he had seen—the peoples and their customs—the wild beasts; and he had always had a droll way of drawing striking comparisons between savage animals and civilized men that showed a considerable knowledge of the former, and a keen, though somewhat cynical, estimate of the latter.
The day felt really long. She missed the calm companionship of Mr. Caldwell—there was something about him that the girl had liked from the start; he shared such captivating stories about the places he had visited—the different cultures and their customs—the wild animals; and he always had a humorous way of making interesting comparisons between wild animals and civilized people that showed he knew a lot about the former and had a sharp, although slightly cynical, view of the latter.
When Monsieur Thuran stopped again to chat with her in the afternoon she welcomed the break in the day’s monotony. But she had begun to become seriously concerned in Mr. Caldwell’s continued absence; somehow she constantly associated it with the start she had had the night before, when the dark object fell past her port into the sea. Presently she broached the subject to Monsieur Thuran. Had he seen Mr. Caldwell today? He had not. Why?
When Monsieur Thuran stopped again to chat with her in the afternoon, she appreciated the break in the day’s routine. However, she had started to worry about Mr. Caldwell’s ongoing absence; somehow, she constantly linked it to the shock she had experienced the night before when the dark object fell past her port into the sea. Eventually, she brought up the topic with Monsieur Thuran. Had he seen Mr. Caldwell today? He hadn’t. Why?
“He was not at breakfast as usual, nor have I seen him once since yesterday,” explained the girl.
“He wasn’t at breakfast like usual, and I haven’t seen him at all since yesterday,” the girl explained.
Monsieur Thuran was extremely solicitous.
Mr. Thuran was very attentive.
“I did not have the pleasure of intimate acquaintance with Mr. Caldwell,” he said. “He seemed a most estimable gentleman, however. Can it be that he is indisposed, and has remained in his stateroom? It would not be strange.”
“I didn’t have the chance to get to know Mr. Caldwell personally,” he said. “He seemed like a really good guy, though. Is it possible that he’s unwell and has stayed in his cabin? That wouldn’t be unusual.”
“No,” replied the girl, “it would not be strange, of course; but for some inexplicable reason I have one of those foolish feminine presentiments that all is not right with Mr. Caldwell. It is the strangest feeling—it is as though I knew that he was not on board the ship.”
“No,” replied the girl, “it wouldn’t be strange, of course; but for some inexplicable reason, I have one of those silly female instincts that something is off with Mr. Caldwell. It’s the weirdest feeling—it’s like I just know he’s not on the ship.”
Monsieur Thuran laughed pleasantly. “Mercy, my dear Miss Strong,” he said; “where in the world could he be then? We have not been within sight of land for days.”
Monsieur Thuran laughed cheerfully. “Oh dear, my lovely Miss Strong,” he said; “where on earth could he be then? We haven’t seen land for days.”
“Of course, it is ridiculous of me,” she admitted. And then: “But I am not going to worry about it any longer; I am going to find out where Mr. Caldwell is,” and she motioned to a passing steward.
“Of course, it's ridiculous of me,” she admitted. And then: “But I’m not going to worry about it anymore; I’m going to find out where Mr. Caldwell is,” and she signaled to a passing steward.
“That may be more difficult than you imagine, my dear girl,” thought Monsieur Thuran, but aloud he said: “By all means.”
“That might be harder than you think, my dear girl,” thought Monsieur Thuran, but he said out loud, “Of course.”
“Find Mr. Caldwell, please,” she said to the steward, “and tell him that his friends are much worried by his continued absence.”
“Could you please find Mr. Caldwell?” she said to the steward. “Let him know that his friends are really worried about his ongoing absence.”
“You are very fond of Mr. Caldwell?” suggested Monsieur Thuran.
“You really like Mr. Caldwell a lot?” suggested Monsieur Thuran.
“I think he is splendid,” replied the girl. “And mamma is perfectly infatuated with him. He is the sort of man with whom one has a feeling of perfect security—no one could help but have confidence in Mr. Caldwell.”
“I think he’s amazing,” replied the girl. “And Mom is completely taken with him. He’s the kind of guy you feel totally safe with—no one could help but trust Mr. Caldwell.”
A moment later the steward returned to say that Mr. Caldwell was not in his stateroom. “I cannot find him, Miss Strong, and”—he hesitated—“I have learned that his berth was not occupied last night. I think that I had better report the matter to the captain.”
A moment later, the steward came back to say that Mr. Caldwell wasn't in his cabin. "I can't find him, Miss Strong, and"—he paused—"I've learned that he didn't sleep in his bed last night. I think I should report this to the captain."
“Most assuredly,” exclaimed Miss Strong. “I shall go with you to the captain myself. It is terrible! I know that something awful has happened. My presentiments were not false, after all.”
“Absolutely,” Miss Strong exclaimed. “I’ll go with you to see the captain myself. It’s awful! I know something terrible has happened. My instincts weren’t wrong after all.”
It was a very frightened young woman and an excited steward who presented themselves before the captain a few moments later. He listened to their stories in silence—a look of concern marking his expression as the steward assured him that he had sought for the missing passenger in every part of the ship that a passenger might be expected to frequent.
It was a very scared young woman and an excited steward who came before the captain a few moments later. He listened to their stories in silence, a look of concern on his face as the steward assured him that he had searched every part of the ship where a passenger might be expected to go.
“And are you sure, Miss Strong, that you saw a body fall overboard last night?” he asked.
“And are you sure, Miss Strong, that you saw a body fall overboard last night?” he asked.
“There is not the slightest doubt about that,” she answered. “I cannot say that it was a human body—there was no outcry. It might have been only what I thought it was—a bundle of refuse. But if Mr. Caldwell is not found on board I shall always be positive that it was he whom I saw fall past my port.”
“There’s not a chance that’s in question,” she replied. “I can’t say it was a human body—there was no cry. It could have just been what I thought it was—a pile of trash. But if Mr. Caldwell isn’t found on board, I’ll always be sure it was him that I saw fall past my window.”
The captain ordered an immediate and thorough search of the entire ship from stem to stern—no nook or cranny was to be overlooked. Miss Strong remained in his cabin, waiting the outcome of the quest. The captain asked her many questions, but she could tell him nothing about the missing man other than what she had herself seen during their brief acquaintance on shipboard. For the first time she suddenly realized how very little indeed Mr. Caldwell had told her about himself or his past life. That he had been born in Africa and educated in Paris was about all she knew, and this meager information had been the result of her surprise that an Englishman should speak English with such a marked French accent.
The captain ordered an immediate and thorough search of the entire ship from front to back—no corner or hidden spot was to be missed. Miss Strong stayed in his cabin, waiting for the results of the search. The captain asked her many questions, but she couldn’t tell him anything about the missing man beyond what she had noticed during their brief time together on the ship. For the first time, she suddenly realized how little Mr. Caldwell had shared about himself or his past. All she knew was that he had been born in Africa and educated in Paris, and this scant information came from her surprise that an Englishman spoke English with such a strong French accent.
“Did he ever speak of any enemies?” asked the captain.
“Did he ever talk about any enemies?” asked the captain.
“Never.”
"Not a chance."
“Was he acquainted with any of the other passengers?”
“Did he know any of the other passengers?”
“Only as he had been with me—through the circumstance of casual meeting as fellow shipmates.”
“Only as he had been with me—through the chance of meeting as fellow crew members.”
“Er—was he, in your opinion, Miss Strong, a man who drank to excess?”
“Um—was he, in your opinion, Miss Strong, a man who drank too much?”
“I do not know that he drank at all—he certainly had not been drinking up to half an hour before I saw that body fall overboard,” she answered, “for I was with him on deck up to that time.”
“I don’t know if he drank at all—he definitely hadn’t been drinking up to half an hour before I saw that body fall overboard,” she replied, “because I was with him on deck until then.”
“It is very strange,” said the captain. “He did not look to me like a man who was subject to fainting spells, or anything of that sort. And even had he been it is scarcely credible that he should have fallen completely over the rail had he been taken with an attack while leaning upon it—he would rather have fallen inside, upon the deck. If he is not on board, Miss Strong, he was thrown overboard—and the fact that you heard no outcry would lead to the assumption that he was dead before he left the ship’s deck—murdered.”
“It’s really odd,” said the captain. “He didn’t seem like the kind of guy who would faint or anything like that. And even if he had, it’s hard to believe he would have toppled completely over the rail—he would have likely fallen inside onto the deck. If he’s not on board, Miss Strong, then he was thrown overboard—and the fact that you didn’t hear any shout suggests he was dead before he went over the side—murdered.”
The girl shuddered.
The girl shivered.
It was a full hour later that the first officer returned to report the outcome of the search.
It was a full hour later that the first officer came back to report the results of the search.
“Mr. Caldwell is not on board, sir,” he said.
“Mr. Caldwell isn't on board, sir,” he said.
“I fear that there is something more serious than accident here, Mr. Brently,” said the captain. “I wish that you would make a personal and very careful examination of Mr. Caldwell’s effects, to ascertain if there is any clew to a motive either for suicide or murder—sift the thing to the bottom.”
“I’m worried that this is more serious than just an accident, Mr. Brently,” said the captain. “I’d like you to personally and thoroughly examine Mr. Caldwell’s belongings to see if there’s any clue that points to a motive for either suicide or murder—let’s get to the bottom of this.”
“Aye, aye, sir!” responded Mr. Brently, and left to commence his investigation.
“Aye, aye, sir!” replied Mr. Brently, and left to start his investigation.
Hazel Strong was prostrated. For two days she did not leave her cabin, and when she finally ventured on deck she was very wan and white, with great, dark circles beneath her eyes. Waking or sleeping, it seemed that she constantly saw that dark body dropping, swift and silent, into the cold, grim sea.
Hazel Strong was utterly defeated. For two days, she stayed in her cabin, and when she finally stepped onto the deck, she looked extremely pale, with deep, dark circles under her eyes. Whether awake or asleep, it felt like she was always seeing that dark figure falling, quickly and silently, into the cold, grim sea.
Shortly after her first appearance on deck following the tragedy, Monsieur Thuran joined her with many expressions of kindly solicitude.
Shortly after she first came on deck after the tragedy, Monsieur Thuran approached her with a lot of kind concern.
“Oh, but it is terrible, Miss Strong,” he said. “I cannot rid my mind of it.”
“Oh, but it's awful, Miss Strong,” he said. “I can't get it out of my head.”
“Nor I,” said the girl wearily. “I feel that he might have been saved had I but given the alarm.”
“Me neither,” the girl said tiredly. “I think he could have been saved if I had just raised the alarm.”
“You must not reproach yourself, my dear Miss Strong,” urged Monsieur Thuran. “It was in no way your fault. Another would have done as you did. Who would think that because something fell into the sea from a ship that it must necessarily be a man? Nor would the outcome have been different had you given an alarm. For a while they would have doubted your story, thinking it but the nervous hallucination of a woman—had you insisted it would have been too late to have rescued him by the time the ship could have been brought to a stop, and the boats lowered and rowed back miles in search of the unknown spot where the tragedy had occurred. No, you must not censure yourself. You have done more than any other of us for poor Mr. Caldwell—you were the only one to miss him. It was you who instituted the search.”
“You shouldn’t blame yourself, my dear Miss Strong,” urged Monsieur Thuran. “It wasn’t your fault at all. Someone else would have reacted the same way. Who would assume that just because something fell into the sea from a ship, it must be a person? Even if you had raised the alarm, the outcome wouldn’t have changed. They would have doubted your story at first, thinking it was just a nervous hallucination from a woman. If you had insisted, it would have been too late to rescue him by the time the ship could have stopped, and the boats lowered and rowed back miles to where the tragedy happened. No, you shouldn’t criticize yourself. You’ve done more for poor Mr. Caldwell than any of us—you were the only one who noticed he was missing. You were the one who started the search.”
The girl could not help but feel grateful to him for his kind and encouraging words. He was with her often—almost constantly for the remainder of the voyage—and she grew to like him very much indeed. Monsieur Thuran had learned that the beautiful Miss Strong, of Baltimore, was an American heiress—a very wealthy girl in her own right, and with future prospects that quite took his breath away when he contemplated them, and since he spent most of his time in that delectable pastime it is a wonder that he breathed at all.
The girl couldn't help but feel thankful for his kind and encouraging words. He was with her almost all the time for the rest of the voyage, and she really started to like him a lot. Monsieur Thuran found out that the beautiful Miss Strong from Baltimore was an American heiress—a very wealthy girl in her own right, with future prospects that took his breath away when he thought about them. Since he spent most of his time in that delightful daydream, it’s a wonder he remembered to breathe at all.
It had been Monsieur Thuran’s intention to leave the ship at the first port they touched after the disappearance of Tarzan. Did he not have in his coat pocket the thing he had taken passage upon this very boat to obtain? There was nothing more to detain him here. He could not return to the Continent fast enough, that he might board the first express for St. Petersburg.
It was Monsieur Thuran's plan to leave the ship at the first port they reached after Tarzan disappeared. Didn't he have in his coat pocket the item he had taken this boat to get? There was nothing else keeping him here. He couldn't get back to the Continent fast enough so he could catch the first express train to St. Petersburg.
But now another idea had obtruded itself, and was rapidly crowding his original intentions into the background. That American fortune was not to be sneezed at, nor was its possessor a whit less attractive.
But now another idea had pushed itself forward, quickly pushing his original intentions to the background. That American wealth was not to be underestimated, and neither was its owner any less appealing.
“Sapristi! but she would cause a sensation in St. Petersburg.” And he would, too, with the assistance of her inheritance.
“Sapristi! but she would create quite a stir in St. Petersburg.” And he would as well, thanks to her inheritance.
After Monsieur Thuran had squandered a few million dollars, he discovered that the vocation was so entirely to his liking that he would continue on down to Cape Town, where he suddenly decided that he had pressing engagements that might detain him there for some time.
After Monsieur Thuran had wasted a few million dollars, he realized that this lifestyle suited him so well that he would head down to Cape Town, where he unexpectedly claimed that he had important commitments that might keep him there for a while.
Miss Strong had told him that she and her mother were to visit the latter’s brother there—they had not decided upon the duration of their stay, and it would probably run into months.
Miss Strong had told him that she and her mom were going to visit her mom's brother there—they hadn't figured out how long they would stay, and it would probably be for months.
She was delighted when she found that Monsieur Thuran was to be there also.
She was thrilled to find out that Monsieur Thuran would be there too.
“I hope that we shall be able to continue our acquaintance,” she said. “You must call upon mamma and me as soon as we are settled.”
“I hope we can keep getting to know each other,” she said. “You should come visit my mom and me as soon as we’re all settled in.”
Monsieur Thuran was delighted at the prospect, and lost no time in saying so. Mrs. Strong was not quite so favorably impressed by him as her daughter.
Monsieur Thuran was thrilled about the idea and wasted no time expressing it. Mrs. Strong didn't feel as positively about him as her daughter did.
“I do not know why I should distrust him,” she said to Hazel one day as they were discussing him. “He seems a perfect gentleman in every respect, but sometimes there is something about his eyes—a fleeting expression which I cannot describe, but which when I see it gives me a very uncanny feeling.”
“I don’t know why I should distrust him,” she said to Hazel one day as they were talking about him. “He seems like a perfect gentleman in every way, but sometimes there’s something about his eyes—a brief look that I can’t put into words, but when I see it, it gives me a really strange feeling.”
The girl laughed. “You are a silly dear, mamma,” she said.
The girl laughed. “You’re such a silly one, mom,” she said.
“I suppose so, but I am sorry that we have not poor Mr. Caldwell for company instead.”
“I guess so, but I’m sorry we don’t have poor Mr. Caldwell here with us instead.”
“And I, too,” replied her daughter.
“And I, too,” her daughter replied.
Monsieur Thuran became a frequent visitor at the home of Hazel Strong’s uncle in Cape Town. His attentions were very marked, but they were so punctiliously arranged to meet the girl’s every wish that she came to depend upon him more and more. Did she or her mother or a cousin require an escort—was there a little friendly service to be rendered, the genial and ubiquitous Monsieur Thuran was always available. Her uncle and his family grew to like him for his unfailing courtesy and willingness to be of service. Monsieur Thuran was becoming indispensable. At length, feeling the moment propitious, he proposed. Miss Strong was startled. She did not know what to say.
Monsieur Thuran became a regular visitor at Hazel Strong’s uncle's home in Cape Town. His attentions were very noticeable, but they were so carefully arranged to cater to the girl’s every wish that she started to rely on him more and more. Whether she, her mother, or a cousin needed an escort—if there was a small favor to be done, the friendly and ever-present Monsieur Thuran was always around. Her uncle and his family began to appreciate him for his constant courtesy and eagerness to help. Monsieur Thuran was becoming essential. Finally, sensing the right moment, he proposed. Miss Strong was taken aback. She didn’t know what to say.
“I had never thought that you cared for me in any such way,” she told him. “I have looked upon you always as a very dear friend. I shall not give you my answer now. Forget that you have asked me to be your wife. Let us go on as we have been—then I can consider you from an entirely different angle for a time. It may be that I shall discover that my feeling for you is more than friendship. I certainly have not thought for a moment that I loved you.”
“I never thought you cared for me like that,” she told him. “I’ve always seen you as a really close friend. I won’t give you my answer right now. Forget that you’ve asked me to be your wife. Let’s just keep things the way they are—then I can see you in a completely different light for a while. It’s possible that I might find out my feelings for you are deeper than friendship. Honestly, I haven’t considered for a second that I loved you.”
This arrangement was perfectly satisfactory to Monsieur Thuran. He deeply regretted that he had been hasty, but he had loved her for so long a time, and so devotedly, that he thought that every one must know it.
This setup was completely acceptable to Monsieur Thuran. He was really sorry that he had rushed things, but he had loved her for such a long time, and so passionately, that he figured everyone must be aware of it.
“From the first time I saw you, Hazel,” he said, “I have loved you. I am willing to wait, for I am certain that so great and pure a love as mine will be rewarded. All that I care to know is that you do not love another. Will you tell me?”
“From the first time I saw you, Hazel,” he said, “I have loved you. I’m willing to wait because I know that a love as great and genuine as mine will be rewarded. All I care about is knowing that you don’t love someone else. Will you tell me?”
“I have never been in love in my life,” she replied, and he was quite satisfied. On the way home that night he purchased a steam yacht, and built a million-dollar villa on the Black Sea.
“I’ve never been in love in my life,” she replied, and he was pretty happy about it. On the way home that night, he bought a steam yacht and built a million-dollar villa on the Black Sea.
The next day Hazel Strong enjoyed one of the happiest surprises of her life—she ran face to face upon Jane Porter as she was coming out of a jeweler’s shop.
The next day, Hazel Strong experienced one of the happiest surprises of her life—she unexpectedly ran into Jane Porter as Jane was leaving a jewelry store.
“Why, Jane Porter!” she exclaimed. “Where in the world did you drop from? Why, I can’t believe my own eyes.”
“Wow, Jane Porter!” she said. “Where did you come from? I can’t believe what I’m seeing.”
“Well, of all things!” cried the equally astonished Jane. “And here I have been wasting whole reams of perfectly good imagination picturing you in Baltimore—the very idea!” And she threw her arms about her friend once more, and kissed her a dozen times.
“Well, of all things!” exclaimed the equally surprised Jane. “And here I’ve been wasting so much imagination picturing you in Baltimore—the very thought!” She wrapped her arms around her friend again and kissed her a dozen times.
By the time mutual explanations had been made Hazel knew that Lord Tennington’s yacht had put in at Cape Town for at least a week’s stay, and at the end of that time was to continue on her voyage—this time up the West Coast—and so back to England. “Where,” concluded Jane, “I am to be married.”
By the time they had exchanged all their explanations, Hazel realized that Lord Tennington’s yacht was docked in Cape Town for at least a week, and after that, it would continue its journey—this time up the West Coast—and then back to England. “Where,” Jane finished, “I’m going to get married.”
“Then you are not married yet?” asked Hazel.
“Then you’re not married yet?” asked Hazel.
“Not yet,” replied Jane, and then, quite irrelevantly, “I wish England were a million miles from here.”
“Not yet,” replied Jane, and then, somewhat randomly, “I wish England was a million miles away from here.”
Visits were exchanged between the yacht and Hazel’s relatives. Dinners were arranged, and trips into the surrounding country to entertain the visitors. Monsieur Thuran was a welcome guest at every function. He gave a dinner himself to the men of the party, and managed to ingratiate himself in the good will of Lord Tennington by many little acts of hospitality.
Visits were traded between the yacht and Hazel’s family. Dinners were set up, and trips into the nearby countryside were organized to entertain the guests. Monsieur Thuran was a welcomed guest at every event. He hosted a dinner for the men in the group and found ways to win over Lord Tennington with his various gestures of hospitality.
Monsieur Thuran had heard dropped a hint of something which might result from this unexpected visit of Lord Tennington’s yacht, and he wanted to be counted in on it. Once when he was alone with the Englishman he took occasion to make it quite plain that his engagement to Miss Strong was to be announced immediately upon their return to America. “But not a word of it, my dear Tennington—not a word of it.”
Monsieur Thuran had caught wind of something that might come from Lord Tennington’s unexpected visit with his yacht, and he wanted to be part of it. Once, when he was alone with the Englishman, he made it clear that he was going to announce his engagement to Miss Strong as soon as they got back to America. “But not a word of it, my dear Tennington—not a word of it.”
“Certainly, I quite understand, my dear fellow,” Tennington had replied. “But you are to be congratulated—ripping girl, don’t you know—really.”
“Of course, I totally get it, my friend,” Tennington had replied. “But you should be congratulated—a fantastic girl, you know—truly.”
The next day it came. Mrs. Strong, Hazel, and Monsieur Thuran were Lord Tennington’s guests aboard his yacht. Mrs. Strong had been telling them how much she had enjoyed her visit at Cape Town, and that she regretted that a letter just received from her attorneys in Baltimore had necessitated her cutting her visit shorter than they had intended.
The next day it arrived. Mrs. Strong, Hazel, and Monsieur Thuran were guests of Lord Tennington on his yacht. Mrs. Strong had been sharing how much she enjoyed her trip to Cape Town and mentioned that a letter she just got from her lawyers in Baltimore had forced her to shorten her visit more than she had planned.
“When do you sail?” asked Tennington.
“When are you setting sail?” asked Tennington.
“The first of the week, I think,” she replied.
“The first of the week, I think,” she replied.
“Indeed?” exclaimed Monsieur Thuran. “I am very fortunate. I, too, have found that I must return at once, and now I shall have the honor of accompanying and serving you.”
“Really?” exclaimed Monsieur Thuran. “I’m very lucky. I’ve also realized that I need to head back right away, and now I’ll have the pleasure of accompanying and serving you.”
“That is nice of you, Monsieur Thuran,” replied Mrs. Strong. “I am sure that we shall be glad to place ourselves under your protection.” But in the bottom of her heart was the wish that they might escape him. Why, she could not have told.
"That's really nice of you, Mr. Thuran," Mrs. Strong replied. "I'm sure we'll be happy to put ourselves under your protection." But deep down, she hoped they could escape him. She couldn't quite say why.
“By Jove!” ejaculated Lord Tennington, a moment later. “Bully idea, by Jove!”
“Wow!” exclaimed Lord Tennington a moment later. “Great idea, wow!”
“Yes, Tennington, of course,” ventured Clayton; “it must be a bully idea if you had it, but what the deuce is it? Goin’ to steam to China via the south pole?”
“Yes, Tennington, of course,” Clayton responded. “It must be a great idea if you thought of it, but what on earth is it? Are you planning to go to China by way of the South Pole?”
“Oh, I say now, Clayton,” returned Tennington, “you needn’t be so rough on a fellow just because you didn’t happen to suggest this trip yourself—you’ve acted a regular bounder ever since we sailed.
“Oh, come on, Clayton,” Tennington replied, “you don’t have to be so harsh on a guy just because you didn’t come up with this trip yourself—you’ve been acting like a real jerk ever since we set sail.
“No, sir,” he continued, “it’s a bully idea, and you’ll all say so. It’s to take Mrs. Strong and Miss Strong, and Thuran, too, if he’ll come, as far as England with us on the yacht. Now, isn’t that a corker?”
“No, sir,” he went on, “it’s a great idea, and you’ll all agree. We should take Mrs. Strong and Miss Strong, and Thuran, too, if he’s up for it, to England with us on the yacht. Now, isn’t that amazing?”
“Forgive me, Tenny, old boy,” cried Clayton. “It certainly IS a corking idea—I never should have suspected you of it. You’re quite sure it’s original, are you?”
“Forgive me, Tenny, old friend,” cried Clayton. “It’s definitely a brilliant idea—I never would have guessed it was yours. You’re sure it’s original, right?”
“And we’ll sail the first of the week, or any other time that suits your convenience, Mrs. Strong,” concluded the big-hearted Englishman, as though the thing were all arranged except the sailing date.
“And we’ll set sail at the beginning of the week, or whenever works best for you, Mrs. Strong,” concluded the generous Englishman, as if everything was already planned except for the departure date.
“Mercy, Lord Tennington, you haven’t even given us an opportunity to thank you, much less decide whether we shall be able to accept your generous invitation,” said Mrs. Strong.
“Mercy, Lord Tennington, you haven’t even given us a chance to thank you, let alone figure out if we can accept your generous invitation,” said Mrs. Strong.
“Why, of course you’ll come,” responded Tennington. “We’ll make as good time as any passenger boat, and you’ll be fully as comfortable; and, anyway, we all want you, and won’t take no for an answer.”
“Of course you’ll come,” Tennington replied. “We’ll travel just as quickly as any passenger boat, and you’ll be just as comfortable. Besides, we all want you to join us, and we won’t take no for an answer.”
And so it was settled that they should sail the following Monday.
And so it was decided that they would set sail the next Monday.
Two days out the girls were sitting in Hazel’s cabin, looking at some prints she had had finished in Cape Town. They represented all the pictures she had taken since she had left America, and the girls were both engrossed in them, Jane asking many questions, and Hazel keeping up a perfect torrent of comment and explanation of the various scenes and people.
Two days later, the girls were sitting in Hazel’s cabin, looking at some prints she had gotten developed in Cape Town. They showed all the pictures she had taken since leaving America, and the girls were both absorbed in them, with Jane asking lots of questions while Hazel provided a steady stream of comments and explanations about the different scenes and people.
“And here,” she said suddenly, “here’s a man you know. Poor fellow, I have so often intended asking you about him, but I never have been able to think of it when we were together.” She was holding the little print so that Jane did not see the face of the man it portrayed.
“And here,” she said suddenly, “here’s a guy you know. Poor guy, I’ve meant to ask you about him so many times, but I could never remember to do it when we were together.” She was holding the small print in a way that Jane couldn’t see the face of the man in it.
“His name was John Caldwell,” continued Hazel. “Do you recall him? He said that he met you in America. He is an Englishman.”
“His name was John Caldwell,” Hazel continued. “Do you remember him? He said he met you in America. He’s English.”
“I do not recollect the name,” replied Jane. “Let me see the picture.”
“I don’t remember the name,” replied Jane. “Let me see the picture.”
“The poor fellow was lost overboard on our trip down the coast,” she said, as she handed the print to Jane.
“The poor guy fell overboard during our trip down the coast,” she said, handing the print to Jane.
“Lost over—Why, Hazel, Hazel—don’t tell me that he is dead—drowned at sea! Hazel! Why don’t you say that you are joking!” And before the astonished Miss Strong could catch her Jane Porter had slipped to the floor in a swoon.
“Lost over—Why, Hazel, Hazel—don’t tell me he’s dead—drowned at sea! Hazel! Why won’t you say you’re joking?” And before the shocked Miss Strong could react, Jane Porter had collapsed to the floor in a faint.
After Hazel had restored her chum to consciousness she sat looking at her for a long time before either spoke.
After Hazel brought her friend back to consciousness, she sat staring at her for a long time before either of them said anything.
“I did not know, Jane,” said Hazel, in a constrained voice, “that you knew Mr. Caldwell so intimately that his death could prove such a shock to you.”
“I didn’t know, Jane,” said Hazel, in a tight voice, “that you were close to Mr. Caldwell enough that his death would affect you so deeply.”
“John Caldwell?” questioned Miss Porter. “You do not mean to tell me that you do not know who this man was, Hazel?”
“John Caldwell?” Miss Porter asked. “You can’t be saying you don’t know who this guy was, Hazel?”
“Why, yes, Jane; I know perfectly well who he was—his name was John Caldwell; he was from London.”
“Of course, Jane; I know exactly who he was—his name was John Caldwell; he was from London.”
“Oh, Hazel, I wish I could believe it,” moaned the girl. “I wish I could believe it, but those features are burned so deep into my memory and my heart that I should recognize them anywhere in the world from among a thousand others, who might appear identical to any one but me.”
“Oh, Hazel, I wish I could believe it,” the girl lamented. “I wish I could believe it, but those features are etched so deeply in my memory and my heart that I would recognize them anywhere in the world, even among a thousand others who might look exactly the same to everyone else but me.”
“What do you mean, Jane?” cried Hazel, now thoroughly alarmed. “Who do you think it is?”
“What do you mean, Jane?” Hazel exclaimed, now completely worried. “Who do you think it is?”
“I don’t think, Hazel. I know that that is a picture of Tarzan of the Apes.”
“I don’t think so, Hazel. I know that’s a picture of Tarzan of the Apes.”
“Jane!”
"Hey, Jane!"
“I cannot be mistaken. Oh, Hazel, are you sure that he is dead? Can there be no mistake?”
“I can't be wrong. Oh, Hazel, are you sure he's dead? Could there really be any mistake?”
“I am afraid not, dear,” answered Hazel sadly. “I wish I could think that you are mistaken, but now a hundred and one little pieces of corroborative evidence occur to me that meant nothing to me while I thought that he was John Caldwell, of London. He said that he had been born in Africa, and educated in France.”
“I’m afraid not, dear,” Hazel replied sadly. “I wish I could believe you’re wrong, but now a hundred and one little pieces of confirming evidence come to mind that didn’t mean anything to me when I thought he was John Caldwell from London. He said he was born in Africa and educated in France.”
“Yes, that would be true,” murmured Jane Porter dully.
“Yes, that’s true,” murmured Jane Porter dully.
“The first officer, who searched his luggage, found nothing to identify John Caldwell, of London. Practically all his belongings had been made, or purchased, in Paris. Everything that bore an initial was marked either with a ‘T’ alone, or with ‘J. C. T.’ We thought that he was traveling incognito under his first two names—the J. C. standing for John Caldwell.”
“The first officer, who checked his luggage, found nothing to identify John Caldwell from London. Almost all of his stuff was made or bought in Paris. Anything that had initials on it was marked either with a ‘T’ alone or with ‘J. C. T.’ We thought he was traveling incognito using his first two names—the J. C. stood for John Caldwell.”
“Tarzan of the Apes took the name Jean C. Tarzan,” said Jane, in the same lifeless monotone. “And he is dead! Oh! Hazel, it is horrible! He died all alone in this terrible ocean! It is unbelievable that that brave heart should have ceased to beat—that those mighty muscles are quiet and cold forever! That he who was the personification of life and health and manly strength should be the prey of slimy, crawling things, that—” But she could go no further, and with a little moan she buried her head in her arms, and sank sobbing to the floor.
“Tarzan of the Apes took the name Jean C. Tarzan,” Jane said in the same flat tone. “And he’s dead! Oh! Hazel, it’s so terrible! He died all alone in this awful ocean! It’s hard to believe that brave heart has stopped beating—that those strong muscles are silent and cold forever! That he, who represented life, health, and manly strength, should be at the mercy of slimy, crawling things, that—” But she couldn’t continue, and with a small moan, she buried her head in her arms and sank to the floor, sobbing.
For days Miss Porter was ill, and would see no one except Hazel and the faithful Esmeralda. When at last she came on deck all were struck by the sad change that had taken place in her. She was no longer the alert, vivacious American beauty who had charmed and delighted all who came in contact with her. Instead she was a very quiet and sad little girl—with an expression of hopeless wistfulness that none but Hazel Strong could interpret.
For days, Miss Porter was sick and only wanted to see Hazel and the loyal Esmeralda. When she finally came on deck, everyone noticed the heartbreaking change in her. She was no longer the lively, vibrant American beauty who had captivated everyone around her. Instead, she appeared to be a quiet and sorrowful girl, with an expression of hopeless longing that only Hazel Strong could understand.
The entire party strove their utmost to cheer and amuse her, but all to no avail. Occasionally the jolly Lord Tennington would wring a wan smile from her, but for the most part she sat with wide eyes looking out across the sea.
The whole party did their best to make her happy and entertain her, but it was pointless. Sometimes the cheerful Lord Tennington would coax a faint smile from her, but most of the time she just sat there with wide eyes, staring out at the sea.
With Jane Porter’s illness one misfortune after another seemed to attack the yacht. First an engine broke down, and they drifted for two days while temporary repairs were being made. Then a squall struck them unaware, that carried overboard nearly everything above deck that was portable. Later two of the seamen fell to fighting in the forecastle, with the result that one of them was badly wounded with a knife, and the other had to be put in irons. Then, to cap the climax, the mate fell overboard at night, and was drowned before help could reach him. The yacht cruised about the spot for ten hours, but no sign of the man was seen after he disappeared from the deck into the sea.
With Jane Porter's illness, one misfortune after another seemed to hit the yacht. First, an engine broke down, and they drifted for two days while temporary repairs were being made. Then a squall unexpectedly struck, throwing nearly everything portable overboard. Later, two of the crew got into a fistfight in the forecastle, resulting in one of them being badly wounded with a knife, while the other was put in handcuffs. Finally, to top it all off, the mate fell overboard at night and drowned before help could reach him. The yacht circled the area for ten hours, but no trace of the man was found after he vanished from the deck into the sea.
Every member of the crew and guests was gloomy and depressed after these series of misfortunes. All were apprehensive of worse to come, and this was especially true of the seamen who recalled all sorts of terrible omens and warnings that had occurred during the early part of the voyage, and which they could now clearly translate into the precursors of some grim and terrible tragedy to come.
Every crew member and guest felt down and depressed after these series of misfortunes. Everyone was anxious that things would get worse, and this was especially true for the sailors who remembered all kinds of terrible signs and warnings that had happened earlier in the trip, which they could now clearly see as indications of some awful tragedy ahead.
Nor did the croakers have long to wait. The second night after the drowning of the mate the little yacht was suddenly wracked from stem to stern. About one o’clock in the morning there was a terrific impact that threw the slumbering guests and crew from berth and bunk. A mighty shudder ran through the frail craft; she lay far over to starboard; the engines stopped. For a moment she hung there with her decks at an angle of forty-five degrees—then, with a sullen, rending sound, she slipped back into the sea and righted.
Nor did the croakers have to wait long. The second night after the mate drowned, the little yacht was suddenly wrecked from front to back. Around one o’clock in the morning, there was a massive impact that jolted the sleeping guests and crew out of their beds. A powerful shudder ran through the fragile craft; it leaned heavily to the right; the engines stopped. For a moment, it stayed there at a forty-five-degree angle—then, with a deep, tearing sound, it slipped back into the sea and straightened up.
Instantly the men rushed upon deck, followed closely by the women. Though the night was cloudy, there was little wind or sea, nor was it so dark but that just off the port bow a black mass could be discerned floating low in the water.
Instantly, the men rushed onto the deck, closely followed by the women. Although the night was cloudy, there was little wind or waves, and it wasn't so dark that a black shape could be seen floating low in the water just off the port bow.
“A derelict,” was the terse explanation of the officer of the watch.
"A derelict," was the brief explanation from the officer on duty.
Presently the engineer hurried on deck in search of the captain.
Currently, the engineer rushed onto the deck looking for the captain.
“That patch we put on the cylinder head’s blown out, sir,” he reported, “and she’s makin’ water fast for’ard on the port bow.”
“Sir, that patch we put on the cylinder head is blown out,” he reported, “and it’s taking on water quickly in the front on the port side.”
An instant later a seaman rushed up from below.
An instant later, a sailor hurried up from below.
“My Gawd!” he cried. “Her whole bleedin’ bottom’s ripped out. She can’t float twenty minutes.”
“My God!” he exclaimed. “Her whole damn bottom’s ripped out. She can’t float for twenty minutes.”
“Shut up!” roared Tennington. “Ladies, go below and get some of your things together. It may not be so bad as that, but we may have to take to the boats. It will be safer to be prepared. Go at once, please. And, Captain Jerrold, send some competent man below, please, to ascertain the exact extent of the damage. In the meantime I might suggest that you have the boats provisioned.”
“Shut up!” yelled Tennington. “Ladies, go below and gather some of your things. It might not be as bad as we think, but we may need to use the lifeboats. It’s better to be prepared. Go right away, please. And, Captain Jerrold, could you send someone capable down to find out exactly how much damage there is? In the meantime, I suggest you get the boats stocked with supplies.”
The calm, low voice of the owner did much to reassure the entire party, and a moment later all were occupied with the duties he had suggested. By the time the ladies had returned to the deck the rapid provisioning of the boats had been about completed, and a moment later the officer who had gone below had returned to report. But his opinion was scarcely needed to assure the huddled group of men and women that the end of the Lady Alice was at hand.
The calm, quiet voice of the owner really helped to reassure everyone, and soon after, they were all getting busy with the tasks he had suggested. By the time the women came back to the deck, the fast stocking of the boats was nearly done, and a moment later, the officer who had gone below came back to give his report. But his opinion wasn't really necessary to convince the gathered group of men and women that the end of the Lady Alice was near.
“Well, sir?” said the captain, as his officer hesitated.
“Well, sir?” said the captain, as his officer paused.
“I dislike to frighten the ladies, sir,” he said, “but she can’t float a dozen minutes, in my opinion. There’s a hole in her you could drive a bally cow through, sir.”
“I don’t want to scare the ladies, sir,” he said, “but I don’t think she can stay afloat for more than ten minutes. There’s a hole in her big enough to drive a bloody cow through, sir.”
For five minutes the Lady Alice had been settling rapidly by the bow. Already her stern loomed high in the air, and foothold on the deck was of the most precarious nature. She carried four boats, and these were all filled and lowered away in safety. As they pulled rapidly from the stricken little vessel Jane Porter turned to have one last look at her. Just then there came a loud crash and an ominous rumbling and pounding from the heart of the ship—her machinery had broken loose, and was dashing its way toward the bow, tearing out partitions and bulkheads as it went—the stern rose rapidly high above them; for a moment she seemed to pause there—a vertical shaft protruding from the bosom of the ocean, and then swiftly she dove headforemost beneath the waves.
For five minutes, the Lady Alice had been sinking quickly at the bow. Her stern was already towering high in the air, making it hard to stay on deck. She had four boats, and all of them were filled and safely lowered away. As they hurried away from the damaged little ship, Jane Porter turned to take one last look at her. Just then, there was a loud crash followed by a troubling rumble and pounding from deep within the ship—her machinery had come loose and was crashing toward the bow, breaking through partitions and bulkheads as it moved. The stern rose quickly higher above them; for a moment, it looked like she was paused there—like a vertical shaft rising from the ocean, and then she suddenly plunged headfirst beneath the waves.
In one of the boats the brave Lord Tennington wiped a tear from his eye—he had not seen a fortune in money go down forever into the sea, but a dear, beautiful friend whom he had loved.
In one of the boats, the brave Lord Tennington wiped a tear from his eye—he hadn’t just watched a fortune vanish forever into the sea, but also a dear, beautiful friend whom he had loved.
At last the long night broke, and a tropical sun smote down upon the rolling water. Jane Porter had dropped into a fitful slumber—the fierce light of the sun upon her upturned face awoke her. She looked about her. In the boat with her were three sailors, Clayton, and Monsieur Thuran. Then she looked for the other boats, but as far as the eye could reach there was nothing to break the fearful monotony of that waste of waters—they were alone in a small boat upon the broad Atlantic.
At last, the long night ended, and a tropical sun blazed down on the rolling water. Jane Porter had fallen into a restless sleep—the intense sunlight on her upturned face woke her up. She looked around. In the boat with her were three sailors, Clayton, and Monsieur Thuran. Then she searched for the other boats, but as far as she could see, there was nothing to interrupt the terrifying monotony of that endless water—they were alone in a small boat on the vast Atlantic.
Chapter XIV
Back to the Primitive
As Tarzan struck the water, his first impulse was to swim clear of the ship and possible danger from her propellers. He knew whom to thank for his present predicament, and as he lay in the sea, just supporting himself by a gentle movement of his hands, his chief emotion was one of chagrin that he had been so easily bested by Rokoff.
As Tarzan hit the water, his first instinct was to swim away from the ship and the potential risk from its propellers. He knew exactly who was responsible for his current situation, and as he floated in the sea, just keeping himself up with a light movement of his hands, his main feeling was disappointment that he had been so easily outsmarted by Rokoff.
He lay thus for some time, watching the receding and rapidly diminishing lights of the steamer without it ever once occurring to him to call for help. He never had called for help in his life, and so it is not strange that he did not think of it now. Always had he depended upon his own prowess and resourcefulness, nor had there ever been since the days of Kala any to answer an appeal for succor. When it did occur to him it was too late.
He lay there for a while, watching the fading lights of the steamer without ever considering calling for help. He had never called for help in his life, so it’s not surprising that it didn’t cross his mind now. He had always relied on his own skills and ingenuity, and since the days of Kala, there had never been anyone to respond to a call for aid. By the time it did occur to him, it was too late.
There was, thought Tarzan, a possible one chance in a hundred thousand that he might be picked up, and an even smaller chance that he would reach land, so he determined that to combine what slight chances there were, he would swim slowly in the direction of the coast—the ship might have been closer in than he had known.
There was, thought Tarzan, a slim chance of one in a hundred thousand that he might be rescued, and an even smaller chance that he would actually make it to land. So, he decided that to make the most of the little chance he had, he would swim slowly towards the coast—the ship might be closer than he realized.
His strokes were long and easy—it would be many hours before those giant muscles would commence to feel fatigue. As he swam, guided toward the east by the stars, he noticed that he felt the weight of his shoes, and so he removed them. His trousers went next, and he would have removed his coat at the same time but for the precious papers in its pocket. To assure himself that he still had them he slipped his hand in to feel, but to his consternation they were gone.
His strokes were long and effortless—it would be hours before those massive muscles started to feel tired. As he swam, directed east by the stars, he realized he could feel the weight of his shoes, so he took them off. Next, he removed his pants, and he would have taken off his coat too, but he was worried about the important papers in its pocket. To make sure he still had them, he reached in to check, but to his dismay, they were gone.
Now he knew that something more than revenge had prompted Rokoff to pitch him overboard—the Russian had managed to obtain possession of the papers Tarzan had wrested from him at Bou Saada. The ape-man swore softly, and let his coat and shirt sink into the Atlantic. Before many hours he had divested himself of his remaining garments, and was swimming easily and unencumbered toward the east.
Now he realized that something beyond revenge had driven Rokoff to throw him overboard—the Russian had gotten hold of the papers Tarzan had taken from him at Bou Saada. The ape-man swore quietly and let his coat and shirt sink into the Atlantic. In a few hours, he had stripped off the rest of his clothes and was swimming easily and freely toward the east.
The first faint evidence of dawn was paling the stars ahead of him when the dim outlines of a low-lying black mass loomed up directly in his track. A few strong strokes brought him to its side—it was the bottom of a wave-washed derelict. Tarzan clambered upon it—he would rest there until daylight at least. He had no intention to remain there inactive—a prey to hunger and thirst. If he must die he preferred dying in action while making some semblance of an attempt to save himself.
The first faint signs of dawn were fading the stars in front of him when the vague shapes of a low, dark mass appeared directly in his path. A few strong strokes brought him to its side—it was the bottom of a wave-washed shipwreck. Tarzan climbed onto it—he would rest there at least until daylight. He had no intention of staying there doing nothing, becoming a victim of hunger and thirst. If he had to die, he would rather do so in action, trying to save himself.
The sea was quiet, so that the wreck had only a gently undulating motion, that was nothing to the swimmer who had had no sleep for twenty hours. Tarzan of the Apes curled up upon the slimy timbers, and was soon asleep.
The sea was calm, so the wreck only had a slight rocking motion, which didn't bother the swimmer who hadn't slept for twenty hours. Tarzan of the Apes curled up on the wet timbers and quickly fell asleep.
The heat of the sun awoke him early in the forenoon. His first conscious sensation was of thirst, which grew almost to the proportions of suffering with full returning consciousness; but a moment later it was forgotten in the joy of two almost simultaneous discoveries. The first was a mass of wreckage floating beside the derelict in the midst of which, bottom up, rose and fell an overturned lifeboat; the other was the faint, dim line of a far-distant shore showing on the horizon in the east.
The sun's heat woke him up early in the morning. His first real feeling was thirst, which quickly became quite uncomfortable as he fully regained his awareness; but a moment later, he forgot it in the excitement of two almost simultaneous discoveries. The first was a pile of wreckage floating next to the abandoned ship, including an overturned lifeboat that was rising and falling in the water; the second was the faint, blurry outline of a distant shore showing on the horizon to the east.
Tarzan dove into the water, and swam around the wreck to the lifeboat. The cool ocean refreshed him almost as much as would a draft of water, so that it was with renewed vigor that he brought the smaller boat alongside the derelict, and, after many herculean efforts, succeeded in dragging it onto the slimy ship’s bottom. There he righted and examined it—the boat was quite sound, and a moment later floated upright alongside the wreck. Then Tarzan selected several pieces of wreckage that might answer him as paddles, and presently was making good headway toward the far-off shore.
Tarzan dove into the water and swam around the wreck to the lifeboat. The cool ocean refreshed him almost as much as a drink of water would, so he felt revitalized as he brought the smaller boat alongside the derelict. After a lot of hard work, he managed to drag it onto the slippery bottom of the ship. There, he righted it and checked it over—the boat was in good shape, and a moment later, it was floating upright next to the wreck. Then Tarzan picked up several pieces of wreckage that could serve as paddles, and soon he was making good progress toward the distant shore.
It was late in the afternoon by the time he came close enough to distinguish objects on land, or to make out the contour of the shore line. Before him lay what appeared to be the entrance to a little, landlocked harbor. The wooded point to the north was strangely familiar. Could it be possible that fate had thrown him up at the very threshold of his own beloved jungle! But as the bow of his boat entered the mouth of the harbor the last shred of doubt was cleared away, for there before him upon the farther shore, under the shadows of his primeval forest, stood his own cabin—built before his birth by the hand of his long-dead father, John Clayton, Lord Greystoke.
It was late afternoon by the time he got close enough to see things on land or make out the outline of the shoreline. In front of him was what looked like the entrance to a small, secluded harbor. The wooded point to the north felt strangely familiar. Could it be that fate had brought him right to the edge of his beloved jungle! But as the front of his boat entered the harbor, any doubts vanished, for there on the opposite shore, in the shadows of his ancient forest, stood his cabin—built long before he was born by the hands of his late father, John Clayton, Lord Greystoke.
With long sweeps of his giant muscles Tarzan sent the little craft speeding toward the beach. Its prow had scarcely touched when the ape-man leaped to shore—his heart beat fast in joy and exultation as each long-familiar object came beneath his roving eyes—the cabin, the beach, the little brook, the dense jungle, the black, impenetrable forest. The myriad birds in their brilliant plumage—the gorgeous tropical blooms upon the festooned creepers falling in great loops from the giant trees.
With powerful strokes of his huge muscles, Tarzan propelled the small boat swiftly toward the shore. It barely touched the sand when the ape-man jumped ashore—his heart raced with joy and excitement as he spotted each familiar sight— the cabin, the beach, the small creek, the thick jungle, the dark, impenetrable forest. Countless birds in their vibrant colors and the stunning tropical flowers hanging in great loops from the massive trees.
Tarzan of the Apes had come into his own again, and that all the world might know it he threw back his young head, and gave voice to the fierce, wild challenge of his tribe. For a moment silence reigned upon the jungle, and then, low and weird, came an answering challenge—it was the deep roar of Numa, the lion; and from a great distance, faintly, the fearsome answering bellow of a bull ape.
Tarzan of the Apes had regained his place, and to make sure everyone knew, he threw back his young head and let out the fierce, wild call of his tribe. For a brief moment, there was silence in the jungle, and then, low and eerie, came an answering call—it was the deep roar of Numa, the lion; and from far away, faintly, the terrifying roar of a bull ape.
Tarzan went to the brook first, and slaked his thirst. Then he approached his cabin. The door was still closed and latched as he and D’Arnot had left it. He raised the latch and entered. Nothing had been disturbed; there were the table, the bed, and the little crib built by his father—the shelves and cupboards just as they had stood for over twenty-three years—just as he had left them nearly two years before.
Tarzan went to the stream first and quenched his thirst. Then he walked over to his cabin. The door was still closed and latched, just as he and D’Arnot had left it. He lifted the latch and stepped inside. Nothing had been changed; there was the table, the bed, and the small crib built by his father—the shelves and cupboards exactly as they had been for over twenty-three years—just as he had left them nearly two years ago.
His eyes satisfied, Tarzan’s stomach began to call aloud for attention—the pangs of hunger suggested a search for food. There was nothing in the cabin, nor had he any weapons; but upon a wall hung one of his old grass ropes. It had been many times broken and spliced, so that he had discarded it for a better one long before. Tarzan wished that he had a knife. Well, unless he was mistaken he should have that and a spear and bows and arrows before another sun had set—the rope would take care of that, and in the meantime it must be made to procure food for him. He coiled it carefully, and, throwing it about his shoulder, went out, closing the door behind him.
His eyes satisfied, Tarzan’s stomach started to demand attention—the pangs of hunger urged him to find food. There was nothing in the cabin, and he didn't have any weapons; but hanging on a wall was one of his old grass ropes. It had been broken and repaired so many times that he had replaced it with a better one long ago. Tarzan wished he had a knife. Well, unless he was mistaken, he should have that, along with a spear, bows, and arrows before another sun set—the rope would help him get those, and for now, it needed to be used to find food. He coiled it carefully and threw it over his shoulder, then stepped outside, closing the door behind him.
Close to the cabin the jungle commenced, and into it Tarzan of the Apes plunged, wary and noiseless—once more a savage beast hunting its food. For a time he kept to the ground, but finally, discovering no spoor indicative of nearby meat, he took to the trees. With the first dizzy swing from tree to tree all the old joy of living swept over him. Vain regrets and dull heartache were forgotten. Now was he living. Now, indeed, was the true happiness of perfect freedom his. Who would go back to the stifling, wicked cities of civilized man when the mighty reaches of the great jungle offered peace and liberty? Not he.
Close to the cabin, the jungle began, and Tarzan of the Apes stepped into it, cautious and silent—once again a wild creature hunting for food. For a while, he stayed on the ground, but eventually, after not finding any signs of nearby animals, he climbed into the trees. With the first exhilarating swing from tree to tree, all the old joy of living returned to him. All his regrets and heartache faded away. Now he was truly alive. Now, he experienced the genuine happiness of complete freedom. Who would want to return to the suffocating, corrupt cities of civilized people when the vast expanse of the great jungle promised peace and freedom? Not him.
While it was yet light Tarzan came to a drinking place by the side of a jungle river. There was a ford there, and for countless ages the beasts of the forest had come down to drink at this spot. Here of a night might always be found either Sabor or Numa crouching in the dense foliage of the surrounding jungle awaiting an antelope or a water buck for their meal. Here came Horta, the boar, to water, and here came Tarzan of the Apes to make a kill, for he was very empty.
While it was still light out, Tarzan arrived at a watering spot by a jungle river. There was a shallow crossing there, and for countless years, the animals of the forest had come to drink at this place. At night, you could always find either Sabor or Numa hiding in the thick foliage of the surrounding jungle, waiting for an antelope or a waterbuck for their meal. Horta, the boar, came to drink here, and Tarzan of the Apes came to hunt, because he was very hungry.
On a low branch he squatted above the trail. For an hour he waited. It was growing dark. A little to one side of the ford in the densest thicket he heard the faint sound of padded feet, and the brushing of a huge body against tall grasses and tangled creepers. None other than Tarzan might have heard it, but the ape-man heard and translated—it was Numa, the lion, on the same errand as himself. Tarzan smiled.
On a low branch, he crouched above the trail. He waited for an hour. It was getting dark. A little to one side of the crossing, in the thickest part of the underbrush, he heard the faint sound of soft footsteps and the rustling of a large body moving through tall grasses and tangled vines. Only Tarzan could have heard it, but the ape-man did and understood—it was Numa, the lion, on the same mission as him. Tarzan smiled.
Presently he heard an animal approaching warily along the trail toward the drinking place. A moment more and it came in view—it was Horta, the boar. Here was delicious meat—and Tarzan’s mouth watered. The grasses where Numa lay were very still now—ominously still. Horta passed beneath Tarzan—a few more steps and he would be within the radius of Numa’s spring. Tarzan could imagine how old Numa’s eyes were shining—how he was already sucking in his breath for the awful roar which would freeze his prey for the brief instant between the moment of the spring and the sinking of terrible fangs into splintering bones.
Right now, he heard an animal cautiously approaching along the trail toward the watering hole. In a moment, it came into view—it was Horta, the boar. Here was some tasty meat—and Tarzan's mouth watered. The grass where Numa lay was incredibly still now—ominously still. Horta passed beneath Tarzan—a few more steps and he would be within Numa's striking distance. Tarzan could picture how old Numa's eyes were gleaming—how he was already taking a deep breath for the terrifying roar that would freeze his prey for that split second between the leap and the sinking of his deadly fangs into shattering bones.
But as Numa gathered himself, a slender rope flew through the air from the low branches of a near-by tree. A noose settled about Horta’s neck. There was a frightened grunt, a squeal, and then Numa saw his quarry dragged backward up the trail, and, as he sprang, Horta, the boar, soared upward beyond his clutches into the tree above, and a mocking face looked down and laughed into his own.
But as Numa got ready, a thin rope flew through the air from the low branches of a nearby tree. A noose snapped around Horta's neck. There was a scared grunt, a squeal, and then Numa saw his target being pulled backward up the trail. As he jumped, Horta, the boar, flew up out of his reach into the tree above, and a mocking face looked down and laughed at him.
Then indeed did Numa roar. Angry, threatening, hungry, he paced back and forth beneath the taunting ape-man. Now he stopped, and, rising on his hind legs against the stem of the tree that held his enemy, sharpened his huge claws upon the bark, tearing out great pieces that laid bare the white wood beneath.
Then Numa really roared. Angry, threatening, and hungry, he paced back and forth under the mocking ape-man. Now he stopped and, rising on his hind legs against the trunk of the tree that held his enemy, sharpened his massive claws on the bark, ripping out large chunks that exposed the white wood underneath.
And in the meantime Tarzan had dragged the struggling Horta to the limb beside him. Sinewy fingers completed the work the choking noose had commenced. The ape-man had no knife, but nature had equipped him with the means of tearing his food from the quivering flank of his prey, and gleaming teeth sank into the succulent flesh while the raging lion looked on from below as another enjoyed the dinner that he had thought already his.
And in the meantime, Tarzan had pulled the struggling Horta to the branch next to him. His strong fingers finished the job that the choking noose had started. The ape-man didn’t have a knife, but nature had given him the tools to rip his meal from the quivering side of his prey, and his sharp teeth sunk into the tender flesh while the furious lion watched from below, as another enjoyed the dinner it thought was already its own.
It was quite dark by the time Tarzan had gorged himself. Ah, but it had been delicious! Never had he quite accustomed himself to the ruined flesh that civilized men had served him, and in the bottom of his savage heart there had constantly been the craving for the warm meat of the fresh kill, and the rich, red blood.
It was pretty dark by the time Tarzan finished eating. But it had been so good! He had never really gotten used to the spoiled meat that modern people gave him, and deep down in his wild heart, he always longed for the warm meat of a fresh kill and the rich, red blood.
He wiped his bloody hands upon a bunch of leaves, slung the remains of his kill across his shoulder, and swung off through the middle terrace of the forest toward his cabin, and at the same instant Jane Porter and William Cecil Clayton arose from a sumptuous dinner upon the Lady Alice, thousands of miles to the east, in the Indian Ocean.
He wiped his bloody hands on a handful of leaves, threw the remains of his kill over his shoulder, and headed through the main path of the forest toward his cabin. At that same moment, Jane Porter and William Cecil Clayton were getting up from a lavish dinner on the Lady Alice, thousands of miles away in the Indian Ocean.
Beneath Tarzan walked Numa, the lion, and when the ape-man deigned to glance downward he caught occasional glimpses of the baleful green eyes following through the darkness. Numa did not roar now—instead, he moved stealthily, like the shadow of a great cat; but yet he took no step that did not reach the sensitive ears of the ape-man.
Beneath Tarzan, Numa the lion walked, and whenever the ape-man looked down, he caught brief glimpses of the glowing green eyes watching him in the darkness. Numa didn't roar now; instead, he moved quietly, like the shadow of a big cat. Still, he didn’t take a step that didn’t reach the keen ears of the ape-man.
Tarzan wondered if he would stalk him to his cabin door. He hoped not, for that would mean a night’s sleep curled in the crotch of a tree, and he much preferred the bed of grasses within his own abode. But he knew just the tree and the most comfortable crotch, if necessity demanded that he sleep out. A hundred times in the past some great jungle cat had followed him home, and compelled him to seek shelter in this same tree, until another mood or the rising sun had sent his enemy away.
Tarzan wondered if he would follow him to his cabin door. He hoped not, because that would mean spending the night curled up in a tree, and he much preferred the bed of grasses in his own home. But he knew just the tree and the most comfortable spot, if he had to sleep outside. A hundred times before, some big jungle cat had trailed him home and forced him to take refuge in that same tree, until another mood or the rising sun chased his foe away.
But presently Numa gave up the chase and, with a series of blood-curdling moans and roars, turned angrily back in search of another and an easier dinner. So Tarzan came to his cabin unattended, and a few moments later was curled up in the mildewed remnants of what had once been a bed of grasses. Thus easily did Monsieur Jean C. Tarzan slough the thin skin of his artificial civilization, and sink happy and contented into the deep sleep of the wild beast that has fed to repletion. Yet a woman’s “yes” would have bound him to that other life forever, and made the thought of this savage existence repulsive.
But soon Numa gave up the pursuit and, with a series of terrifying moans and roars, angrily turned back to look for another, easier meal. So Tarzan arrived at his cabin alone, and a few moments later, he was curled up in the damp remnants of what had once been a bed of grasses. Just like that, Monsieur Jean C. Tarzan shed the thin layer of his artificial civilization and sank happily and contentedly into the deep sleep of a wild beast that has eaten its fill. Yet a woman’s “yes” would have tied him to that other life forever, making the thought of this savage existence repulsive.
Tarzan slept late into the following forenoon, for he had been very tired from the labors and exertion of the long night and day upon the ocean, and the jungle jaunt that had brought into play muscles that he had scarce used for nearly two years. When he awoke he ran to the brook first to drink. Then he took a plunge into the sea, swimming about for a quarter of an hour. Afterward he returned to his cabin, and breakfasted off the flesh of Horta. This done, he buried the balance of the carcass in the soft earth outside the cabin, for his evening meal.
Tarzan slept late into the next morning because he was really tired from the long day and night on the ocean, plus the trek through the jungle that used muscles he hadn't used in almost two years. When he woke up, he ran to the brook to drink first. Then he jumped into the sea, swimming around for about fifteen minutes. After that, he went back to his cabin and had breakfast with Horta's meat. Once he finished, he buried the rest of the carcass in the soft ground outside the cabin for his dinner later.
Once more he took his rope and vanished into the jungle. This time he hunted nobler quarry—man; although had you asked him his own opinion he could have named a dozen other denizens of the jungle which he considered far the superiors in nobility of the men he hunted. Today Tarzan was in quest of weapons. He wondered if the women and children had remained in Mbonga’s village after the punitive expedition from the French cruiser had massacred all the warriors in revenge for D’Arnot’s supposed death. He hoped that he should find warriors there, for he knew not how long a quest he should have to make were the village deserted.
Once again, he grabbed his rope and disappeared into the jungle. This time he was hunting a more noble prey—humans; although if you asked him, he could name a dozen other jungle creatures he considered far more noble than the men he was tracking. Today, Tarzan was looking for weapons. He wondered if the women and children had stayed in Mbonga’s village after the French cruiser retaliated, killing all the warriors in revenge for D’Arnot’s supposed death. He hoped to find warriors there, as he didn’t know how long his search would take if the village was deserted.
The ape-man traveled swiftly through the forest, and about noon came to the site of the village, but to his disappointment found that the jungle had overgrown the plantain fields and that the thatched huts had fallen in decay. There was no sign of man. He clambered about among the ruins for half an hour, hoping that he might discover some forgotten weapon, but his search was without fruit, and so he took up his quest once more, following up the stream, which flowed from a southeasterly direction. He knew that near fresh water he would be most likely to find another settlement.
The ape-man moved quickly through the forest and arrived at the village site around noon, but to his disappointment, he found that the jungle had overtaken the plantain fields and the thatched huts had fallen into disrepair. There was no trace of people. He explored the ruins for half an hour, hoping to find a lost weapon, but his search was fruitless, so he continued his quest, following the stream that flowed from the southeast. He knew he was most likely to find another settlement near fresh water.
As he traveled he hunted as he had hunted with his ape people in the past, as Kala had taught him to hunt, turning over rotted logs to find some toothsome vermin, running high into the trees to rob a bird’s nest, or pouncing upon a tiny rodent with the quickness of a cat. There were other things that he ate, too, but the less detailed the account of an ape’s diet, the better—and Tarzan was again an ape, the same fierce, brutal anthropoid that Kala had taught him to be, and that he had been for the first twenty years of his life.
As he traveled, he hunted like he had with his ape family in the past, just like Kala had taught him. He would flip over decayed logs to find tasty little creatures, climb high into the trees to raid birds' nests, or leap onto tiny rodents with the speed of a cat. He ate other things too, but the fewer details about an ape's diet, the better—and Tarzan was once again an ape, the same fierce, wild creature that Kala had raised him to be, just like he had been for the first twenty years of his life.
Occasionally he smiled as he recalled some friend who might even at the moment be sitting placid and immaculate within the precincts of his select Parisian club—just as Tarzan had sat but a few months before; and then he would stop, as though turned suddenly to stone as the gentle breeze carried to his trained nostrils the scent of some new prey or a formidable enemy.
Sometimes he smiled as he remembered a friend who might even now be sitting calmly and impeccably in his exclusive Parisian club—just like Tarzan had a few months ago; then he would freeze, as if suddenly turned to stone, as the gentle breeze brought to his trained nose the scent of fresh prey or a dangerous foe.
That night he slept far inland from his cabin, securely wedged into the crotch of a giant tree, swaying a hundred feet above the ground. He had eaten heartily again—this time from the flesh of Bara, the deer, who had fallen prey to his quick noose.
That night he slept deep in the woods, snugly nestled in the gap of a massive tree, swaying a hundred feet in the air. He had eaten well again—this time from the meat of Bara, the deer, who had been caught by his swift trap.
Early the next morning he resumed his journey, always following the course of the stream. For three days he continued his quest, until he had come to a part of the jungle in which he never before had been. Occasionally upon the higher ground the forest was much thinner, and in the far distance through the trees he could see ranges of mighty mountains, with wide plains in the foreground. Here, in the open spaces, were new game—countless antelope and vast herds of zebra. Tarzan was entranced—he would make a long visit to this new world.
Early the next morning, he continued his journey, always following the stream. He kept searching for three days until he reached a part of the jungle he had never seen before. Occasionally, on the higher ground, the forest was much thinner, and in the distance, he could see towering mountains through the trees, with vast plains in front. In these open areas, he discovered new wildlife—countless antelope and large herds of zebra. Tarzan was captivated—he planned to stay in this new world for a long time.
On the morning of the fourth day his nostrils were suddenly surprised by a faint new scent. It was the scent of man, but yet a long way off. The ape-man thrilled with pleasure. Every sense was on the alert as with crafty stealth he moved quickly through the trees, up-wind, in the direction of his prey. Presently he came upon it—a lone warrior treading softly through the jungle.
On the morning of the fourth day, he suddenly caught a faint new scent in the air. It was the scent of a human, but still far away. The ape-man felt a rush of excitement. Every sense was heightened as he stealthily moved quickly through the trees, upwind, towards his target. Soon, he spotted it—a lone warrior quietly making his way through the jungle.
Tarzan followed close above his quarry, waiting for a clearer space in which to hurl his rope. As he stalked the unconscious man, new thoughts presented themselves to the ape-man—thoughts born of the refining influences of civilization, and of its cruelties. It came to him that seldom if ever did civilized man kill a fellow being without some pretext, however slight. It was true that Tarzan wished this man’s weapons and ornaments, but was it necessary to take his life to obtain them?
Tarzan stayed just above his target, waiting for a clear spot to throw his rope. As he tracked the unconscious man, new ideas came to him—ideas shaped by the influences of civilization and its harsh realities. He realized that rarely, if ever, does a civilized person kill another without some excuse, no matter how small. It was true that Tarzan wanted this man’s weapons and ornaments, but was it really necessary to take his life to get them?
The longer he thought about it, the more repugnant became the thought of taking human life needlessly; and thus it happened that while he was trying to decide just what to do, they had come to a little clearing, at the far side of which lay a palisaded village of beehive huts.
The more he thought about it, the more disgusting the idea of taking a human life for no reason became; and so it was that while he was trying to figure out what to do, they had arrived at a small clearing, at the other side of which was a walled village filled with beehive-shaped huts.
As the warrior emerged from the forest, Tarzan caught a fleeting glimpse of a tawny hide worming its way through the matted jungle grasses in his wake—it was Numa, the lion. He, too, was stalking the black man. With the instant that Tarzan realized the native’s danger his attitude toward his erstwhile prey altered completely—now he was a fellow man threatened by a common enemy.
As the warrior stepped out of the forest, Tarzan caught a quick glimpse of a tawny hide slinking through the tangled jungle grasses behind him—it was Numa, the lion. He was also hunting the black man. The moment Tarzan understood the native's danger, his feelings about his former prey changed entirely—now they were both men facing the same threat.
Numa was about to charge—there was little time in which to compare various methods or weigh the probable results of any. And then a number of things happened, almost simultaneously—the lion sprang from his ambush toward the retreating black—Tarzan cried out in warning—and the black turned just in time to see Numa halted in mid-flight by a slender strand of grass rope, the noosed end of which had fallen cleanly about his neck.
Numa was about to charge—there was hardly any time to compare different methods or think about the possible outcomes. Then, a few things happened almost at once—the lion jumped from his hiding spot towards the retreating black—Tarzan shouted a warning—and the black turned just in time to see Numa stopped in mid-leap by a thin strand of grass rope, the noosed end of which had fallen neatly around his neck.
The ape-man had acted so quickly that he had been unable to prepare himself to withstand the strain and shock of Numa’s great weight upon the rope, and so it was that though the rope stopped the beast before his mighty talons could fasten themselves in the flesh of the black, the strain overbalanced Tarzan, who came tumbling to the ground not six paces from the infuriated animal. Like lightning Numa turned upon this new enemy, and, defenseless as he was, Tarzan of the Apes was nearer to death that instant than he ever before had been. It was the black who saved him. The warrior realized in an instant that he owed his life to this strange white man, and he also saw that only a miracle could save his preserver from those fierce yellow fangs that had been so near to his own flesh.
The ape-man acted so fast that he couldn’t brace himself for the strain and shock of Numa’s heavy weight on the rope. Though the rope stopped the beast before its powerful claws could grab onto the black man, the strain caused Tarzan to lose his balance and tumble to the ground less than six paces from the furious animal. In a flash, Numa turned on this new threat, and although Tarzan of the Apes was defenseless, he was closer to death at that moment than ever before. It was the black man who saved him. The warrior quickly realized that he owed his life to this strange white man and understood that only a miracle could protect his rescuer from those vicious yellow fangs that had been so close to his own skin.
With the quickness of thought his spear arm flew back, and then shot forward with all the force of the sinewy muscles that rolled beneath the shimmering ebon hide. True to its mark the iron-shod weapon flew, transfixing Numa’s sleek carcass from the right groin to beneath the left shoulder. With a hideous scream of rage and pain the brute turned again upon the black. A dozen paces he had gone when Tarzan’s rope brought him to a stand once more—then he wheeled again upon the ape-man, only to feel the painful prick of a barbed arrow as it sank half its length in his quivering flesh. Again he stopped, and by this time Tarzan had run twice around the stem of a great tree with his rope, and made the end fast.
With lightning speed, his spear arm swung back and then shot forward with all the strength of the powerful muscles beneath his shiny black skin. The iron-tipped weapon hit its target, piercing Numa’s sleek body from the right groin to beneath the left shoulder. With a terrible scream of rage and pain, the brute turned again towards the black man. He had taken a few steps when Tarzan's rope brought him to a halt once more—then he turned again to face the ape-man, only to feel the sharp sting of a barbed arrow as it buried itself halfway into his trembling flesh. He stopped again, and by this time, Tarzan had circled around the trunk of a large tree twice with his rope and secured the end.
The black saw the trick, and grinned, but Tarzan knew that Numa must be quickly finished before those mighty teeth had found and parted the slender cord that held him. It was a matter of but an instant to reach the black’s side and drag his long knife from its scabbard. Then he signed the warrior to continue to shoot arrows into the great beast while he attempted to close in upon him with the knife; so as one tantalized upon one side, the other sneaked cautiously in upon the other. Numa was furious. He raised his voice in a perfect frenzy of shrieks, growls, and hideous moans, the while he reared upon his hind legs in futile attempt to reach first one and then the other of his tormentors.
The black guy saw the trick and smirked, but Tarzan knew he had to finish Numa quickly before those powerful teeth found and chewed through the thin cord that held him. It only took a moment to get to the black’s side and pull his long knife from its sheath. Then he signaled the warrior to keep shooting arrows at the massive beast while he tried to sneak up on it with the knife; so while one distracted from one side, the other carefully moved in from the other side. Numa was furious. He let out a wild mix of screeches, growls, and terrible moans as he stood on his hind legs, futilely trying to reach one tormentor and then the other.
But at length the agile ape-man saw his chance, and rushed in upon the beast’s left side behind the mighty shoulder. A giant arm encircled the tawny throat, and a long blade sank once, true as a die, into the fierce heart. Then Tarzan arose, and the black man and the white looked into each other’s eyes across the body of their kill—and the black made the sign of peace and friendship, and Tarzan of the Apes answered in kind.
But eventually, the quick ape-man saw his opportunity and charged at the beast’s left side, behind its powerful shoulder. A huge arm wrapped around the golden throat, and a sharp blade plunged once, accurately, into the fierce heart. Then Tarzan stood up, and the black man and the white man looked into each other’s eyes across the body of their kill—and the black man made a gesture of peace and friendship, which Tarzan of the Apes returned in kind.
Chapter XV
From Ape to Savage
The noise of their battle with Numa had drawn an excited horde of savages from the nearby village, and a moment after the lion’s death the two men were surrounded by lithe, ebon warriors, gesticulating and jabbering—a thousand questions that drowned each ventured reply.
The noise of their fight with Numa had attracted an eager crowd of natives from the nearby village, and moments after the lion was killed, the two men found themselves surrounded by agile, dark-skinned warriors, waving their arms and chattering—a thousand questions that overwhelmed every attempted answer.
And then the women came, and the children—eager, curious, and, at sight of Tarzan, more questioning than ever. The ape-man’s new friend finally succeeded in making himself heard, and when he had done talking the men and women of the village vied with one another in doing honor to the strange creature who had saved their fellow and battled single-handed with fierce Numa.
And then the women arrived, along with the children—eager, curious, and, upon seeing Tarzan, even more questioning than before. The ape-man’s new friend finally managed to make himself heard, and when he finished talking, the men and women of the village competed with each other in honoring the strange being who had saved their fellow and fought alone against the fierce Numa.
At last they led him back to their village, where they brought him gifts of fowl, and goats, and cooked food. When he pointed to their weapons the warriors hastened to fetch spear, shield, arrows, and a bow. His friend of the encounter presented him with the knife with which he had killed Numa. There was nothing in all the village he could not have had for the asking.
At last, they took him back to their village, where they brought him gifts of chickens, goats, and cooked meals. When he pointed to their weapons, the warriors quickly fetched spears, shields, arrows, and a bow. His friend from the encounter gave him the knife he used to kill Numa. There was nothing in the village that he couldn’t have gotten for the asking.
How much easier this was, thought Tarzan, than murder and robbery to supply his wants. How close he had been to killing this man whom he never had seen before, and who now was manifesting by every primitive means at his command friendship and affection for his would-be slayer. Tarzan of the Apes was ashamed. Hereafter he would at least wait until he knew men deserved it before he thought of killing them.
How much easier this was, Tarzan thought, than murder and robbery to meet his needs. How close he had come to killing this man he had never seen before, who was now showing friendship and affection through every primitive means he could. Tarzan of the Apes felt ashamed. From now on, he would at least wait until he knew men deserved it before considering killing them.
The idea recalled Rokoff to his mind. He wished that he might have the Russian to himself in the dark jungle for a few minutes. There was a man who deserved killing if ever any one did. And if he could have seen Rokoff at that moment as he assiduously bent every endeavor to the pleasant task of ingratiating himself into the affections of the beautiful Miss Strong, he would have longed more than ever to mete out to the man the fate he deserved.
The idea came back to Rokoff. He wished he could have the Russian alone in the dark jungle for a few minutes. That was a man who truly deserved to die. And if he could have seen Rokoff at that moment, as he focused on the enjoyable task of winning the affection of the beautiful Miss Strong, he would have wanted even more to make the man face the fate he deserved.
Tarzan’s first night with the savages was devoted to a wild orgy in his honor. There was feasting, for the hunters had brought in an antelope and a zebra as trophies of their skill, and gallons of the weak native beer were consumed. As the warriors danced in the firelight, Tarzan was again impressed by the symmetry of their figures and the regularity of their features—the flat noses and thick lips of the typical West Coast savage were entirely missing. In repose the faces of the men were intelligent and dignified, those of the women ofttimes prepossessing.
Tarzan’s first night with the tribe was a wild celebration in his honor. There was a feast, as the hunters had brought in an antelope and a zebra as trophies of their skill, and everyone drank large amounts of the local beer. As the warriors danced in the firelight, Tarzan was struck again by the balance of their bodies and the regularity of their features—the flat noses and thick lips typical of West Coast tribes were completely absent. When at rest, the men's faces were intelligent and dignified, while the women were often quite attractive.
It was during this dance that the ape-man first noticed that some of the men and many of the women wore ornaments of gold—principally anklets and armlets of great weight, apparently beaten out of the solid metal. When he expressed a wish to examine one of these, the owner removed it from her person and insisted, through the medium of signs, that Tarzan accept it as a gift. A close scrutiny of the bauble convinced the ape-man that the article was of virgin gold, and he was surprised, for it was the first time that he had ever seen golden ornaments among the savages of Africa, other than the trifling baubles those near the coast had purchased or stolen from Europeans. He tried to ask them from whence the metal came, but he could not make them understand.
It was during this dance that the ape-man first noticed some of the men and many of the women wearing gold ornaments—mostly heavy anklets and armlets that looked like they were made from solid metal. When he expressed a desire to take a look at one, the owner took it off and insisted, using gestures, that Tarzan accept it as a gift. A close inspection of the item made the ape-man realize it was pure gold, and he was surprised since it was the first time he had seen golden ornaments among the Africans, apart from the cheap trinkets those near the coast had bought or stolen from Europeans. He tried to ask them where the metal came from, but he couldn’t get them to understand.
When the dance was done Tarzan signified his intention to leave them, but they almost implored him to accept the hospitality of a great hut which the chief set apart for his sole use. He tried to explain that he would return in the morning, but they could not understand. When he finally walked away from them toward the side of the village opposite the gate, they were still further mystified as to his intentions.
When the dance was over, Tarzan signaled that he wanted to leave, but they almost begged him to accept the hospitality of a large hut that the chief had set aside just for him. He tried to explain that he would come back in the morning, but they just didn’t get it. When he finally turned away from them and walked toward the side of the village opposite the gate, they were even more confused about what he planned to do.
Tarzan, however, knew just what he was about. In the past he had had experience with the rodents and vermin that infest every native village, and, while he was not overscrupulous about such matters, he much preferred the fresh air of the swaying trees to the fetid atmosphere of a hut.
Tarzan, however, knew exactly what he was doing. He had experience with the rodents and pests that fill every native village, and while he wasn't overly concerned about such things, he definitely preferred the fresh air of the swaying trees to the stinky atmosphere of a hut.
The natives followed him to where a great tree overhung the palisade, and as Tarzan leaped for a lower branch and disappeared into the foliage above, precisely after the manner of Manu, the monkey, there were loud exclamations of surprise and astonishment. For half an hour they called to him to return, but as he did not answer them they at last desisted, and sought the sleeping-mats within their huts.
The locals followed him to where a huge tree hung over the fence, and as Tarzan jumped for a low branch and vanished into the leaves above, just like Manu the monkey, there were loud cries of surprise and amazement. They called for him to come back for half an hour, but when he didn’t respond, they finally gave up and went to their sleeping mats inside their huts.
Tarzan went back into the forest a short distance until he had found a tree suited to his primitive requirements, and then, curling himself in a great crotch, he fell immediately into a deep sleep.
Tarzan ventured back into the forest a short way until he found a tree that met his basic needs, and then, curling up in a large nook, he quickly fell into a deep sleep.
The following morning he dropped into the village street as suddenly as he had disappeared the preceding night. For a moment the natives were startled and afraid, but when they recognized their guest of the night before they welcomed him with shouts and laughter. That day he accompanied a party of warriors to the nearby plains on a great hunt, and so dexterous did they find this white man with their own crude weapons that another bond of respect and admiration was thereby wrought.
The next morning, he appeared in the village street as suddenly as he had vanished the night before. For a moment, the locals were startled and scared, but when they recognized their guest from the previous night, they greeted him with cheers and laughter. That day, he joined a group of warriors on a big hunt in the nearby plains, and they were so impressed by how skillfully he used their basic weapons that it created an even stronger bond of respect and admiration.
For weeks Tarzan lived with his savage friends, hunting buffalo, antelope, and zebra for meat, and elephant for ivory. Quickly he learned their simple speech, their native customs, and the ethics of their wild, primitive tribal life. He found that they were not cannibals—that they looked with loathing and contempt upon men who ate men.
For weeks, Tarzan lived with his wild friends, hunting buffalo, antelope, and zebra for food, and elephants for ivory. He quickly learned their straightforward language, their customs, and the values of their basic, primitive tribal life. He discovered that they were not cannibals and regarded with disgust and contempt those who ate other humans.
Busuli, the warrior whom he had stalked to the village, told him many of the tribal legends—how, many years before, his people had come many long marches from the north; how once they had been a great and powerful tribe; and how the slave raiders had wrought such havoc among them with their death-dealing guns that they had been reduced to a mere remnant of their former numbers and power.
Busuli, the warrior he had followed to the village, shared several tribal legends with him—how, many years ago, his people had journeyed long distances from the north; how they had once been a mighty and influential tribe; and how the slave raiders had caused so much destruction among them with their lethal guns that they were left as only a small fraction of their former strength and numbers.
“They hunted us down as one hunts a fierce beast,” said Busuli. “There was no mercy in them. When it was not slaves they sought it was ivory, but usually it was both. Our men were killed and our women driven away like sheep. We fought against them for many years, but our arrows and spears could not prevail against the sticks which spit fire and lead and death to many times the distance that our mightiest warrior could place an arrow. At last, when my father was a young man, the Arabs came again, but our warriors saw them a long way off, and Chowambi, who was chief then, told his people to gather up their belongings and come away with him—that he would lead them far to the south until they found a spot to which the Arab raiders did not come.
“They hunted us down like someone hunts a fierce beast,” said Busuli. “There was no mercy in them. When they weren't looking for slaves, they were after ivory, but usually it was both. Our men were killed and our women were driven away like sheep. We fought against them for many years, but our arrows and spears couldn't stand up to the weapons that shot fire and lead and death from much farther away than our strongest warrior could launch an arrow. Finally, when my father was a young man, the Arabs came again, but our warriors spotted them from a long way off, and Chowambi, who was the chief then, told his people to gather their belongings and follow him—that he would lead them far to the south until they found a place where the Arab raiders wouldn't come.
“And they did as he bid, carrying all their belongings, including many tusks of ivory. For months they wandered, suffering untold hardships and privations, for much of the way was through dense jungle, and across mighty mountains, but finally they came to this spot, and although they sent parties farther on to search for an even better location, none has ever been found.”
“And they did as he asked, carrying all their belongings, including many ivory tusks. For months they wandered, enduring unimaginable hardships and challenges, as much of the journey was through thick jungle and over towering mountains. But eventually, they arrived at this location, and even though they sent groups further ahead to look for a better spot, none has ever been found.”
“And the raiders have never found you here?” asked Tarzan.
“And the raiders have never found you here?” Tarzan asked.
“About a year ago a small party of Arabs and Manyuema stumbled upon us, but we drove them off, killing many. For days we followed them, stalking them for the wild beasts they are, picking them off one by one, until but a handful remained, but these escaped us.”
“About a year ago, a small group of Arabs and Manyuema came across us, but we chased them away, killing many. For days, we tracked them, hunting them like the wild animals they are, taking them out one by one, until only a few were left, but they managed to escape.”
As Busuli talked he fingered a heavy gold armlet that encircled the glossy hide of his left arm. Tarzan’s eyes had been upon the ornament, but his thoughts were elsewhere. Presently he recalled the question he had tried to ask when he first came to the tribe—the question he could not at that time make them understand. For weeks he had forgotten so trivial a thing as gold, for he had been for the time a truly primeval man with no thought beyond today. But of a sudden the sight of gold awakened the sleeping civilization that was in him, and with it came the lust for wealth. That lesson Tarzan had learned well in his brief experience of the ways of civilized man. He knew that gold meant power and pleasure. He pointed to the bauble.
As Busuli spoke, he played with a heavy gold bracelet that wrapped around the shiny skin of his left arm. Tarzan’s gaze was on the ornament, but his mind was elsewhere. Soon, he remembered the question he had tried to ask when he first joined the tribe—the question he couldn’t get them to understand at that time. For weeks, he had forgotten something as trivial as gold because he had been truly primitive, concerned only with the present. But suddenly, the sight of gold stirred the dormant civilization within him, bringing along a desire for wealth. Tarzan had learned well from his brief experiences with civilized society. He understood that gold represented power and pleasure. He pointed to the trinket.
“From whence came the yellow metal, Busuli?” he asked.
“Where did the yellow metal come from, Busuli?” he asked.
The black pointed toward the southeast.
The black pointed southeast.
“A moon’s march away—maybe more,” he replied.
“A moon's distance away—maybe even more,” he replied.
“Have you been there?” asked Tarzan.
“Have you been there?” Tarzan asked.
“No, but some of our people were there years ago, when my father was yet a young man. One of the parties that searched farther for a location for the tribe when first they settled here came upon a strange people who wore many ornaments of yellow metal. Their spears were tipped with it, as were their arrows, and they cooked in vessels made all of solid metal like my armlet.
“No, but some of our people were there years ago, when my father was still a young man. One of the groups that looked for a place for the tribe when they first settled here came across a strange people who wore a lot of yellow metal ornaments. Their spears had metal tips, as did their arrows, and they cooked in pots made entirely of solid metal like my armlet.
“They lived in a great village in huts that were built of stone and surrounded by a great wall. They were very fierce, rushing out and falling upon our warriors before ever they learned that their errand was a peaceful one. Our men were few in number, but they held their own at the top of a little rocky hill, until the fierce people went back at sunset into their wicked city. Then our warriors came down from their hill, and, after taking many ornaments of yellow metal from the bodies of those they had slain, they marched back out of the valley, nor have any of us ever returned.
“They lived in a large village in stone huts surrounded by a massive wall. They were very fierce, charging out and attacking our warriors before they even realized their mission was peaceful. Our men were outnumbered, but they defended themselves from the top of a small rocky hill until the fierce people retreated into their wicked city at sunset. Then our warriors came down from the hill and, after taking many gold ornaments from the bodies of those they had defeated, they marched back out of the valley, and none of us have ever returned.”
“They are wicked people—neither white like you nor black like me, but covered with hair as is Bolgani, the gorilla. Yes, they are very bad people indeed, and Chowambi was glad to get out of their country.”
“They are evil people—neither white like you nor black like me, but covered in hair like Bolgani, the gorilla. Yes, they are really bad people, and Chowambi was happy to leave their country.”
“And are none of those alive who were with Chowambi, and saw these strange people and their wonderful city?” asked Tarzan.
“Are there none of those who were with Chowambi and saw these strange people and their amazing city still alive?” Tarzan asked.
“Waziri, our chief, was there,” replied Busuli. “He was a very young man then, but he accompanied Chowambi, who was his father.”
“Waziri, our chief, was there,” Busuli replied. “He was really young back then, but he came with Chowambi, who was his father.”
So that night Tarzan asked Waziri about it, and Waziri, who was now an old man, said that it was a long march, but that the way was not difficult to follow. He remembered it well.
So that night, Tarzan asked Waziri about it, and Waziri, who was now an old man, said that it was a long journey, but the path was easy to follow. He remembered it clearly.
“For ten days we followed this river which runs beside our village. Up toward its source we traveled until on the tenth day we came to a little spring far up upon the side of a lofty mountain range. In this little spring our river is born. The next day we crossed over the top of the mountain, and upon the other side we came to a tiny rivulet which we followed down into a great forest. For many days we traveled along the winding banks of the rivulet that had now become a river, until we came to a greater river, into which it emptied, and which ran down the center of a mighty valley.
“For ten days we followed this river that runs next to our village. We traveled toward its source until, on the tenth day, we reached a small spring high up on the side of a tall mountain range. This little spring is where our river starts. The next day, we crossed over the mountain's peak, and on the other side, we found a tiny stream that we followed down into a vast forest. For many days, we traveled along the winding banks of the stream, which had now turned into a river, until we reached a larger river that it flowed into, running down the center of a huge valley.”
“Then we followed this large river toward its source, hoping to come to more open land. After twenty days of marching from the time we had crossed the mountains and passed out of our own country we came again to another range of mountains. Up their side we followed the great river, that had now dwindled to a tiny rivulet, until we came to a little cave near the mountain-top. In this cave was the mother of the river.
“Then we followed this large river toward its source, hoping to reach more open land. After twenty days of marching since we crossed the mountains and left our country, we finally reached another range of mountains. We followed the great river, which had now shrunk to a tiny stream, up its side until we arrived at a small cave near the mountain top. Inside this cave was the mother of the river.”
“I remember that we camped there that night, and that it was very cold, for the mountains were high. The next day we decided to ascend to the top of the mountains, and see what the country upon the other side looked like, and if it seemed no better than that which we had so far traversed we would return to our village and tell them that they had already found the best place in all the world to live.
“I remember we camped there that night, and it was really cold because the mountains were high. The next day, we decided to climb to the top of the mountains to see what the land on the other side looked like. If it didn't seem any better than what we had already seen, we would go back to our village and tell them they had already found the best place in the world to live.”
“And so we clambered up the face of the rocky cliffs until we reached the summit, and there from a flat mountain-top we saw, not far beneath us, a shallow valley, very narrow; and upon the far side of it was a great village of stone, much of which had fallen and crumbled into decay.”
“And so we climbed up the rocky cliffs until we reached the top, and there from a flat mountain peak we saw, not far below us, a shallow, narrow valley; and on the other side was a large stone village, much of which had fallen apart and decayed.”
The balance of Waziri’s story was practically the same as that which Busuli had told.
The balance of Waziri’s story was pretty much the same as what Busuli had said.
“I should like to go there and see this strange city,” said Tarzan, “and get some of their yellow metal from its fierce inhabitants.”
“I want to go there and see this strange city,” said Tarzan, “and get some of their gold from its fierce inhabitants.”
“It is a long march,” replied Waziri, “and I am an old man, but if you will wait until the rainy season is over and the rivers have gone down I will take some of my warriors and go with you.”
“It’s a long journey,” answered Waziri, “and I’m an old man, but if you wait until the rainy season is over and the rivers have receded, I’ll take some of my warriors and go with you.”
And Tarzan had to be contented with that arrangement, though he would have liked it well enough to have set off the next morning—he was as impatient as a child. Really Tarzan of the Apes was but a child, or a primeval man, which is the same thing in a way.
And Tarzan had to be okay with that arrangement, even though he would have loved to leave the next morning—he was as restless as a child. In reality, Tarzan of the Apes was just a child, or a primitive man, which is pretty much the same thing in a way.
The next day but one a small party of hunters returned to the village from the south to report a large herd of elephant some miles away. By climbing trees they had had a fairly good view of the herd, which they described as numbering several large tuskers, a great many cows and calves, and full-grown bulls whose ivory would be worth having.
The day after next, a small group of hunters came back to the village from the south to share news of a large herd of elephants several miles away. By climbing trees, they got a good look at the herd, which they described as including several big tuskers, many cows and calves, and adult bulls with valuable ivory.
The balance of the day and evening was filled with preparation for a great hunt—spears were overhauled, quivers were replenished, bows were restrung; and all the while the village witch doctor passed through the busy throngs disposing of various charms and amulets designed to protect the possessor from hurt, or bring him good fortune in the morrow’s hunt.
The rest of the day and evening was spent getting ready for an epic hunt—spears were fixed up, quivers were filled, bows were re-strung; and all the while, the village shaman moved through the bustling crowds, handing out different charms and amulets meant to keep the wearer safe from harm or bring them good luck in tomorrow's hunt.
At dawn the hunters were off. There were fifty sleek, black warriors, and in their midst, lithe and active as a young forest god, strode Tarzan of the Apes, his brown skin contrasting oddly with the ebony of his companions. Except for color he was one of them. His ornaments and weapons were the same as theirs—he spoke their language—he laughed and joked with them, and leaped and shouted in the brief wild dance that preceded their departure from the village, to all intent and purpose a savage among savages. Nor, had he questioned himself, is it to be doubted that he would have admitted that he was far more closely allied to these people and their life than to the Parisian friends whose ways, apelike, he had successfully mimicked for a few short months.
At dawn, the hunters set out. There were fifty sleek, black warriors, and among them, as nimble and lively as a young forest god, was Tarzan of the Apes, his brown skin standing out against the dark complexion of his companions. Except for the color, he was one of them. His ornaments and weapons were the same as theirs—he spoke their language—he laughed and joked with them, and danced wildly and shouted in the brief celebration that preceded their departure from the village, appearing to be a savage among savages. If he had questioned himself, he would have surely recognized that he was much more connected to these people and their way of life than to the Parisian friends whose behaviors, somewhat ape-like, he had learned to imitate for just a few short months.
But he did think of D’Arnot, and a grin of amusement showed his strong white teeth as he pictured the immaculate Frenchman’s expression could he by some means see Tarzan as he was that minute. Poor Paul, who had prided himself on having eradicated from his friend the last traces of wild savagery. “How quickly have I fallen!” thought Tarzan; but in his heart he did not consider it a fall—rather, he pitied the poor creatures of Paris, penned up like prisoners in their silly clothes, and watched by policemen all their poor lives, that they might do nothing that was not entirely artificial and tiresome.
But he did think of D’Arnot, and a grin of amusement appeared as he imagined the Frenchman’s reaction if he could see Tarzan in that moment. Poor Paul, who had taken pride in having wiped out the last remnants of wild savagery from his friend. “How quickly I’ve fallen!” thought Tarzan; but deep down, he didn’t see it as a fall—rather, he felt sorry for the poor people in Paris, trapped like prisoners in their ridiculous clothes, watched over by officers their whole lives, so they wouldn’t do anything that wasn’t completely fake and boring.
A two hours’ march brought them close to the vicinity in which the elephants had been seen the previous day. From there on they moved very quietly indeed searching for the spoor of the great beasts. At length they found the well-marked trail along which the herd had passed not many hours before. In single file they followed it for about half an hour. It was Tarzan who first raised his hand in signal that the quarry was at hand—his sensitive nose had warned him that the elephants were not far ahead of them.
A two-hour walk brought them close to the area where the elephants had been spotted the day before. From there, they moved quietly, searching for the tracks of the massive animals. Eventually, they discovered the clear trail where the herd had passed just a few hours earlier. In a single line, they followed it for about thirty minutes. It was Tarzan who first raised his hand to signal that the animals were near—his keen sense of smell had alerted him that the elephants were not far ahead.
The blacks were skeptical when he told them how he knew.
The Black people were doubtful when he explained how he knew.
“Come with me,” said Tarzan, “and we shall see.”
“Come with me,” Tarzan said, “and we’ll find out.”
With the agility of a squirrel he sprang into a tree and ran nimbly to the top. One of the blacks followed more slowly and carefully. When he had reached a lofty limb beside the ape-man the latter pointed to the south, and there, some few hundred yards away, the black saw a number of huge black backs swaying back and forth above the top of the lofty jungle grasses. He pointed the direction to the watchers below, indicating with his fingers the number of beasts he could count.
With the agility of a squirrel, he jumped into a tree and quickly climbed to the top. One of the men followed more slowly and cautiously. When he reached a high branch next to the ape-man, the latter pointed to the south, where a few hundred yards away, the man saw several large dark shapes swaying back and forth above the tall jungle grasses. He pointed in the direction to the watchers below, using his fingers to indicate how many animals he could count.
Immediately the hunters started toward the elephants. The black in the tree hastened down, but Tarzan stalked, after his own fashion, along the leafy way of the middle terrace.
Immediately, the hunters moved toward the elephants. The figure in the tree hurried down, but Tarzan made his way along the leafy path of the middle terrace in his own way.
It is no child’s play to hunt wild elephants with the crude weapons of primitive man. Tarzan knew that few native tribes ever attempted it, and the fact that his tribe did so gave him no little pride—already he was commencing to think of himself as a member of the little community. As Tarzan moved silently through the trees he saw the warriors below creeping in a half circle upon the still unsuspecting elephants. Finally they were within sight of the great beasts. Now they singled out two large tuskers, and at a signal the fifty men rose from the ground where they had lain concealed, and hurled their heavy war spears at the two marked beasts. There was not a single miss; twenty-five spears were embedded in the sides of each of the giant animals. One never moved from the spot where it stood when the avalanche of spears struck it, for two, perfectly aimed, had penetrated its heart, and it lunged forward upon its knees, rolling to the ground without a struggle.
Hunting wild elephants with the basic weapons of early humans is no easy task. Tarzan knew that few local tribes ever tried it, and the fact that his tribe did so filled him with pride—he was beginning to see himself as part of the small community. As Tarzan silently moved through the trees, he saw the warriors below creeping in a half circle toward the still unsuspecting elephants. Finally, they got within sight of the massive animals. They chose two large tuskers, and at a signal, the fifty men rose up from where they had been hiding and threw their heavy war spears at the two targeted beasts. Not a single spear missed; twenty-five spears were embedded in the sides of each giant animal. One of them stood still when the flurry of spears hit it, as two perfectly aimed spears had struck its heart, and it lunged forward onto its knees, collapsing to the ground without a struggle.
The other, standing nearly head-on toward the hunters, had not proved so good a mark, and though every spear struck not one entered the great heart. For a moment the huge bull stood trumpeting in rage and pain, casting about with its little eyes for the author of its hurt. The blacks had faded into the jungle before the weak eyes of the monster had fallen upon any of them, but now he caught the sound of their retreat, and, amid a terrific crashing of underbrush and branches, he charged in the direction of the noise.
The other one, facing almost directly at the hunters, wasn't an easy target, and even though every spear was thrown, none hit the huge heart. For a moment, the massive bull stood roaring in anger and pain, looking around with its small eyes for the source of its injury. The hunters had disappeared into the jungle before the monster’s weak eyes could spot any of them, but now it heard the sound of their escape and, with a loud crashing of underbrush and branches, charged toward the noise.
It so happened that chance sent him in the direction of Busuli, whom he was overtaking so rapidly that it was as though the black were standing still instead of racing at full speed to escape the certain death which pursued him. Tarzan had witnessed the entire performance from the branches of a nearby tree, and now that he saw his friend’s peril he raced toward the infuriated beast with loud cries, hoping to distract him.
It just so happened that luck led him toward Busuli, whom he was catching up to so quickly that it seemed like the guy was standing still instead of running away at full speed from the certain death chasing him. Tarzan had watched the whole scene from the branches of a nearby tree, and now that he saw his friend's danger, he sprinted toward the angry beast with loud shouts, hoping to divert its attention.
But it had been as well had he saved his breath, for the brute was deaf and blind to all else save the particular object of his rage that raced futilely before him. And now Tarzan saw that only a miracle could save Busuli, and with the same unconcern with which he had once hunted this very man he hurled himself into the path of the elephant to save the black warrior’s life.
But it would have been better if he had saved his breath, because the beast was deaf and blind to everything except the one target of his anger that was running hopelessly ahead of him. Now Tarzan realized that only a miracle could save Busuli, and with the same indifference he had once shown while hunting this very man, he threw himself in the path of the elephant to save the black warrior's life.
He still grasped his spear, and while Tantor was yet six or eight paces behind his prey, a sinewy white warrior dropped as from the heavens, almost directly in his path. With a vicious lunge the elephant swerved to the right to dispose of this temerarious foeman who dared intervene between himself and his intended victim; but he had not reckoned on the lightning quickness that could galvanize those steel muscles into action so marvelously swift as to baffle even a keener eyesight than Tantor’s.
He still held onto his spear, and while Tantor was still six or eight steps behind his target, a strong, white warrior dropped down from above, practically right in his way. With a fierce move, the elephant swerved to the right to deal with this reckless enemy who dared to get between him and his intended prey; but he hadn't accounted for the lightning-fast reflexes that could activate those powerful muscles with such incredible speed that even sharper eyesight than Tantor’s would be left in awe.
And so it happened that before the elephant realized that his new enemy had leaped from his path Tarzan had driven his iron-shod spear from behind the massive shoulder straight into the fierce heart, and the colossal pachyderm had toppled to his death at the feet of the ape-man.
And so it happened that before the elephant realized his new enemy had jumped out in front of him, Tarzan had thrust his iron-tipped spear from behind the giant shoulder straight into the fierce heart, and the massive creature had fallen to his death at the feet of the ape-man.
Busuli had not beheld the manner of his deliverance, but Waziri, the old chief, had seen, and several of the other warriors, and they hailed Tarzan with delight as they swarmed about him and his great kill. When he leaped upon the mighty carcass, and gave voice to the weird challenge with which he announced a great victory, the blacks shrank back in fear, for to them it marked the brutal Bolgani, whom they feared fully as much as they feared Numa, the lion; but with a fear with which was mixed a certain uncanny awe of the manlike thing to which they attributed supernatural powers.
Busuli hadn't seen how he was saved, but Waziri, the old chief, had witnessed it, along with several other warriors, who surrounded Tarzan with joy as they celebrated his impressive kill. When he jumped on the massive carcass and let out the strange challenge that signaled a great victory, the others stepped back in fear, for it signified the brutal Bolgani, whom they feared just as much as Numa, the lion; but their fear was mixed with an unsettling awe for the manlike figure they believed had supernatural powers.
But when Tarzan lowered his raised head and smiled upon them they were reassured, though they did not understand. Nor did they ever fully understand this strange creature who ran through the trees as quickly as Manu, yet was even more at home upon the ground than themselves; who was except as to color like unto themselves, yet as powerful as ten of them, and singlehanded a match for the fiercest denizens of the fierce jungle.
But when Tarzan lowered his head and smiled at them, they felt reassured, even though they didn’t really understand. They would never fully grasp this strange being who moved through the trees as fast as Manu but felt even more comfortable on the ground than they did; who, except for his color, was like them, yet was as powerful as ten of them and could take on the fiercest creatures of the wild jungle all on his own.
When the remainder of the warriors had gathered, the hunt was again taken up and the stalking of the retreating herd once more begun; but they had covered a bare hundred yards when from behind them, at a great distance, sounded faintly a strange popping.
When the rest of the warriors had gathered, the hunt started again, and they began to track the retreating herd once more; but they had only covered a little over a hundred yards when a faint, strange popping sound came from behind them in the distance.
For an instant they stood like a group of statuary, intently listening. Then Tarzan spoke.
For a moment, they stood still like a group of statues, listening closely. Then Tarzan spoke.
“Guns!” he said. “The village is being attacked.”
“Guns!” he exclaimed. “The village is under attack.”
“Come!” cried Waziri. “The Arab raiders have returned with their cannibal slaves for our ivory and our women!”
“Come!” shouted Waziri. “The Arab raiders are back with their cannibal slaves for our ivory and our women!”
Chapter XVI
The Ivory Raiders
Waziri’s warriors marched at a rapid trot through the jungle in the direction of the village. For a few minutes, the sharp cracking of guns ahead warned them to haste, but finally the reports dwindled to an occasional shot, presently ceasing altogether. Nor was this less ominous than the rattle of musketry, for it suggested but a single solution to the little band of rescuers—that the illy garrisoned village had already succumbed to the onslaught of a superior force.
Waziri’s warriors hurried through the jungle towards the village. For a few minutes, the loud gunfire ahead pushed them to move faster, but eventually the shots turned into just an occasional bang, and then stopped altogether. This was just as concerning as the sound of gunfire, as it implied only one thing for the small group of rescuers—that the poorly defended village had already fallen to a stronger force.
The returning hunters had covered a little more than three miles of the five that had separated them from the village when they met the first of the fugitives who had escaped the bullets and clutches of the foe. There were a dozen women, youths, and girls in the party, and so excited were they that they could scarce make themselves understood as they tried to relate to Waziri the calamity that had befallen his people.
The returning hunters had covered just over three miles of the five that lay between them and the village when they encountered the first group of fugitives who had escaped the bullets and grasp of the enemy. There were about a dozen women, young people, and girls in the group, and they were so excited that they could hardly express themselves as they attempted to explain to Waziri the disaster that had struck his people.
“They are as many as the leaves of the forest,” cried one of the women, in attempting to explain the enemy’s force. “There are many Arabs and countless Manyuema, and they all have guns. They crept close to the village before we knew that they were about, and then, with many shouts, they rushed in upon us, shooting down men, and women, and children. Those of us who could fled in all directions into the jungle, but more were killed. I do not know whether they took any prisoners or not—they seemed only bent upon killing us all. The Manyuema called us many names, saying that they would eat us all before they left our country—that this was our punishment for killing their friends last year. I did not hear much, for I ran away quickly.”
“They're as many as the leaves in the forest,” shouted one of the women, trying to explain the enemy's numbers. “There are a lot of Arabs and countless Manyuema, and they all have guns. They got close to the village before we even realized they were there, and then, with loud shouts, they charged in on us, shooting down men, women, and children. Those of us who could escaped in all directions into the jungle, but more were killed. I don’t know if they took any prisoners or not—they just seemed focused on killing us all. The Manyuema called us a lot of names, saying they would eat us all before they left our country—that this was our punishment for killing their friends last year. I didn’t hear much because I ran away quickly.”
The march toward the village was now resumed, more slowly and with greater stealth, for Waziri knew that it was too late to rescue—their only mission could be one of revenge. Inside the next mile a hundred more fugitives were met. There were many men among these, and so the fighting strength of the party was augmented.
The march toward the village started again, but more slowly and quietly, because Waziri realized it was too late to save anyone—their only goal now was revenge. Within the next mile, they encountered a hundred more fugitives. There were many men among them, which strengthened the party.
Now a dozen warriors were sent creeping ahead to reconnoiter. Waziri remained with the main body, which advanced in a thin line that spread in a great crescent through the forest. By the chief’s side walked Tarzan.
Now a dozen warriors were sent ahead to scout. Waziri stayed with the main group, which moved in a thin line that spread out in a wide arc through the forest. At the chief’s side walked Tarzan.
Presently one of the scouts returned. He had come within sight of the village.
Currently, one of the scouts came back. He had spotted the village.
“They are all within the palisade,” he whispered.
“They're all inside the fence,” he whispered.
“Good!” said Waziri. “We shall rush in upon them and slay them all,” and he made ready to send word along the line that they were to halt at the edge of the clearing until they saw him rush toward the village—then all were to follow.
“Great!” said Waziri. “We'll charge in and take them all out,” and he prepared to signal along the line for them to stop at the edge of the clearing until they saw him run toward the village—then everyone was to follow.
“Wait!” cautioned Tarzan. “If there are even fifty guns within the palisade we shall be repulsed and slaughtered. Let me go alone through the trees, so that I may look down upon them from above, and see just how many there be, and what chance we might have were we to charge. It were foolish to lose a single man needlessly if there be no hope of success. I have an idea that we can accomplish more by cunning than by force. Will you wait, Waziri?”
“Wait!” warned Tarzan. “If there are even fifty guns inside the palisade, we’ll be pushed back and wiped out. Let me go alone through the trees so I can look down on them from above and see how many there are and what chances we have if we charge. It would be stupid to lose even one man unnecessarily if there’s no hope of success. I think we can achieve more through strategy than through brute force. Will you wait, Waziri?”
“Yes,” said the old chief. “Go!”
“Yes,” said the old chief. “Go!”
So Tarzan sprang into the trees and disappeared in the direction of the village. He moved more cautiously than was his wont, for he knew that men with guns could reach him quite as easily in the treetops as on the ground. And when Tarzan of the Apes elected to adopt stealth, no creature in all the jungle could move so silently or so completely efface himself from the sight of an enemy.
So Tarzan jumped into the trees and vanished toward the village. He moved more carefully than usual because he knew that men with guns could spot him just as easily in the treetops as on the ground. And when Tarzan of the Apes decided to be stealthy, no creature in the jungle could move as quietly or hide from an enemy as completely as he could.
In five minutes he had wormed his way to the great tree that overhung the palisade at one end of the village, and from his point of vantage looked down upon the savage horde beneath. He counted fifty Arabs and estimated that there were five times as many Manyuema. The latter were gorging themselves upon food and, under the very noses of their white masters, preparing the gruesome feast which is the piece de résistance that follows a victory in which the bodies of their slain enemies fall into their horrid hands.
In just five minutes, he made his way to the large tree that hung over the palisade at one end of the village. From his vantage point, he looked down at the savage crowd below. He counted fifty Arabs and estimated there were five times as many Manyuema. The latter were stuffing themselves with food and, right under their white masters' noses, were preparing the gruesome feast that follows a victory, where the bodies of their slain enemies end up in their horrid hands.
The ape-man saw that to charge that wild horde, armed as they were with guns, and barricaded behind the locked gates of the village, would be a futile task, and so he returned to Waziri and advised him to wait; that he, Tarzan, had a better plan.
The ape-man realized that charging that wild group, armed with guns and barricaded behind the locked gates of the village, would be pointless, so he went back to Waziri and suggested they wait; he, Tarzan, had a better plan.
But a moment before one of the fugitives had related to Waziri the story of the atrocious murder of the old chief’s wife, and so crazed with rage was the old man that he cast discretion to the winds. Calling his warriors about him, he commanded them to charge, and, with brandishing spears and savage yells, the little force of scarcely more than a hundred dashed madly toward the village gates. Before the clearing had been half crossed the Arabs opened up a withering fire from behind the palisade.
But just a moment before, one of the escapees had told Waziri about the horrific murder of the old chief’s wife, and the old man was so consumed with rage that he threw caution to the wind. Gathering his warriors around him, he ordered them to charge, and with waving spears and fierce shouts, the small group of barely a hundred rushed recklessly toward the village gates. Before they had crossed half the clearing, the Arabs unleashed a devastating gunfire from behind the fence.
With the first volley Waziri fell. The speed of the chargers slackened. Another volley brought down a half dozen more. A few reached the barred gates, only to be shot in their tracks, without the ghost of a chance to gain the inside of the palisade, and then the whole attack crumpled, and the remaining warriors scampered back into the forest. As they ran the raiders opened the gates, rushing after them, to complete the day’s work with the utter extermination of the tribe. Tarzan had been among the last to turn back toward the forest, and now, as he ran slowly, he turned from time to time to speed a well-aimed arrow into the body of a pursuer.
With the first shot, Waziri fell. The speed of the riders slowed. Another shot took down half a dozen more. A few made it to the barred gates, only to be shot down on the spot, with no chance of getting inside the palisade, and then the whole attack fell apart, and the remaining warriors rushed back into the forest. As they ran, the raiders opened the gates, chasing after them to finish the job with the complete elimination of the tribe. Tarzan was among the last to turn back toward the forest, and now, as he ran slowly, he occasionally turned to shoot a well-aimed arrow at a pursuer.
Once within the jungle, he found a little knot of determined blacks waiting to give battle to the oncoming horde, but Tarzan cried to them to scatter, keeping out of harm’s way until they could gather in force after dark.
Once inside the jungle, he found a small group of determined Black people ready to fight the approaching horde, but Tarzan urged them to disperse, staying safe until they could regroup in larger numbers after dark.
“Do as I tell you,” he urged, “and I will lead you to victory over these enemies of yours. Scatter through the forest, picking up as many stragglers as you can find, and at night, if you think that you have been followed, come by roundabout ways to the spot where we killed the elephants today. Then I will explain my plan, and you will find that it is good. You cannot hope to pit your puny strength and simple weapons against the numbers and the guns of the Arabs and the Manyuema.”
“Do what I say,” he urged, “and I’ll lead you to victory over your enemies. Spread out through the forest, collecting as many stragglers as you can find, and at night, if you think you’ve been followed, take a roundabout route to the place where we killed the elephants today. Then I’ll explain my plan, and you’ll see that it’s good. You can’t expect to match your limited strength and basic weapons against the numbers and guns of the Arabs and the Manyuema.”
They finally assented. “When you scatter,” explained Tarzan, in conclusion, “your foes will have to scatter to follow you, and so it may happen that if you are watchful you can drop many a Manyuema with your arrows from behind some great trees.”
They finally agreed. “When you spread out,” Tarzan explained at the end, “your enemies will have to spread out to track you, and it might turn out that if you stay alert, you can take down many Manyuema with your arrows from behind some large trees.”
They had barely time to hasten away farther into the forest before the first of the raiders had crossed the clearing and entered it in pursuit of them.
They hardly had time to hurry deeper into the forest before the first of the raiders crossed the clearing and entered it to chase them.
Tarzan ran a short distance along the ground before he took to the trees. Then he raced quickly to the upper terrace, there doubling on his tracks and making his way rapidly back toward the village. Here he found that every Arab and Manyuema had joined in the pursuit, leaving the village deserted except for the chained prisoners and a single guard.
Tarzan sprinted a short distance on the ground before climbing into the trees. Then he raced quickly to the upper terrace, doubling back on his path and hurrying toward the village. When he got there, he discovered that all the Arabs and Manyuema had joined in the chase, leaving the village empty except for the chained prisoners and one guard.
The sentry stood at the open gate, looking in the direction of the forest, so that he did not see the agile giant that dropped to the ground at the far end of the village street. With drawn bow the ape-man crept stealthily toward his unsuspecting victim. The prisoners had already discovered him, and with wide eyes filled with wonder and with hope they watched their would-be rescuer. Now he halted not ten paces from the unconscious Manyuema. The shaft was drawn back its full length at the height of the keen gray eye that sighted along its polished surface. There was a sudden twang as the brown fingers released their hold, and without a sound the raider sank forward upon his face, a wooden shaft transfixing his heart and protruding a foot from his black chest.
The guard stood by the open gate, staring toward the forest, so he didn’t notice the agile giant that dropped to the ground at the far end of the village street. With his bow drawn, the ape-man crept quietly toward his unsuspecting target. The prisoners had already spotted him, and with wide eyes full of wonder and hope, they watched their potential rescuer. Now he stopped just ten paces away from the unconscious Manyuema. The arrow was pulled back all the way, aimed at the keen gray eye that focused along its polished surface. Then there was a sudden twang as his brown fingers let go, and without a sound, the raider fell forward onto his face, a wooden arrow piercing his heart and sticking out a foot from his black chest.
Then Tarzan turned his attention to the fifty women and youths chained neck to neck on the long slave chain. There was no releasing of the ancient padlocks in the time that was left him, so the ape-man called to them to follow him as they were, and, snatching the gun and cartridge belt from the dead sentry, he led the now happy band out through the village gate and into the forest upon the far side of the clearing.
Then Tarzan focused on the fifty women and youths chained together on the long slave chain. There wasn't enough time to unlock the old padlocks, so the ape-man urged them to follow him as they were. Grabbing the gun and cartridge belt from the dead guard, he led the now happy group out through the village gate and into the forest on the other side of the clearing.
It was a slow and arduous march, for the slave chain was new to these people, and there were many delays as one of their number would stumble and fall, dragging others down with her. Then, too, Tarzan had been forced to make a wide detour to avoid any possibility of meeting with returning raiders. He was partially guided by occasional shots which indicated that the Arab horde was still in touch with the villagers; but he knew that if they would but follow his advice there would be but few casualties other than on the side of the marauders.
It was a slow and exhausting march since the slave chain was new to these people, and there were many delays as one of them would stumble and fall, pulling others down with her. Also, Tarzan had to take a long detour to avoid running into any returning raiders. He was partially guided by occasional gunshots that showed the Arab raiders were still in contact with the villagers; but he knew that if they just followed his advice, there would be hardly any casualties except on the marauders' side.
Toward dusk the firing ceased entirely, and Tarzan knew that the Arabs had all returned to the village. He could scarce repress a smile of triumph as he thought of their rage on discovering that their guard had been killed and their prisoners taken away. Tarzan had wished that he might have taken some of the great store of ivory the village contained, solely for the purpose of still further augmenting the wrath of his enemies; but he knew that that was not necessary for its salvation, since he already had a plan mapped out which would effectually prevent the Arabs leaving the country with a single tusk. And it would have been cruel to have needlessly burdened these poor, overwrought women with the extra weight of the heavy ivory.
Toward dusk, the gunfire stopped completely, and Tarzan realized that the Arabs had all returned to the village. He could barely hold back a smile of triumph as he thought about their fury upon discovering that their guard had been killed and their prisoners taken away. Tarzan had wished he could have taken some of the valuable ivory the village held, just to further increase his enemies' anger; but he knew that wasn’t needed for their safety, as he already had a plan in place that would effectively stop the Arabs from leaving the country with a single tusk. Plus, it would have been harsh to unnecessarily burden these poor, stressed women with the extra weight of the heavy ivory.
It was after midnight when Tarzan, with his slow-moving caravan, approached the spot where the elephants lay. Long before they reached it they had been guided by the huge fire the natives had built in the center of a hastily improvised boma, partially for warmth and partially to keep off chance lions.
It was after midnight when Tarzan, with his slow-moving caravan, approached the spot where the elephants lay. Long before they reached it, they had been guided by the huge fire the locals had built in the center of a quickly set up boma, partly for warmth and partly to ward off any lions that might come around.
When they had come close to the encampment Tarzan called aloud to let them know that friends were coming. It was a joyous reception the little party received when the blacks within the boma saw the long file of fettered friends and relatives enter the firelight. These had all been given up as lost forever, as had Tarzan as well, so that the happy blacks would have remained awake all night to feast on elephant meat and celebrate the return of their fellows, had not Tarzan insisted that they take what sleep they could, against the work of the coming day.
When they got close to the camp, Tarzan called out to let them know that friends were arriving. The small group received a warm welcome when the locals inside the boma saw their long line of chained friends and relatives step into the firelight. Everyone thought they were lost forever, including Tarzan, so the joyful locals would have stayed up all night to enjoy elephant meat and celebrate the return of their people, if Tarzan hadn't urged them to get some sleep in preparation for the work ahead.
At that, sleep was no easy matter, for the women who had lost their men or their children in the day’s massacre and battle made night hideous with their continued wailing and howling. Finally, however, Tarzan succeeded in silencing them, on the plea that their noise would attract the Arabs to their hiding-place, when all would be slaughtered.
At that point, sleeping was tough because the women who had lost their men or children in the day's massacre and battle made the night unbearable with their constant crying and screaming. Eventually, though, Tarzan managed to quiet them down by arguing that their noise would draw the Arabs to their hiding spot, putting everyone in danger.
When dawn came Tarzan explained his plan of battle to the warriors, and without demur one and all agreed that it was the safest and surest way in which to rid themselves of their unwelcome visitors and be revenged for the murder of their fellows.
When dawn arrived, Tarzan laid out his battle plan to the warriors, and without hesitation, they all agreed that it was the safest and most certain way to get rid of their unwanted guests and take revenge for the deaths of their comrades.
First the women and children, with a guard of some twenty old warriors and youths, were started southward, to be entirely out of the zone of danger. They had instructions to erect temporary shelter and construct a protecting boma of thorn bush; for the plan of campaign which Tarzan had chosen was one which might stretch out over many days, or even weeks, during which time the warriors would not return to the new camp.
First, the women and children, accompanied by about twenty older warriors and young men, headed south to get completely out of harm's way. They were told to set up temporary shelters and build a protective boma made of thorn bushes; because the strategy Tarzan had chosen might take many days or even weeks, during which the warriors wouldn’t be returning to the new camp.
Two hours after daylight a thin circle of black warriors surrounded the village. At intervals one was perched high in the branches of a tree which could overlook the palisade. Presently a Manyuema within the village fell, pierced by a single arrow. There had been no sound of attack—none of the hideous war-cries or vainglorious waving of menacing spears that ordinarily marks the attack of savages—just a silent messenger of death from out of the silent forest.
Two hours after sunrise, a thin circle of black warriors surrounded the village. Every so often, one was perched high in the branches of a tree that overlooked the palisade. Soon, a Manyuema inside the village fell, struck by a single arrow. There was no sound of an attack—none of the terrifying war cries or boastful waving of threatening spears that usually comes with a savage assault—just a silent messenger of death from the quiet forest.
The Arabs and their followers were thrown into a fine rage at this unprecedented occurrence. They ran for the gates, to wreak dire vengeance upon the foolhardy perpetrator of the outrage; but they suddenly realized that they did not know which way to turn to find the foe. As they stood debating with many angry shouts and much gesticulating, one of the Arabs sank silently to the ground in their very midst—a thin arrow protruding from his heart.
The Arabs and their followers were furious at this unheard-of event. They rushed to the gates, eager to take revenge on the reckless person responsible for the attack; but then they suddenly realized they didn't know which way to go to find the enemy. As they stood arguing with loud shouts and wild gestures, one of the Arabs collapsed silently in their midst—a thin arrow sticking out of his heart.
Tarzan had placed the finest marksmen of the tribe in the surrounding trees, with directions never to reveal themselves while the enemy was faced in their direction. As a black released his messenger of death he would slink behind the sheltering stem of the tree he had selected, nor would he again aim until a watchful eye told him that none was looking toward his tree.
Tarzan had positioned the best marksmen of the tribe in the trees around them, instructing them never to show themselves while the enemy was facing their way. As a warrior launched his attack, he would hide behind the trunk of the tree he chose, and he wouldn't take aim again until he was sure no one was watching his tree.
Three times the Arabs started across the clearing in the direction from which they thought the arrows came, but each time another arrow would come from behind to take its toll from among their number. Then they would turn and charge in a new direction. Finally they set out upon a determined search of the forest, but the blacks melted before them, so that they saw no sign of an enemy.
Three times the Arabs moved into the clearing, heading toward where they thought the arrows were coming from, but each time another arrow would hit one of them from behind. Then they would turn and rush in a different direction. Eventually, they made a focused search of the forest, but the locals disappeared in front of them, leaving no trace of an enemy.
But above them lurked a grim figure in the dense foliage of the mighty trees—it was Tarzan of the Apes, hovering over them as if he had been the shadow of death. Presently a Manyuema forged ahead of his companions; there was none to see from what direction death came, and so it came quickly, and a moment later those behind stumbled over the dead body of their comrade—the inevitable arrow piercing the still heart.
But above them, a dark figure lurked in the thick leaves of the towering trees—it was Tarzan of the Apes, watching over them like a shadow of death. Soon, a Manyuema moved ahead of his group; no one could tell where death was coming from, and so it came swiftly. Moments later, those following stumbled over their fallen comrade—the fatal arrow piercing his still heart.
It does not take a great deal of this manner of warfare to get upon the nerves of white men, and so it is little to be wondered at that the Manyuema were soon panic-stricken. Did one forge ahead an arrow found his heart; did one lag behind he never again was seen alive; did one stumble to one side, even for a bare moment from the sight of his fellows, he did not return—and always when they came upon the bodies of their dead they found those terrible arrows driven with the accuracy of superhuman power straight through the victim’s heart. But worse than all else was the hideous fact that not once during the morning had they seen or heard the slightest sign of an enemy other than the pitiless arrows.
It doesn't take much of this kind of warfare to get on the nerves of white men, so it's not surprising that the Manyuema quickly became panic-stricken. If someone pushed ahead, an arrow would find its mark in their heart; if someone fell behind, they were never seen alive again; if someone stumbled even for a moment out of sight of their group, they never returned—and whenever they found the bodies of their dead, they saw those brutal arrows driven with uncanny accuracy straight through the victim’s heart. But worse than anything else was the horrifying reality that not once during the morning had they seen or heard even the slightest sign of an enemy other than those merciless arrows.
When finally they returned to the village it was no better. Every now and then, at varying intervals that were maddening in the terrible suspense they caused, a man would plunge forward dead. The blacks besought their masters to leave this terrible place, but the Arabs feared to take up the march through the grim and hostile forest beset by this new and terrible enemy while laden with the great store of ivory they had found within the village; but, worse yet, they hated to leave the ivory behind.
When they finally got back to the village, things were still just as bad. Occasionally, at unpredictable and frustrating intervals, a man would collapse, dead. The locals pleaded with their masters to get out of this awful place, but the Arabs were scared to move through the dark and hostile forest, faced with this new and frightening enemy, especially while carrying the huge amount of ivory they had discovered in the village; but even more, they didn't want to abandon the ivory.
Finally the entire expedition took refuge within the thatched huts—here, at least, they would be free from the arrows. Tarzan, from the tree above the village, had marked the hut into which the chief Arabs had gone, and, balancing himself upon an overhanging limb, he drove his heavy spear with all the force of his giant muscles through the thatched roof. A howl of pain told him that it had found a mark. With this parting salute to convince them that there was no safety for them anywhere within the country, Tarzan returned to the forest, collected his warriors, and withdrew a mile to the south to rest and eat. He kept sentries in several trees that commanded a view of the trail toward the village, but there was no pursuit.
Finally, the whole expedition took shelter in the thatched huts—at least here, they would be safe from the arrows. Tarzan, from the tree above the village, had noted which hut the chief Arabs had entered, and, balancing himself on an overhanging limb, he thrust his heavy spear with all the strength of his powerful muscles through the thatched roof. A howl of pain told him that it had struck its target. With this parting blow to show them that there was no safety for them anywhere in the area, Tarzan returned to the forest, gathered his warriors, and moved a mile south to rest and eat. He stationed sentries in several trees that overlooked the path to the village, but there was no pursuit.
An inspection of his force showed not a single casualty—not even a minor wound; while rough estimates of the enemies’ loss convinced the blacks that no fewer than twenty had fallen before their arrows. They were wild with elation, and were for finishing the day in one glorious rush upon the village, during which they would slaughter the last of their foemen. They were even picturing the various tortures they would inflict, and gloating over the suffering of the Manyuema, for whom they entertained a peculiar hatred, when Tarzan put his foot down flatly upon the plan.
A look at his group revealed that not a single person had been hurt—not even a scratch; while rough estimates of the enemy's losses led the black warriors to believe that at least twenty had fallen to their arrows. They were ecstatic and eager to end the day with a triumphant charge on the village, where they would finish off their remaining foes. They even imagined the different tortures they would inflict, reveling in the thought of the suffering they would cause to the Manyuema, whom they particularly despised, when Tarzan firmly put a stop to the plan.
“You are crazy!” he cried. “I have shown you the only way to fight these people. Already you have killed twenty of them without the loss of a single warrior, whereas, yesterday, following your own tactics, which you would now renew, you lost at least a dozen, and killed not a single Arab or Manyuema. You will fight just as I tell you to fight, or I shall leave you and go back to my own country.”
“You're crazy!” he shouted. “I've shown you the only way to fight these people. So far, you've killed twenty of them without losing a single warrior, while yesterday, when you followed your own tactics—which you want to use again—you lost at least a dozen and didn't kill a single Arab or Manyuema. You'll fight the way I tell you to, or I'm leaving and going back to my own country.”
They were frightened when he threatened this, and promised to obey him scrupulously if he would but promise not to desert them.
They were scared when he made this threat and promised to follow him carefully if he would just promise not to abandon them.
“Very well,” he said. “We shall return to the elephant boma for the night. I have a plan to give the Arabs a little taste of what they may expect if they remain in our country, but I shall need no help. Come! If they suffer no more for the balance of the day they will feel reassured, and the relapse into fear will be even more nerve-racking than as though we continued to frighten them all afternoon.”
“Sure,” he said. “We'll head back to the elephant boma for the night. I have a strategy to show the Arabs a little of what they can expect if they stick around in our country, but I won't need any help. Come on! If they don’t experience any more discomfort for the rest of the day, they’ll start to feel more secure, and falling back into fear will be even more stressful than if we kept scaring them all afternoon.”
So they marched back to their camp of the previous night, and, lighting great fires, ate and recounted the adventures of the day until long after dark. Tarzan slept until midnight, then he arose and crept into the Cimmerian blackness of the forest. An hour later he came to the edge of the clearing before the village. There was a camp-fire burning within the palisade. The ape-man crept across the clearing until he stood before the barred gates. Through the interstices he saw a lone sentry sitting before the fire.
So they walked back to the camp they had used the night before, and, starting big fires, they ate and shared stories about their adventures from the day until well after nightfall. Tarzan slept until midnight, then got up and sneaked into the dark depths of the forest. An hour later, he reached the edge of the clearing in front of the village. There was a campfire burning inside the palisade. The ape-man moved quietly across the clearing until he stood in front of the barred gates. Through the gaps, he saw a lone guard sitting by the fire.
Quietly Tarzan went to the tree at the end of the village street. He climbed softly to his place, and fitted an arrow to his bow. For several minutes he tried to sight fairly upon the sentry, but the waving branches and flickering firelight convinced him that the danger of a miss was too great—he must touch the heart full in the center to bring the quiet and sudden death his plan required.
Quietly, Tarzan made his way to the tree at the end of the village street. He climbed up quietly to his spot and nocked an arrow onto his bow. For several minutes, he tried to aim accurately at the sentry, but the swaying branches and flickering firelight made him realize that the risk of missing was too high—he needed to hit the heart directly in the center to achieve the quick and silent death his plan called for.
He had brought, besides, his bow, arrows, and rope, the gun he had taken the previous day from the other sentry he had killed. Caching all these in a convenient crotch of the tree, he dropped lightly to the ground within the palisade, armed only with his long knife. The sentry’s back was toward him. Like a cat Tarzan crept upon the dozing man. He was within two paces of him now—another instant and the knife would slide silently into the fellow’s heart.
He had also brought his bow, arrows, rope, and the gun he had taken the day before from the other sentry he had killed. Stashing everything in a convenient spot in the tree, he jumped down quietly to the ground inside the palisade, armed only with his long knife. The sentry was facing away from him. Like a cat, Tarzan crept up on the sleeping man. He was now just two steps away—one more moment and the knife would silently slip into the man’s heart.
Tarzan crouched for a spring, for that is ever the quickest and surest attack of the jungle beast—when the man, warned, by some subtle sense, sprang to his feet and faced the ape-man.
Tarzan crouched, ready to leap, because that’s always the fastest and surest attack in the jungle—when the man, alerted by some instinct, jumped to his feet and confronted the ape-man.
Chapter XVII
The White Chief of the Waziri
When the eyes of the black Manyuema savage fell upon the strange apparition that confronted him with menacing knife they went wide in horror. He forgot the gun within his hands; he even forgot to cry out—his one thought was to escape this fearsome-looking white savage, this giant of a man upon whose massive rolling muscles and mighty chest the flickering firelight played.
When the black Manyuema savage saw the strange figure confronting him with a threatening knife, his eyes widened in fear. He forgot the gun in his hands; he even forgot to shout—his only thought was to get away from this terrifying white savage, this giant of a man whose huge, rippling muscles and strong chest were lit up by the flickering firelight.
But before he could turn Tarzan was upon him, and then the sentry thought to scream for aid, but it was too late. A great hand was upon his windpipe, and he was being borne to the earth. He battled furiously but futilely—with the grim tenacity of a bulldog those awful fingers were clinging to his throat. Swiftly and surely life was being choked from him. His eyes bulged, his tongue protruded, his face turned to a ghastly purplish hue—there was a convulsive tremor of the stiffening muscles, and the Manyuema sentry lay quite still.
But before he could turn, Tarzan was on him, and then the sentry thought to scream for help, but it was too late. A huge hand was around his throat, and he was being brought down to the ground. He fought back fiercely but helplessly—those terrible fingers clung to his throat with the stubbornness of a bulldog. Swiftly and surely, life was being choked out of him. His eyes bulged, his tongue stuck out, and his face turned a ghastly purplish hue—there was a convulsive tremor in his stiffening muscles, and the Manyuema sentry lay completely still.
The ape-man threw the body across one of his broad shoulders and, gathering up the fellow’s gun, trotted silently up the sleeping village street toward the tree that gave him such easy ingress to the palisaded village. He bore the dead sentry into the midst of the leafy maze above.
The ape-man slung the body over one of his broad shoulders and, grabbing the guy's gun, quietly made his way up the sleeping village street toward the tree that provided him such easy access to the fenced village. He carried the dead guard into the middle of the leafy maze above.
First he stripped the body of cartridge belt and such ornaments as he craved, wedging it into a convenient crotch while his nimble fingers ran over it in search of the loot he could not plainly see in the dark. When he had finished he took the gun that had belonged to the man, and walked far out upon a limb, from the end of which he could obtain a better view of the huts. Drawing a careful bead on the beehive structure in which he knew the chief Arabs to be, he pulled the trigger. Almost instantly there was an answering groan. Tarzan smiled. He had made another lucky hit.
First, he stripped the body of the cartridge belt and any gear he wanted, wedging it into a nearby fork while his quick fingers searched for valuables he couldn’t see in the dark. When he was done, he took the gun that belonged to the man and walked out onto a branch, where he could get a better view of the huts. Carefully aiming at the beehive-like structure where he knew the chief Arabs were, he pulled the trigger. Almost immediately, there was a groan in response. Tarzan smiled. He had made another lucky shot.
Following the shot there was a moment’s silence in the camp, and then Manyuema and Arab came pouring from the huts like a swarm of angry hornets; but if the truth were known they were even more frightened than they were angry. The strain of the preceding day had wrought upon the fears of both black and white, and now this single shot in the night conjured all manner of terrible conjectures in their terrified minds.
Following the shot, there was a brief silence in the camp, and then Manyuema and Arab rushed out of the huts like a swarm of angry hornets; but to be honest, they were even more scared than they were angry. The pressure from the previous day had played on the fears of both black and white, and now this single shot in the night triggered all kinds of dreadful thoughts in their frightened minds.
When they discovered that their sentry had disappeared, their fears were in no way allayed, and as though to bolster their courage by warlike actions, they began to fire rapidly at the barred gates of the village, although no enemy was in sight. Tarzan took advantage of the deafening roar of this fusillade to fire into the mob beneath him.
When they realized that their guard was gone, their fears were not eased at all, and as if to boost their courage with aggressive actions, they started shooting quickly at the locked gates of the village, even though there was no enemy in sight. Tarzan used the loud noise of the gunfire to take aim at the crowd below him.
No one heard his shot above the din of rattling musketry in the street, but some who were standing close saw one of their number crumple suddenly to the earth. When they leaned over him he was dead. They were panic-stricken, and it took all the brutal authority of the Arabs to keep the Manyuema from rushing helter-skelter into the jungle—anywhere to escape from this terrible village.
No one heard his gunshot over the noise of the gunfire in the street, but some who were nearby saw one of their group suddenly collapse to the ground. When they leaned over him, he was dead. They were filled with panic, and it took all the harsh authority of the Arabs to prevent the Manyuema from frantically fleeing into the jungle—anywhere to escape from this horrific village.
After a time they commenced to quiet down, and as no further mysterious deaths occurred among them they took heart again. But it was a short-lived respite, for just as they had concluded that they would not be disturbed again Tarzan gave voice to a weird moan, and as the raiders looked up in the direction from which the sound seemed to come, the ape-man, who stood swinging the dead body of the sentry gently to and fro, suddenly shot the corpse far out above their heads.
After a while, they started to calm down, and since there were no more mysterious deaths among them, they felt reassured again. But it was a brief break, because just as they thought they wouldn't be bothered again, Tarzan let out an eerie moan. When the raiders glanced up toward the source of the sound, the ape-man, who was swinging the dead body of the sentry back and forth, suddenly hurled the corpse high above their heads.
With howls of alarm the throng broke in all directions to escape this new and terrible creature who seemed to be springing upon them. To their fear-distorted imaginations the body of the sentry, falling with wide-sprawled arms and legs, assumed the likeness of a great beast of prey. In their anxiety to escape, many of the blacks scaled the palisade, while others tore down the bars from the gates and rushed madly across the clearing toward the jungle.
With screams of panic, the crowd scattered in all directions to flee from this new and terrifying creature that appeared to be lunging at them. Their fear-fueled imaginations transformed the sentry’s body, sprawled with arms and legs wide, into the shape of a massive predator. In their rush to get away, many of the locals climbed over the palisade, while others ripped the bars from the gates and hurried frantically across the clearing toward the jungle.
For a time no one turned back toward the thing that had frightened them, but Tarzan knew that they would in a moment, and when they discovered that it was but the dead body of their sentry, while they would doubtless be still further terrified, he had a rather definite idea as to what they would do, and so he faded silently away toward the south, taking the moonlit upper terrace back toward the camp of the Waziri.
For a while, no one looked back at what had scared them, but Tarzan knew they would soon. When they realized it was just the dead body of their guard, they would definitely be even more terrified. He had a good idea of what they would do next, so he quietly slipped away to the south, taking the moonlit upper terrace back to the Waziri camp.
Presently one of the Arabs turned and saw that the thing that had leaped from the tree upon them lay still and quiet where it had fallen in the center of the village street. Cautiously he crept back toward it until he saw that it was but a man. A moment later he was beside the figure, and in another had recognized it as the corpse of the Manyuema who had stood on guard at the village gate.
Currently, one of the Arabs turned and saw that the thing that had jumped down from the tree onto them lay still and quiet where it had fallen in the middle of the village street. Carefully, he crept back toward it until he realized it was just a man. A moment later, he was next to the figure, and in another moment, he recognized it as the body of the Manyuema who had been standing guard at the village gate.
His companions rapidly gathered around at his call, and after a moment’s excited conversation they did precisely what Tarzan had reasoned they would. Raising their guns to their shoulders, they poured volley after volley into the tree from which the corpse had been thrown—had Tarzan remained there he would have been riddled by a hundred bullets.
His friends quickly gathered around at his call, and after a brief, animated discussion, they did exactly what Tarzan had expected. Raising their guns to their shoulders, they fired shot after shot into the tree from which the body had been thrown—if Tarzan had stayed there, he would have been hit by a hundred bullets.
When the Arabs and Manyuema discovered that the only marks of violence upon the body of their dead comrade were giant finger prints upon his swollen throat they were again thrown into deeper apprehension and despair. That they were not even safe within a palisaded village at night came as a distinct shock to them. That an enemy could enter into the midst of their camp and kill their sentry with bare hands seemed outside the bounds of reason, and so the superstitious Manyuema commenced to attribute their ill luck to supernatural causes; nor were the Arabs able to offer any better explanation.
When the Arabs and Manyuema found that the only signs of violence on their dead comrade were huge fingerprints on his swollen throat, they sank even deeper into fear and despair. The realization that they weren't even safe in a fenced village at night struck them as a harsh shock. The idea that an enemy could sneak into their camp and kill their guard with bare hands felt beyond belief, leading the superstitious Manyuema to blame their bad luck on supernatural forces; the Arabs had no better explanation to offer either.
With at least fifty of their number flying through the black jungle, and without the slightest knowledge of when their uncanny foemen might resume the cold-blooded slaughter they had commenced, it was a desperate band of cut-throats that waited sleeplessly for the dawn. Only on the promise of the Arabs that they would leave the village at daybreak, and hasten onward toward their own land, would the remaining Manyuema consent to stay at the village a moment longer. Not even fear of their cruel masters was sufficient to overcome this new terror.
With at least fifty of them flying through the dark jungle, and having no idea when their eerie enemies might start the brutal killing again, it was a desperate group of toughs that waited restless for dawn. Only because the Arabs promised to leave the village at daybreak and hurry back to their own territory would the remaining Manyuema agree to stay in the village even a moment longer. Not even the fear of their cruel masters was enough to overcome this new terror.
And so it was that when Tarzan and his warriors returned to the attack the next morning they found the raiders prepared to march out of the village. The Manyuema were laden with stolen ivory. As Tarzan saw it he grinned, for he knew that they would not carry it far. Then he saw something which caused him anxiety—a number of the Manyuema were lighting torches in the remnant of the camp-fire. They were about to fire the village.
And so it was that when Tarzan and his warriors came back to attack the next morning, they found the raiders ready to leave the village. The Manyuema were loaded down with stolen ivory. When Tarzan saw this, he grinned, knowing they wouldn't be able to carry it far. Then he noticed something that worried him—a bunch of the Manyuema were lighting torches on what was left of the campfire. They were about to set the village on fire.
Tarzan was perched in a tall tree some hundred yards from the palisade. Making a trumpet of his hands, he called loudly in the Arab tongue: “Do not fire the huts, or we shall kill you all! Do not fire the huts, or we shall kill you all!”
Tarzan was sitting high up in a tree about a hundred yards from the barricade. Cupping his hands to amplify his voice, he shouted in Arabic: “Don’t set the huts on fire, or we’ll kill you all! Don’t set the huts on fire, or we’ll kill you all!”
A dozen times he repeated it. The Manyuema hesitated, then one of them flung his torch into the campfire. The others were about to do the same when an Arab sprung upon them with a stick, beating them toward the huts. Tarzan could see that he was commanding them to fire the little thatched dwellings. Then he stood erect upon the swaying branch a hundred feet above the ground, and, raising one of the Arab guns to his shoulder, took careful aim and fired. With the report the Arab who was urging on his men to burn the village fell in his tracks, and the Manyuema threw away their torches and fled from the village. The last Tarzan saw of them they were racing toward the jungle, while their former masters knelt upon the ground and fired at them.
He repeated it a dozen times. The Manyuema hesitated, and then one of them tossed his torch into the campfire. The others were about to do the same when an Arab jumped at them with a stick, pushing them toward the huts. Tarzan could see he was commanding them to set fire to the small thatched houses. Then he stood tall on the swaying branch a hundred feet above the ground, raised one of the Arab guns to his shoulder, took careful aim, and fired. At the sound of the gunshot, the Arab who had been urging his men to burn the village fell to the ground, and the Manyuema discarded their torches and fled the village. The last Tarzan saw of them, they were sprinting toward the jungle while their former masters knelt on the ground and fired at them.
But however angry the Arabs might have been at the insubordination of their slaves, they were at least convinced that it would be the better part of wisdom to forego the pleasure of firing the village that had given them two such nasty receptions. In their hearts, however, they swore to return again with such force as would enable them to sweep the entire country for miles around, until no vestige of human life remained.
But no matter how angry the Arabs were at their slaves' disobedience, they believed it was wiser to skip the satisfaction of burning down the village that had given them two unpleasant welcomes. Deep down, though, they vowed to come back with such strength that they would clear the entire region for miles around, leaving no trace of human life behind.
They had looked in vain for the owner of the voice which had frightened off the men who had been detailed to put the torch to the huts, but not even the keenest eye among them had been able to locate him. They had seen the puff of smoke from the tree following the shot that brought down the Arab, but, though a volley had immediately been loosed into its foliage, there had been no indication that it had been effective.
They searched in vain for the person whose voice had scared off the men assigned to set the huts on fire, but even the sharpest observer among them couldn't find him. They had noticed the puff of smoke from the tree after the shot that took down the Arab, but even though they had immediately fired a volley into the leaves, there was no sign that it had done any damage.
Tarzan was too intelligent to be caught in any such trap, and so the report of his shot had scarcely died away before the ape-man was on the ground and racing for another tree a hundred yards away. Here he again found a suitable perch from which he could watch the preparations of the raiders. It occurred to him that he might have considerable more fun with them, so again he called to them through his improvised trumpet.
Tarzan was too smart to get caught in any trap like that, and just as the sound of his shot faded, the ape-man was already on the ground and sprinting toward another tree a hundred yards away. There, he found another good spot to watch the raiders as they prepared. It crossed his mind that he could have a lot more fun with them, so he called out to them again using his makeshift trumpet.
“Leave the ivory!” he cried. “Leave the ivory! Dead men have no use for ivory!”
“Leave the ivory!” he shouted. “Leave the ivory! Dead people don’t need ivory!”
Some of the Manyuema started to lay down their loads, but this was altogether too much for the avaricious Arabs. With loud shouts and curses they aimed their guns full upon the bearers, threatening instant death to any who might lay down his load. They could give up firing the village, but the thought of abandoning this enormous fortune in ivory was quite beyond their conception—better death than that.
Some of the Manyuema began to drop their loads, but this was way too much for the greedy Arabs. With loud shouts and curses, they pointed their guns directly at the bearers, threatening instant death to anyone who dared to set down their load. They could stop shooting at the village, but the idea of leaving behind this huge fortune in ivory was completely unimaginable to them—death was better than that.
And so they marched out of the village of the Waziri, and on the shoulders of their slaves was the ivory ransom of a score of kings. Toward the north they marched, back toward their savage settlement in the wild and unknown country which lies back from the Kongo in the uttermost depths of The Great Forest, and on either side of them traveled an invisible and relentless foe.
And so they marched out of the village of the Waziri, carrying on the shoulders of their slaves the ivory ransom from twenty kings. They headed north, back toward their primitive settlement in the wild, uncharted land that lies behind the Kongo in the furthest reaches of The Great Forest, while an unseen and relentless enemy trailed them on either side.
Under Tarzan’s guidance the black Waziri warriors stationed themselves along the trail on either side in the densest underbrush. They stood at far intervals, and, as the column passed, a single arrow or a heavy spear, well aimed, would pierce a Manyuema or an Arab. Then the Waziri would melt into the distance and run ahead to take his stand farther on. They did not strike unless success were sure and the danger of detection almost nothing, and so the arrows and the spears were few and far between, but so persistent and inevitable that the slow-moving column of heavy-laden raiders was in a constant state of panic—panic at the uncertainty of who the next would be to fall, and when.
Under Tarzan’s guidance, the black Waziri warriors positioned themselves along the trail on either side in the thickest brush. They were spaced out, and as the group moved past, a single arrow or a well-aimed spear would strike down a Manyuema or an Arab. Then the Waziri would disappear into the distance and run ahead to find another spot to take cover. They only attacked when success was guaranteed and the risk of being detected was minimal, so the arrows and spears were infrequent but so relentless and unavoidable that the slowly moving group of heavily loaded raiders remained in a constant state of panic—panic at the uncertainty of who would be next to fall, and when.
It was with the greatest difficulty that the Arabs prevented their men a dozen times from throwing away their burdens and fleeing like frightened rabbits up the trail toward the north. And so the day wore on—a frightful nightmare of a day for the raiders—a day of weary but well-repaid work for the Waziri. At night the Arabs constructed a rude boma in a little clearing by a river, and went into camp.
It was incredibly hard for the Arabs to stop their men from abandoning their loads and running away like scared rabbits up the northern trail. And so the day dragged on—a terrifying nightmare for the raiders—a day of tiring but rewarding work for the Waziri. At night, the Arabs built a simple boma in a small clearing by a river and set up camp.
At intervals during the night a rifle would bark close above their heads, and one of the dozen sentries which they now had posted would tumble to the ground. Such a condition was insupportable, for they saw that by means of these hideous tactics they would be completely wiped out, one by one, without inflicting a single death upon their enemy. But yet, with the persistent avariciousness of the white man, the Arabs clung to their loot, and when morning came forced the demoralized Manyuema to take up their burdens of death and stagger on into the jungle.
At intervals during the night, a gunshot would echo close overhead, and one of the many sentries they had posted would drop to the ground. This situation was unbearable, as they realized that through these brutal tactics, they would be wiped out one by one, without harming a single enemy. But still, driven by the unrelenting greed of the white man, the Arabs held on to their spoils, and when morning arrived, they compelled the demoralized Manyuema to pick up their burdens of death and stagger into the jungle.
For three days the withering column kept up its frightful march. Each hour was marked by its deadly arrow or cruel spear. The nights were made hideous by the barking of the invisible gun that made sentry duty equivalent to a death sentence.
For three days, the exhausted group continued its terrifying march. Every hour was marked by its deadly arrow or cruel spear. The nights were terrifying because of the sound of the unseen gun, which made standing guard feel like a death sentence.
On the morning of the fourth day the Arabs were compelled to shoot two of their blacks before they could compel the balance to take up the hated ivory, and as they did so a voice rang out, clear and strong, from the jungle: “Today you die, oh, Manyuema, unless you lay down the ivory. Fall upon your cruel masters and kill them! You have guns, why do you not use them? Kill the Arabs, and we will not harm you. We will take you back to our village and feed you, and lead you out of our country in safety and in peace. Lay down the ivory, and fall upon your masters—we will help you. Else you die!”
On the morning of the fourth day, the Arabs had to shoot two of their black captives before they could force the others to pick up the hated ivory. As they did, a voice echoed from the jungle, clear and powerful: “Today you die, oh Manyuema, unless you drop the ivory. Rise up against your cruel masters and kill them! You have guns; why aren’t you using them? Kill the Arabs, and we won’t harm you. We’ll take you back to our village, feed you, and lead you out of our country safely and peacefully. Drop the ivory and rebel against your masters—we’ll help you. Otherwise, you will die!”
As the voice died down the raiders stood as though turned to stone. The Arabs eyed their Manyuema slaves; the slaves looked first at one of their fellows, and then at another—they were but waiting for some one to take the initiative. There were some thirty Arabs left, and about one hundred and fifty blacks. All were armed—even those who were acting as porters had their rifles slung across their backs.
As the voice faded away, the raiders stood frozen like statues. The Arabs glanced at their Manyuema slaves; the slaves looked at one another, just waiting for someone to make a move. There were around thirty Arabs left and about one hundred and fifty blacks. Everyone was armed—even those acting as porters had rifles slung over their backs.
The Arabs drew together. The sheik ordered the Manyuema to take up the march, and as he spoke he cocked his rifle and raised it. But at the same instant one of the blacks threw down his load, and, snatching his rifle from his back, fired point-blank at the group of Arabs. In an instant the camp was a cursing, howling mass of demons, fighting with guns and knives and pistols. The Arabs stood together, and defended their lives valiantly, but with the rain of lead that poured upon them from their own slaves, and the shower of arrows and spears which now leaped from the surrounding jungle aimed solely at them, there was little question from the first what the outcome would be. In ten minutes from the time the first porter had thrown down his load the last of the Arabs lay dead.
The Arabs gathered together. The sheik told the Manyuema to start marching, and as he spoke, he cocked his rifle and raised it. But at that moment, one of the black men dropped his load, grabbed his rifle from his back, and fired directly at the group of Arabs. In an instant, the camp erupted into a chaotic mass of curses and screams, with people fighting using guns, knives, and pistols. The Arabs stood their ground and defended themselves bravely, but with the hail of bullets coming from their own slaves and a flurry of arrows and spears raining down from the surrounding jungle aimed solely at them, it was clear from the start what the outcome would be. Within ten minutes of the first porter throwing down his load, the last of the Arabs lay dead.
When the firing had ceased Tarzan spoke again to the Manyuema:
When the shooting stopped, Tarzan spoke again to the Manyuema:
“Take up our ivory, and return it to our village, from whence you stole it. We shall not harm you.”
“Take our ivory back and return it to our village, where you took it from. We won’t hurt you.”
For a moment the Manyuema hesitated. They had no stomach to retrace that difficult three days’ trail. They talked together in low whispers, and one turned toward the jungle, calling aloud to the voice that had spoken to them from out of the foliage.
For a moment, the Manyuema hesitated. They didn't want to go back over that tough three-day trail. They spoke to each other in hushed tones, and one of them faced the jungle, calling out to the voice that had come from the trees.
“How do we know that when you have us in your village you will not kill us all?” he asked.
“How do we know that when you have us in your village, you won't kill us all?” he asked.
“You do not know,” replied Tarzan, “other than that we have promised not to harm you if you will return our ivory to us. But this you do know, that it lies within our power to kill you all if you do not return as we direct, and are we not more likely to do so if you anger us than if you do as we bid?”
“You don’t know,” replied Tarzan, “other than that we’ve promised not to harm you if you return our ivory to us. But you do know that we have the power to kill you all if you don’t come back as we’ve instructed, and aren’t we more likely to do that if you anger us than if you just do as we ask?”
“Who are you that speaks the tongue of our Arab masters?” cried the Manyuema spokesman. “Let us see you, and then we shall give you our answer.”
“Who are you that speaks the language of our Arab masters?” shouted the Manyuema spokesperson. “Show yourself, and then we will give you our answer.”
Tarzan stepped out of the jungle a dozen paces from them.
Tarzan stepped out of the jungle a few steps away from them.
“Look!” he said. When they saw that he was white they were filled with awe, for never had they seen a white savage before, and at his great muscles and giant frame they were struck with wonder and admiration.
“Look!” he said. When they saw that he was white, they were filled with awe, for they had never seen a white savage before, and they were amazed and impressed by his huge muscles and towering stature.
“You may trust me,” said Tarzan. “So long as you do as I tell you, and harm none of my people, we shall do you no hurt. Will you take up our ivory and return in peace to our village, or shall we follow along your trail toward the north as we have followed for the past three days?”
“You can trust me,” Tarzan said. “As long as you follow my instructions and don’t harm any of my people, we won’t hurt you. Will you take our ivory and go back to your village in peace, or should we continue following your tracks north like we have for the last three days?”
The recollection of the horrid days that had just passed was the thing that finally decided the Manyuema, and so, after a short conference, they took up their burdens and set off to retrace their steps toward the village of the Waziri. At the end of the third day they marched into the village gate, and were greeted by the survivors of the recent massacre, to whom Tarzan had sent a messenger in their temporary camp to the south on the day that the raiders had quitted the village, telling them that they might return in safety.
The memory of the terrifying days that had just passed finally pushed the Manyuema to act. After a brief discussion, they picked up their things and headed back to the village of the Waziri. By the end of the third day, they arrived at the village gate and were welcomed by the survivors of the recent massacre. Tarzan had sent a messenger to their temporary camp in the south the day the raiders left the village, letting them know they could return safely.
It took all the mastery and persuasion that Tarzan possessed to prevent the Waziri falling on the Manyuema tooth and nail, and tearing them to pieces, but when he had explained that he had given his word that they would not be molested if they carried the ivory back to the spot from which they had stolen it, and had further impressed upon his people that they owed their entire victory to him, they finally acceded to his demands, and allowed the cannibals to rest in peace within their palisade.
It took all of Tarzan's skill and convincing to stop the Waziri from attacking the Manyuema violently and ripping them apart. However, once he explained that he had promised they wouldn’t be harmed if they brought the ivory back to where they had taken it, and made it clear to his people that their victory was entirely thanks to him, they eventually agreed to his requests and let the cannibals rest in peace within their enclosure.
That night the village warriors held a big palaver to celebrate their victories, and to choose a new chief. Since old Waziri’s death Tarzan had been directing the warriors in battle, and the temporary command had been tacitly conceded to him. There had been no time to choose a new chief from among their own number, and, in fact, so remarkably successful had they been under the ape-man’s generalship that they had had no wish to delegate the supreme authority to another for fear that what they already had gained might be lost. They had so recently seen the results of running counter to this savage white man’s advice in the disastrous charge ordered by Waziri, in which he himself had died, that it had not been difficult for them to accept Tarzan’s authority as final.
That night, the village warriors gathered for a big meeting to celebrate their victories and choose a new chief. Since old Waziri's death, Tarzan had been leading the warriors in battle, and they had implicitly accepted his temporary command. There hadn't been time to elect a new chief from among their ranks, and, in fact, they had been so successful under the ape-man's leadership that they didn’t want to hand over power to someone else for fear of losing what they had achieved. They had just witnessed the consequences of ignoring this savage white man's advice during the disastrous charge ordered by Waziri, in which he lost his life, making it easy for them to accept Tarzan's authority as final.
The principal warriors sat in a circle about a small fire to discuss the relative merits of whomever might be suggested as old Waziri’s successor. It was Busuli who spoke first:
The main warriors gathered in a circle around a small fire to talk about the pros and cons of anyone who might be proposed as old Waziri's successor. It was Busuli who spoke first:
“Since Waziri is dead, leaving no son, there is but one among us whom we know from experience is fitted to make us a good king. There is only one who has proved that he can successfully lead us against the guns of the white man, and bring us easy victory without the loss of a single life. There is only one, and that is the white man who has led us for the past few days,” and Busuli sprang to his feet, and with uplifted spear and half-bent, crouching body commenced to dance slowly about Tarzan, chanting in time to his steps: “Waziri, king of the Waziri; Waziri, killer of Arabs; Waziri, king of the Waziri.”
“Since Waziri is dead and has no son, there’s only one among us who we know from experience is capable of being a good king. There’s only one who has shown he can lead us against the guns of the white man and bring us an easy victory without losing a single life. There’s only one, and that’s the white man who has led us for the past few days.” Then Busuli jumped to his feet, raised his spear, and with his body bent and crouched, started to dance slowly around Tarzan, chanting in rhythm with his steps: “Waziri, king of the Waziri; Waziri, killer of Arabs; Waziri, king of the Waziri.”
One by one the other warriors signified their acceptance of Tarzan as their king by joining in the solemn dance. The women came and squatted about the rim of the circle, beating upon tom-toms, clapping their hands in time to the steps of the dancers, and joining in the chant of the warriors. In the center of the circle sat Tarzan of the Apes—Waziri, king of the Waziri, for, like his predecessor, he was to take the name of his tribe as his own.
One by one, the other warriors showed their support for Tarzan as their king by joining in the solemn dance. The women gathered around the edge of the circle, playing the drums, clapping their hands to the rhythm of the dancers, and singing along with the warriors. In the center of the circle sat Tarzan of the Apes—Waziri, king of the Waziri, because, like his predecessor, he would take the name of his tribe as his own.
Faster and faster grew the pace of the dancers, louder and louder their wild and savage shouts. The women rose and fell in unison, shrieking now at the tops of their voices. The spears were brandishing fiercely, and as the dancers stooped down and beat their shields upon the hard-tramped earth of the village street the whole sight was as terribly primeval and savage as though it were being staged in the dim dawn of humanity, countless ages in the past.
Faster and faster the dancers moved, their wild and fierce shouts getting louder. The women rose and fell together, now screaming at the top of their lungs. The spears were waved fiercely, and as the dancers bent down and struck their shields against the hard-packed earth of the village street, the whole scene felt as primal and savage as if it were happening in the early days of humanity, ages ago.
As the excitement waxed the ape-man sprang to his feet and joined in the wild ceremony. In the center of the circle of glittering black bodies he leaped and roared and shook his heavy spear in the same mad abandon that enthralled his fellow savages. The last remnant of his civilization was forgotten—he was a primitive man to the fullest now; reveling in the freedom of the fierce, wild life he loved, gloating in his kingship among these wild blacks.
As the excitement grew, the ape-man jumped to his feet and joined in the wild celebration. In the center of the circle of shimmering black bodies, he leaped and roared, shaking his heavy spear with the same wild abandon that captivated his fellow savages. The last trace of his civilization was forgotten—he was a true primitive man now, reveling in the freedom of the fierce, wild life he loved, basking in his kingship among these wild individuals.
Ah, if Olga de Coude had but seen him then—could she have recognized the well-dressed, quiet young man whose well-bred face and irreproachable manners had so captivated her but a few short months ago? And Jane Porter! Would she have still loved this savage warrior chieftain, dancing naked among his naked savage subjects? And D’Arnot! Could D’Arnot have believed that this was the same man he had introduced into half a dozen of the most select clubs of Paris? What would his fellow peers in the House of Lords have said had one pointed to this dancing giant, with his barbaric headdress and his metal ornaments, and said: “There, my lords, is John Clayton, Lord Greystoke.”
Ah, if Olga de Coude had just seen him then—could she have recognized the well-dressed, quiet young man whose polished looks and perfect manners had charmed her just a few months ago? And Jane Porter! Would she still have loved this wild warrior chieftain, dancing naked among his equally naked tribal subjects? And D’Arnot! Could D’Arnot have believed that this was the same man he had taken to several of the most exclusive clubs in Paris? What would his peers in the House of Lords have said if one had pointed to this dancing giant, with his tribal headdress and metal ornaments, and remarked: “There, my lords, is John Clayton, Lord Greystoke.”
And so Tarzan of the Apes came into a real kingship among men—slowly but surely was he following the evolution of his ancestors, for had he not started at the very bottom?
And so Tarzan of the Apes came into a true kingship among men—slowly but surely he was following the evolution of his ancestors, since he had started at the very bottom.
Chapter XVIII
The Lottery of Death
Jane Porter had been the first of those in the lifeboat to awaken the morning after the wreck of the Lady Alice. The other members of the party were asleep upon the thwarts or huddled in cramped positions in the bottom of the boat.
Jane Porter was the first in the lifeboat to wake up the morning after the wreck of the Lady Alice. The others in the group were still asleep on the seats or curled up in tight spots at the bottom of the boat.
When the girl realized that they had become separated from the other boats she was filled with alarm. The sense of utter loneliness and helplessness which the vast expanse of deserted ocean aroused in her was so depressing that, from the first, contemplation of the future held not the slightest ray of promise for her. She was confident that they were lost—lost beyond possibility of succor.
When the girl realized they had drifted away from the other boats, she was overwhelmed with fear. The sheer loneliness and helplessness that the vast empty ocean made her feel was so disheartening that, from the start, thinking about the future brought her no hope at all. She was sure that they were lost—lost with no chance of help.
Presently Clayton awoke. It was several minutes before he could gather his senses sufficiently to realize where he was, or recall the disaster of the previous night. Finally his bewildered eyes fell upon the girl.
Presently, Clayton woke up. It took him several minutes to gather his senses enough to understand where he was or remember the disaster of the previous night. Eventually, his confused eyes landed on the girl.
“Jane!” he cried. “Thank God that we are together!”
“Jane!” he shouted. “Thank God we’re together!”
“Look,” said the girl dully, indicating the horizon with an apathetic gesture. “We are all alone.”
“Look,” the girl said flatly, pointing toward the horizon with a disinterested gesture. “We’re all alone.”
Clayton scanned the water in every direction.
Clayton looked around the water in all directions.
“Where can they be?” he cried. “They cannot have gone down, for there has been no sea, and they were afloat after the yacht sank—I saw them all.”
“Where could they be?” he exclaimed. “They can’t have gone down, because there hasn’t been any sea, and they were floating after the yacht sank—I saw them all.”
He awoke the other members of the party, and explained their plight.
He woke up the other members of the group and explained their situation.
“It is just as well that the boats are scattered, sir,” said one of the sailors. “They are all provisioned, so that they do not need each other on that score, and should a storm blow up they could be of no service to one another even if they were together, but scattered about the ocean there is a much better chance that one at least will be picked up, and then a search will be at once started for the others. Were we together there would be but one chance of rescue, where now there may be four.”
“It’s a good thing the boats are spaced out, sir,” said one of the sailors. “They’re all stocked with supplies, so they don’t rely on each other for that, and if a storm hits, they wouldn’t be able to help each other even if they were together. But scattered across the ocean, at least one has a better chance of being found, and then a search can quickly start for the others. If we were together, we’d only have one chance of rescue, but now we might have four.”
They saw the wisdom of his philosophy, and were cheered by it, but their joy was short-lived, for when it was decided that they should row steadily toward the east and the continent, it was discovered that the sailors who had been at the only two oars with which the boat had been provided had fallen asleep at their work, and allowed both to slip into the sea, nor were they in sight anywhere upon the water.
They recognized the value of his ideas and felt uplifted by them, but their happiness was brief. When it was decided they should row steadily toward the east and the mainland, they found that the sailors who were at the only two oars the boat had were fast asleep on the job, and both oars had slipped into the sea. They weren't in sight anywhere on the water.
During the angry words and recriminations which followed the sailors nearly came to blows, but Clayton succeeded in quieting them; though a moment later Monsieur Thuran almost precipitated another row by making a nasty remark about the stupidity of all Englishmen, and especially English sailors.
During the heated exchange and accusations that followed, the sailors nearly came to blows, but Clayton managed to calm them down; however, a moment later, Monsieur Thuran nearly sparked another fight by making a rude comment about the foolishness of all Englishmen, especially English sailors.
“Come, come, mates,” spoke up one of the men, Tompkins, who had taken no part in the altercation, “shootin’ off our bloomin’ mugs won’t get us nothin’. As Spider ’ere said afore, we’ll all bloody well be picked up, anyway, sez ’e, so wot’s the use o’ squabblin’? Let’s eat, sez I.”
“Come on, guys,” spoke up one of the men, Tompkins, who hadn’t been involved in the argument, “yelling at each other isn’t going to get us anywhere. As Spider here said before, we’ll all definitely get caught anyway, so what’s the point of fighting? Let’s eat, I say.”
“That’s not a bad idea,” said Monsieur Thuran, and then, turning to the third sailor, Wilson, he said: “Pass one of those tins aft, my good man.”
"That's not a bad idea," said Monsieur Thuran, and then, turning to the third sailor, Wilson, he said: "Pass one of those tins back here, my good man."
“Fetch it yerself,” retorted Wilson sullenly. “I ain’t a-takin’ no orders from no—furriner—you ain’t captain o’ this ship yet.”
“Get it yourself,” Wilson replied gloomily. “I’m not taking orders from some—foreigner—you’re not captain of this ship yet.”
The result was that Clayton himself had to get the tin, and then another angry altercation ensued when one of the sailors accused Clayton and Monsieur Thuran of conspiring to control the provisions so that they could have the lion’s share.
The result was that Clayton had to go get the tin himself, and then another heated argument broke out when one of the sailors accused Clayton and Monsieur Thuran of working together to control the supplies so they could take the biggest portion.
“Some one should take command of this boat,” spoke up Jane Porter, thoroughly disgusted with the disgraceful wrangling that had marked the very opening of a forced companionship that might last for many days. “It is terrible enough to be alone in a frail boat on the Atlantic, without having the added misery and danger of constant bickering and brawling among the members of our party. You men should elect a leader, and then abide by his decisions in all matters. There is greater need for strict discipline here than there is upon a well-ordered ship.”
“Someone needs to take charge of this boat,” Jane Porter said, completely fed up with the shameful arguing that had started their forced companionship, which could last for days. “It’s bad enough being alone in a fragile boat on the Atlantic, without adding the misery and danger of constant fighting among our group. You guys should choose a leader and stick to their decisions on everything. We need strict discipline here more than we would on a properly run ship.”
She had hoped before she voiced her sentiments that it would not be necessary for her to enter into the transaction at all, for she believed that Clayton was amply able to cope with every emergency, but she had to admit that so far at least he had shown no greater promise of successfully handling the situation than any of the others, though he had at least refrained from adding in any way to the unpleasantness, even going so far as to give up the tin to the sailors when they objected to its being opened by him.
She had hoped that before expressing her feelings, she wouldn’t have to get involved at all, since she believed Clayton was more than capable of handling any situation. However, she had to admit that up to that point, he hadn’t shown any more promise of managing things successfully than anyone else. At least he hadn’t added to the tension, even going so far as to hand over the tin to the sailors when they complained about him opening it.
The girl’s words temporarily quieted the men, and finally it was decided that the two kegs of water and the four tins of food should be divided into two parts, one-half going forward to the three sailors to do with as they saw best, and the balance aft to the three passengers.
The girl's words momentarily silenced the men, and it was eventually agreed that the two kegs of water and the four cans of food would be split into two parts, with half going to the three sailors to use as they thought best, and the rest going to the three passengers.
Thus was the little company divided into two camps, and when the provisions had been apportioned each immediately set to work to open and distribute food and water. The sailors were the first to get one of the tins of “food” open, and their curses of rage and disappointment caused Clayton to ask what the trouble might be.
Thus, the small group split into two camps, and once the supplies had been divided, everyone quickly began to unpack and share food and water. The sailors were the first to get one of the tins of “food” open, and their angry curses of frustration made Clayton ask what the problem was.
“Trouble!” shrieked Spider. “Trouble! It’s worse than trouble—it’s death! This—-tin is full of coal oil!”
“Trouble!” screamed Spider. “Trouble! It’s worse than trouble—it’s death! This—tin is full of coal oil!”
Hastily now Clayton and Monsieur Thuran tore open one of theirs, only to learn the hideous truth that it also contained, not food, but coal oil. One after another the four tins on board were opened. And as the contents of each became known howls of anger announced the grim truth—there was not an ounce of food upon the boat.
Hastily, Clayton and Monsieur Thuran ripped open one of their tins, only to discover the ugly truth that it didn't contain food, but coal oil. One by one, the four tins on board were opened. As the contents of each were revealed, howls of anger signaled the grim reality—there wasn't a single ounce of food on the boat.
“Well, thank Gawd it wasn’t the water,” cried Thompkins. “It’s easier to get along without food than it is without water. We can eat our shoes if worse comes to worst, but we couldn’t drink ’em.”
“Well, thank God it wasn’t the water,” cried Thompkins. “It’s easier to get by without food than it is without water. We can eat our shoes if it gets really bad, but we can’t drink them.”
As he spoke Wilson had been boring a hole in one of the water kegs, and as Spider held a tin cup he tilted the keg to pour a draft of the precious fluid. A thin stream of blackish, dry particles filtered slowly through the tiny aperture into the bottom of the cup. With a groan Wilson dropped the keg, and sat staring at the dry stuff in the cup, speechless with horror.
As he spoke, Wilson had been drilling a hole in one of the water kegs, and as Spider held a tin cup, he tilted the keg to pour a drink of the precious liquid. A thin stream of dark, dry particles trickled slowly through the small opening into the bottom of the cup. With a groan, Wilson dropped the keg and sat staring at the dry material in the cup, speechless with horror.
“The kegs are filled with gunpowder,” said Spider, in a low tone, turning to those aft. And so it proved when the last had been opened.
“The kegs are packed with gunpowder,” said Spider in a low voice, turning to those in the back. And it turned out to be true when the last one was opened.
“Coal oil and gunpowder!” cried Monsieur Thuran. “Sapristi! What a diet for shipwrecked mariners!”
“Coal oil and gunpowder!” shouted Monsieur Thuran. “Sapristi! What a meal for shipwrecked sailors!”
With the full knowledge that there was neither food nor water on board, the pangs of hunger and thirst became immediately aggravated, and so on the first day of their tragic adventure real suffering commenced in grim earnest, and the full horrors of shipwreck were upon them.
With the complete awareness that there was no food or water on board, the feelings of hunger and thirst quickly intensified, and so on the first day of their tragic journey, real suffering began in a serious way, and the full horrors of shipwreck hit them.
As the days passed conditions became horrible. Aching eyes scanned the horizon day and night until the weak and weary watchers would sink exhausted to the bottom of the boat, and there wrest in dream-disturbed slumber a moment’s respite from the horrors of the waking reality.
As the days went by, the situation became terrible. Tired eyes scanned the horizon day and night until the weak and weary watchers would collapse from exhaustion to the bottom of the boat, where they would wrestle in restless sleep for a brief escape from the nightmares of reality.
The sailors, goaded by the remorseless pangs of hunger, had eaten their leather belts, their shoes, the sweatbands from their caps, although both Clayton and Monsieur Thuran had done their best to convince them that these would only add to the suffering they were enduring.
The sailors, driven by relentless hunger, had eaten their leather belts, their shoes, the sweatbands from their caps, even though both Clayton and Monsieur Thuran tried their best to convince them that these would only make their suffering worse.
Weak and hopeless, the entire party lay beneath the pitiless tropic sun, with parched lips and swollen tongues, waiting for the death they were beginning to crave. The intense suffering of the first few days had become deadened for the three passengers who had eaten nothing, but the agony of the sailors was pitiful, as their weak and impoverished stomachs attempted to cope with the bits of leather with which they had filled them. Tompkins was the first to succumb. Just a week from the day the Lady Alice went down the sailor died horribly in frightful convulsions.
Weak and hopeless, the whole group lay under the relentless tropical sun, with dry lips and swollen tongues, waiting for the death they were starting to long for. The intense suffering of the first few days had faded for the three passengers who hadn’t eaten anything, but the suffering of the sailors was heartbreaking, as their weak and empty stomachs tried to handle the scraps of leather they had forced down. Tompkins was the first to give in. Just a week after the day the Lady Alice sank, the sailor died in terrifying convulsions.
For hours his contorted and hideous features lay grinning back at those in the stern of the little boat, until Jane Porter could endure the sight no longer. “Can you not drop his body overboard, William?” she asked.
For hours, his twisted and ugly face kept grinning back at those in the back of the small boat, until Jane Porter could no longer stand the sight. “Can you just throw his body overboard, William?” she asked.
Clayton rose and staggered toward the corpse. The two remaining sailors eyed him with a strange, baleful light in their sunken orbs. Futilely the Englishman tried to lift the corpse over the side of the boat, but his strength was not equal to the task.
Clayton stood up and stumbled toward the body. The two sailors left watched him with a strange, ominous glare in their hollow eyes. The Englishman made a futile attempt to lift the body over the side of the boat, but he didn't have the strength for it.
“Lend me a hand here, please,” he said to Wilson, who lay nearest him.
“Could you help me out here, please?” he said to Wilson, who was lying closest to him.
“Wot do you want to throw ’im over for?” questioned the sailor, in a querulous voice.
"W. What do you want to throw him over for?" asked the sailor in a whiny voice.
“We’ve got to before we’re too weak to do it,” replied Clayton. “He’d be awful by tomorrow, after a day under that broiling sun.”
“We need to do this before we get too weak,” Clayton replied. “He’ll be in really bad shape by tomorrow after a day under that scorching sun.”
“Better leave well enough alone,” grumbled Wilson. “We may need him before tomorrow.”
“It's better to leave things as they are,” Wilson muttered. “We might need him before tomorrow.”
Slowly the meaning of the man’s words percolated into Clayton’s understanding. At last he realized the fellow’s reason for objecting to the disposal of the dead man.
Slowly, the meaning of the man's words sank into Clayton's understanding. Finally, he realized the guy's reason for objecting to the handling of the dead man.
“God!” whispered Clayton, in a horrified tone. “You don’t mean—”
“God!” Clayton whispered, his voice filled with horror. “You don’t mean—”
“W’y not?” growled Wilson. “Ain’t we gotta live? He’s dead,” he added, jerking his thumb in the direction of the corpse. “He won’t care.”
“Why not?” growled Wilson. “Don’t we have to live? He’s dead,” he added, pointing his thumb toward the corpse. “He won’t care.”
“Come here, Thuran,” said Clayton, turning toward the Russian. “We’ll have something worse than death aboard us if we don’t get rid of this body before dark.”
“Come here, Thuran,” Clayton said, turning towards the Russian. “We’ll have something worse than death with us if we don’t get rid of this body before dark.”
Wilson staggered up menacingly to prevent the contemplated act, but when his comrade, Spider, took sides with Clayton and Monsieur Thuran he gave up, and sat eying the corpse hungrily as the three men, by combining their efforts, succeeded in rolling it overboard.
Wilson staggered up threateningly to stop the planned act, but when his buddy, Spider, sided with Clayton and Monsieur Thuran, he gave in and sat watching the corpse with hunger as the three men managed to roll it overboard together.
All the balance of the day Wilson sat glaring at Clayton, in his eyes the gleam of insanity. Toward evening, as the sun was sinking into the sea, he commenced to chuckle and mumble to himself, but his eyes never left Clayton.
All day long, Wilson sat staring at Clayton, his eyes reflecting a crazed intensity. As evening approached and the sun began to set over the sea, he started to chuckle and mumble to himself, but his gaze remained fixed on Clayton.
After it became quite dark Clayton could still feel those terrible eyes upon him. He dared not sleep, and yet so exhausted was he that it was a constant fight to retain consciousness. After what seemed an eternity of suffering his head dropped upon a thwart, and he slept. How long he was unconscious he did not know—he was awakened by a shuffling noise quite close to him. The moon had risen, and as he opened his startled eyes he saw Wilson creeping stealthily toward him, his mouth open and his swollen tongue hanging out.
After it got really dark, Clayton could still sense those terrible eyes on him. He didn’t dare sleep, but he was so exhausted that it was a constant struggle to stay awake. After what felt like an eternity of suffering, his head fell onto a bench, and he dozed off. He had no idea how long he was out—he was jolted awake by a shuffling noise really close to him. The moon was up, and as he opened his shocked eyes, he saw Wilson creeping toward him quietly, his mouth open and his swollen tongue hanging out.
The slight noise had awakened Jane Porter at the same time, and as she saw the hideous tableau she gave a shrill cry of alarm, and at the same instant the sailor lurched forward and fell upon Clayton. Like a wild beast his teeth sought the throat of his intended prey, but Clayton, weak though he was, still found sufficient strength to hold the maniac’s mouth from him.
The faint noise had woken up Jane Porter at the same moment, and when she saw the horrifying scene, she let out a sharp scream of fear. At that same instant, the sailor lunged forward and landed on Clayton. Like an animal, he tried to bite into Clayton’s throat, but even though Clayton was weak, he still managed to push the maniac's mouth away from him.
At Jane Porter’s scream Monsieur Thuran and Spider awoke. On seeing the cause of her alarm, both men crawled to Clayton’s rescue, and between the three of them were able to subdue Wilson and hurl him to the bottom of the boat. For a few minutes he lay there chattering and laughing, and then, with an awful scream, and before any of his companions could prevent, he staggered to his feet and leaped overboard.
At Jane Porter’s scream, Monsieur Thuran and Spider woke up. When they saw what had scared her, both men rushed to help Clayton, and the three of them managed to pin down Wilson and throw him to the bottom of the boat. For a few minutes, he lay there chattering and laughing, and then, with a terrifying scream, and before any of his friends could stop him, he staggered to his feet and jumped overboard.
The reaction from the terrific strain of excitement left the weak survivors trembling and prostrated. Spider broke down and wept; Jane Porter prayed; Clayton swore softly to himself; Monsieur Thuran sat with his head in his hands, thinking. The result of his cogitation developed the following morning in a proposition he made to Spider and Clayton.
The reaction from the overwhelming excitement left the weak survivors trembling and exhausted. Spider broke down and cried; Jane Porter prayed; Clayton muttered softly to himself; Monsieur Thuran sat with his head in his hands, deep in thought. The outcome of his thinking led to a proposal he made to Spider and Clayton the next morning.
“Gentlemen,” said Monsieur Thuran, “you see the fate that awaits us all unless we are picked up within a day or two. That there is little hope of that is evidenced by the fact that during all the days we have drifted we have seen no sail, nor the faintest smudge of smoke upon the horizon.
“Gentlemen,” said Monsieur Thuran, “you see the fate that awaits us all unless we are rescued in a day or two. The fact that we've seen no sail or even the slightest hint of smoke on the horizon during all the days we've drifted shows that there’s little hope of that.”
“There might be a chance if we had food, but without food there is none. There remains for us, then, but one of two alternatives, and we must choose at once. Either we must all die together within a few days, or one must be sacrificed that the others may live. Do you quite clearly grasp my meaning?”
“There might be a chance if we had food, but without food there’s none. We have only two options left, and we need to decide quickly. Either we all die together in a few days, or one person has to be sacrificed so the others can live. Do you understand what I mean?”
Jane Porter, who had overheard, was horrified. If the proposition had come from the poor, ignorant sailor, she might possibly have not been so surprised; but that it should come from one who posed as a man of culture and refinement, from a gentleman, she could scarcely credit.
Jane Porter, who had overheard, was horrified. If the suggestion had come from the poor, ignorant sailor, she might not have been so shocked; but that it should come from someone who claimed to be cultured and refined, from a gentleman, she could hardly believe.
“It is better that we die together, then,” said Clayton.
“It’s better if we die together, then,” Clayton said.
“That is for the majority to decide,” replied Monsieur Thuran. “As only one of us three will be the object of sacrifice, we shall decide. Miss Porter is not interested, since she will be in no danger.”
“That is for the majority to decide,” replied Monsieur Thuran. “Since only one of us three will be the one to sacrifice, we will decide. Miss Porter isn't concerned, since she won't be in any danger.”
“How shall we know who is to be first?” asked Spider.
“How will we know who goes first?” asked Spider.
“It may be fairly fixed by lot,” replied Monsieur Thuran. “I have a number of franc pieces in my pocket. We can choose a certain date from among them—the one to draw this date first from beneath a piece of cloth will be the first.”
“It can be decided fairly by chance,” replied Monsieur Thuran. “I have some coins in my pocket. We can pick a specific date from them—the one that draws this date first from under a piece of cloth will go first.”
“I shall have nothing to do with any such diabolical plan,” muttered Clayton; “even yet land may be sighted or a ship appear—in time.”
“I want nothing to do with any crazy plan like that,” muttered Clayton; “even now, land might be spotted or a ship could show up—eventually.”
“You will do as the majority decide, or you will be ‘the first’ without the formality of drawing lots,” said Monsieur Thuran threateningly. “Come, let us vote on the plan; I for one am in favor of it. How about you, Spider?”
“You will follow what the majority decides, or you will be ‘the first’ without the need for drawing lots,” Monsieur Thuran said threateningly. “Come on, let’s vote on the plan; I’m in favor of it. What about you, Spider?”
“And I,” replied the sailor.
“And I,” said the sailor.
“It is the will of the majority,” announced Monsieur Thuran, “and now let us lose no time in drawing lots. It is as fair for one as for another. That three may live, one of us must die perhaps a few hours sooner than otherwise.”
“It’s what the majority wants,” said Monsieur Thuran, “so let’s not waste any time in drawing lots. It’s fair for everyone. For three to survive, one of us might have to die a few hours sooner than they would otherwise.”
Then he began his preparation for the lottery of death, while Jane Porter sat wide-eyed and horrified at thought of the thing that she was about to witness. Monsieur Thuran spread his coat upon the bottom of the boat, and then from a handful of money he selected six franc pieces. The other two men bent close above him as he inspected them. Finally he handed them all to Clayton.
Then he started getting ready for the death lottery, while Jane Porter sat there, wide-eyed and horrified at the thought of what she was about to see. Monsieur Thuran spread his coat on the bottom of the boat, and then from a handful of cash, he picked out six franc coins. The other two men leaned in close as he examined them. Finally, he gave them all to Clayton.
“Look at them carefully,” he said. “The oldest date is eighteen-seventy-five, and there is only one of that year.”
“Look at them closely,” he said. “The earliest date is eighteen seventy-five, and there’s only one from that year.”
Clayton and the sailor inspected each coin. To them there seemed not the slightest difference that could be detected other than the dates. They were quite satisfied. Had they known that Monsieur Thuran’s past experience as a card sharp had trained his sense of touch to so fine a point that he could almost differentiate between cards by the mere feel of them, they would scarcely have felt that the plan was so entirely fair. The 1875 piece was a hair thinner than the other coins, but neither Clayton nor Spider could have detected it without the aid of a micrometer.
Clayton and the sailor examined each coin. To them, there didn’t seem to be any noticeable difference beyond the dates. They were completely satisfied. If they had known that Monsieur Thuran’s experience as a card shark had sharpened his sense of touch to the point where he could almost tell cards apart just by feeling them, they probably wouldn’t have thought the plan was entirely fair. The 1875 coin was slightly thinner than the others, but neither Clayton nor Spider would have noticed it without a micrometer.
“In what order shall we draw?” asked Monsieur Thuran, knowing from past experience that the majority of men always prefer last chance in a lottery where the single prize is some distasteful thing—there is always the chance and the hope that another will draw it first. Monsieur Thuran, for reasons of his own, preferred to draw first if the drawing should happen to require a second adventure beneath the coat.
“In what order should we draw?” asked Monsieur Thuran, aware from past experience that most men usually want the last chance in a lottery where the only prize is something undesirable—there is always the possibility and hope that someone else will draw it first. For his own reasons, Monsieur Thuran preferred to draw first if the drawing happened to require a second adventure under the coat.
And so when Spider elected to draw last he graciously offered to take the first chance himself. His hand was under the coat for but a moment, yet those quick, deft fingers had felt of each coin, and found and discarded the fatal piece. When he brought forth his hand it contained an 1888 franc piece. Then Clayton drew. Jane Porter leaned forward with a tense and horrified expression on her face as the hand of the man she was to marry groped about beneath the coat. Presently he withdrew it, a franc piece lying in the palm. For an instant he dared not look, but Monsieur Thuran, who had leaned nearer to see the date, exclaimed that he was safe.
And so when Spider chose to draw last, he kindly offered to take the first chance himself. His hand was under the coat for just a moment, but those quick, skillful fingers felt each coin and found and discarded the deadly piece. When he brought his hand out, it held an 1888 franc coin. Then Clayton drew. Jane Porter leaned forward with a tense and horrified look on her face as the hand of the man she was about to marry groped around beneath the coat. Soon he pulled it out, a franc coin resting in his palm. For a moment, he didn’t dare look, but Monsieur Thuran, who had leaned in closer to see the date, exclaimed that he was safe.
Jane Porter sank weak and trembling against the side of the boat. She felt sick and dizzy. And now, if Spider should not draw the 1875 piece she must endure the whole horrid thing again.
Jane Porter sank weak and trembling against the side of the boat. She felt nauseous and dizzy. And now, if Spider didn’t draw the 1875 piece, she would have to endure the whole terrible thing again.
The sailor already had his hand beneath the coat. Great beads of sweat were standing upon his brow. He trembled as though with a fit of ague. Aloud he cursed himself for having taken the last draw, for now his chances for escape were but three to one, whereas Monsieur Thuran’s had been five to one, and Clayton’s four to one.
The sailor already had his hand under the coat. Big beads of sweat were pooling on his forehead. He shook as if he had a fever. He cursed himself out loud for taking the last drink, because now his chances of escaping were just three to one, while Monsieur Thuran’s were five to one and Clayton’s were four to one.
The Russian was very patient, and did not hurry the man, for he knew that he himself was quite safe whether the 1875 piece came out this time or not. When the sailor withdrew his hand and looked at the piece of money within, he dropped fainting to the bottom of the boat. Both Clayton and Monsieur Thuran hastened weakly to examine the coin, which had rolled from the man’s hand and lay beside him. It was not dated 1875. The reaction from the state of fear he had been in had overcome Spider quite as effectually as though he had drawn the fated piece.
The Russian was very patient and didn’t rush the man, knowing he was safe whether the 1875 coin came out this time or not. When the sailor pulled his hand back and looked at the coin, he fainted and fell to the bottom of the boat. Both Clayton and Monsieur Thuran quickly went to check out the coin that had rolled from the man's hand and was lying beside him. It wasn’t dated 1875. The shock from the fear he had felt had overcome Spider just as effectively as if he had pulled the coin.
But now the whole proceeding must be gone through again. Once more the Russian drew forth a harmless coin. Jane Porter closed her eyes as Clayton reached beneath the coat. Spider bent, wide-eyed, toward the hand that was to decide his fate, for whatever luck was Clayton’s on this last draw, the opposite would be Spider’s. Then William Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke, removed his hand from beneath the coat, and with a coin tight pressed within his palm where none might see it, he looked at Jane Porter. He did not dare open his hand.
But now they had to go through the whole process again. The Russian once again pulled out a harmless coin. Jane Porter shut her eyes as Clayton reached beneath the coat. Spider leaned in, wide-eyed, towards the hand that would determine his fate, because whatever luck Clayton had with this final draw, the opposite would be true for Spider. Then William Cecil Clayton, Lord Greystoke, pulled his hand from beneath the coat, and with a coin tightly held in his palm where no one could see it, he looked at Jane Porter. He didn’t dare open his hand.
“Quick!” hissed Spider. “My Gawd, let’s see it.”
“Quick!” whispered Spider. “Oh my God, let’s see it.”
Clayton opened his fingers. Spider was the first to see the date, and ere any knew what his intention was he raised himself to his feet, and lunged over the side of the boat, to disappear forever into the green depths beneath—the coin had not been the 1875 piece.
Clayton opened his hand. Spider was the first to notice the date, and before anyone realized what he was planning, he stood up and leaped over the side of the boat, vanishing forever into the green depths below—the coin wasn't the 1875 piece.
The strain had exhausted those who remained to such an extent that they lay half unconscious for the balance of the day, nor was the subject referred to again for several days. Horrible days of increasing weakness and hopelessness. At length Monsieur Thuran crawled to where Clayton lay.
The strain had worn out those who were left so much that they lay half unconscious for the rest of the day, and the topic wasn't mentioned again for several days. Terrible days of growing weakness and despair. Finally, Monsieur Thuran crawled over to where Clayton was lying.
“We must draw once more before we are too weak even to eat,” he whispered.
“We need to draw again before we’re too weak to even eat,” he whispered.
Clayton was in such a state that he was scarcely master of his own will. Jane Porter had not spoken for three days. He knew that she was dying. Horrible as the thought was, he hoped that the sacrifice of either Thuran or himself might be the means of giving her renewed strength, and so he immediately agreed to the Russian’s proposal.
Clayton was in such a condition that he could hardly control his own actions. Jane Porter hadn’t said a word in three days. He realized that she was fading. As awful as that idea was, he hoped that either he or Thuran could be sacrificed to give her new life, so he quickly accepted the Russian’s suggestion.
They drew under the same plan as before, but there could be but one result—Clayton drew the 1875 piece.
They followed the same plan as before, but there could only be one outcome—Clayton got the 1875 piece.
“When shall it be?” he asked Thuran.
“When will it be?” he asked Thuran.
The Russian had already drawn a pocketknife from his trousers, and was weakly attempting to open it.
The Russian had already pulled out a pocketknife from his pants and was struggling to open it.
“Now,” he muttered, and his greedy eyes gloated upon the Englishman.
“Now,” he whispered, and his greedy eyes fixated on the Englishman.
“Can’t you wait until dark?” asked Clayton. “Miss Porter must not see this thing done. We were to have been married, you know.”
“Can’t you wait until it’s dark?” Clayton asked. “Miss Porter must not see this happening. We were supposed to get married, you know.”
A look of disappointment came over Monsieur Thuran’s face.
A look of disappointment appeared on Monsieur Thuran’s face.
“Very well,” he replied hesitatingly. “It will not be long until night. I have waited for many days—I can wait a few hours longer.”
“Okay,” he said hesitantly. “It won’t be long until night. I’ve waited for many days—I can wait a few more hours.”
“Thank you, my friend,” murmured Clayton. “Now I shall go to her side and remain with her until it is time. I would like to have an hour or two with her before I die.”
“Thanks, my friend,” Clayton whispered. “Now I’ll go to her side and stay with her until the time comes. I’d like to have an hour or two with her before I die.”
When Clayton reached the girl’s side she was unconscious—he knew that she was dying, and he was glad that she should not have to see or know the awful tragedy that was shortly to be enacted. He took her hand and raised it to his cracked and swollen lips. For a long time he lay caressing the emaciated, clawlike thing that had once been the beautiful, shapely white hand of the young Baltimore belle.
When Clayton got to the girl's side, she was unconscious—he realized she was dying, and he was relieved that she wouldn't have to witness or understand the horrific tragedy about to unfold. He took her hand and brought it to his cracked and swollen lips. For a long time, he lay there, gently touching the emaciated, claw-like hand that had once belonged to the beautiful, shapely young woman from Baltimore.
It was quite dark before he knew it, but he was recalled to himself by a voice out of the night. It was the Russian calling him to his doom.
It was pretty dark before he realized it, but a voice from the night brought him back to reality. It was the Russian, calling him to his fate.
“I am coming, Monsieur Thuran,” he hastened to reply.
“I’m coming, Monsieur Thuran,” he quickly answered.
Thrice he attempted to turn himself upon his hands and knees, that he might crawl back to his death, but in the few hours that he had lain there he had become too weak to return to Thuran’s side.
Thrice he tried to turn onto his hands and knees so he could crawl back to his death, but in the few hours he had been lying there, he had become too weak to get back to Thuran’s side.
“You will have to come to me, monsieur,” he called weakly. “I have not sufficient strength to gain my hands and knees.”
“You’ll need to come to me, sir,” he called faintly. “I don’t have the strength to get on my hands and knees.”
“Sapristi!” muttered Monsieur Thuran. “You are attempting to cheat me out of my winnings.”
Wow! muttered Monsieur Thuran. “You’re trying to scam me out of my winnings.”
Clayton heard the man shuffling about in the bottom of the boat. Finally there was a despairing groan. “I cannot crawl,” he heard the Russian wail. “It is too late. You have tricked me, you dirty English dog.”
Clayton heard the man moving around at the bottom of the boat. Finally, there was a desperate groan. “I can’t crawl,” he heard the Russian cry. “It’s too late. You’ve deceived me, you filthy English bastard.”
“I have not tricked you, monsieur,” replied Clayton. “I have done my best to rise, but I shall try again, and if you will try possibly each of us can crawl halfway, and then you shall have your ‘winnings.’”
“I haven't tricked you, sir,” replied Clayton. “I've done my best to get up, but I'll try again, and if you try too, maybe we can each crawl halfway, and then you'll get your ‘winnings.’”
Again Clayton exerted his remaining strength to the utmost, and he heard Thuran apparently doing the same. Nearly an hour later the Englishman succeeded in raising himself to his hands and knees, but at the first forward movement he pitched upon his face.
Again, Clayton pushed himself to his limit, and he heard Thuran seemingly doing the same. Nearly an hour later, the Englishman managed to get up to his hands and knees, but with his first attempt to move forward, he fell flat on his face.
A moment later he heard an exclamation of relief from Monsieur Thuran.
A moment later, he heard Monsieur Thuran exclaim in relief.
“I am coming,” whispered the Russian.
“I’m on my way,” whispered the Russian.
Again Clayton essayed to stagger on to meet his fate, but once more he pitched headlong to the boat’s bottom, nor, try as he would, could he again rise. His last effort caused him to roll over on his back, and there he lay looking up at the stars, while behind him, coming ever nearer and nearer, he could hear the laborious shuffling, and the stertorous breathing of the Russian.
Again, Clayton tried to push himself forward to meet his fate, but once again he fell flat onto the bottom of the boat, and no matter how hard he tried, he couldn't get back up. His last attempt made him roll over onto his back, and there he lay gazing up at the stars, while behind him, getting closer and closer, he could hear the heavy shuffling and labored breathing of the Russian.
It seemed that he must have lain thus an hour waiting for the thing to crawl out of the dark and end his misery. It was quite close now, but there were longer and longer pauses between its efforts to advance, and each forward movement seemed to the waiting Englishman to be almost imperceptible.
It felt like he had been lying there for an hour, waiting for whatever it was to come out of the darkness and end his suffering. It was very close now, but there were longer and longer gaps between its attempts to move forward, and each time it tried to advance, the Englishman thought it was nearly undetectable.
Finally he knew that Thuran was quite close beside him. He heard a cackling laugh, something touched his face, and he lost consciousness.
Finally, he realized that Thuran was right next to him. He heard a cackling laugh, something brushed against his face, and then he passed out.
Chapter XIX
The City of Gold
The very night that Tarzan of the Apes became chief of the Waziri the woman he loved lay dying in a tiny boat two hundred miles west of him upon the Atlantic. As he danced among his naked fellow savages, the firelight gleaming against his great, rolling muscles, the personification of physical perfection and strength, the woman who loved him lay thin and emaciated in the last coma that precedes death by thirst and starvation.
The very night that Tarzan of the Apes became the chief of the Waziri, the woman he loved was dying in a small boat two hundred miles west of him on the Atlantic. While he danced among his naked fellow tribesmen, the firelight shining on his powerful, sculpted muscles, representing physical perfection and strength, the woman who loved him lay frail and emaciated, caught in the final coma before death from thirst and starvation.
The week following the induction of Tarzan into the kingship of the Waziri was occupied in escorting the Manyuema of the Arab raiders to the northern boundary of Waziri in accordance with the promise which Tarzan had made them. Before he left them he exacted a pledge from them that they would not lead any expeditions against the Waziri in the future, nor was it a difficult promise to obtain. They had had sufficient experience with the fighting tactics of the new Waziri chief not to have the slightest desire to accompany another predatory force within the boundaries of his domain.
The week after Tarzan was made king of the Waziri was spent escorting the Manyuema from the Arab raiders to the northern border of Waziri, as Tarzan had promised. Before parting, he made sure they promised not to launch any attacks against the Waziri in the future, and it wasn't hard for him to get that commitment. They had seen enough of the new Waziri chief's fighting skills to have no interest in joining another raiding party within his territory.
Almost immediately upon his return to the village Tarzan commenced making preparations for leading an expedition in search of the ruined city of gold which old Waziri had described to him. He selected fifty of the sturdiest warriors of his tribe, choosing only men who seemed anxious to accompany him on the arduous march, and share the dangers of a new and hostile country.
Almost right after he got back to the village, Tarzan started getting ready for an expedition to find the lost city of gold that the old Waziri had told him about. He picked fifty of the strongest warriors from his tribe, choosing only those men who seemed eager to join him on the tough journey and face the challenges of an unfamiliar and dangerous land.
The fabulous wealth of the fabled city had been almost constantly in his mind since Waziri had recounted the strange adventures of the former expedition which had stumbled upon the vast ruins by chance. The lure of adventure may have been quite as powerful a factor in urging Tarzan of the Apes to undertake the journey as the lure of gold, but the lure of gold was there, too, for he had learned among civilized men something of the miracles that may be wrought by the possessor of the magic yellow metal. What he would do with a golden fortune in the heart of savage Africa it had not occurred to him to consider—it would be enough to possess the power to work wonders, even though he never had an opportunity to employ it.
The incredible wealth of the legendary city had been on his mind almost constantly since Waziri had shared the bizarre stories of the previous expedition that had accidentally discovered the massive ruins. The thrill of adventure might have been just as strong a motivation for Tarzan of the Apes to embark on the journey as the allure of gold, but the desire for gold was definitely there too, as he had learned among civilized people about the miracles that can be achieved by those who possess the magical yellow metal. He hadn't thought about what he would do with a fortune in gold in the heart of wild Africa—it was enough just to have the power to perform wonders, even if he never got the chance to use it.
So one glorious tropical morning Waziri, chief of the Waziri, set out at the head of fifty clean-limbed ebon warriors in quest of adventure and of riches. They followed the course which old Waziri had described to Tarzan. For days they marched—up one river, across a low divide; down another river; up a third, until at the end of the twenty-fifth day they camped upon a mountainside, from the summit of which they hoped to catch their first view of the marvelous city of treasure.
So, one beautiful tropical morning, Waziri, the leader of the Waziri tribe, set out with fifty strong, agile warriors in search of adventure and wealth. They followed the route that old Waziri had shared with Tarzan. For days, they traveled—up one river, over a low ridge; down another river; up a third, until, at the end of the twenty-fifth day, they set up camp on a mountainside, from the top of which they hoped to get their first glimpse of the amazing city of treasure.
Early the next morning they were climbing the almost perpendicular crags which formed the last, but greatest, natural barrier between them and their destination. It was nearly noon before Tarzan, who headed the thin line of climbing warriors, scrambled over the top of the last cliff and stood upon the little flat table-land of the mountaintop.
Early the next morning, they were scaling the nearly vertical cliffs that created the final, yet biggest, natural obstacle between them and their goal. It was almost noon by the time Tarzan, leading the thin line of climbing warriors, scrambled over the top of the last cliff and stood on the small flat area at the mountaintop.
On either hand towered mighty peaks thousands of feet higher than the pass through which they were entering the forbidden valley. Behind him stretched the wooded valley across which they had marched for many days, and at the opposite side the low range which marked the boundary of their own country.
On either side rose towering peaks that were thousands of feet taller than the pass leading into the forbidden valley. Behind him lay the wooded valley they had trekked through for many days, and on the other side was the low range that defined the border of their homeland.
But before him was the view that centered his attention. Here lay a desolate valley—a shallow, narrow valley dotted with stunted trees and covered with many great bowlders. And on the far side of the valley lay what appeared to be a mighty city, its great walls, its lofty spires, its turrets, minarets, and domes showing red and yellow in the sunlight. Tarzan was yet too far away to note the marks of ruin—to him it appeared a wonderful city of magnificent beauty, and in imagination he peopled its broad avenues and its huge temples with a throng of happy, active people.
But before him was the view that grabbed his attention. Here lay a desolate valley—a shallow, narrow valley scattered with stunted trees and covered with large boulders. On the far side of the valley stood what looked like a mighty city, its great walls, tall spires, turrets, minarets, and domes shining red and yellow in the sunlight. Tarzan was still too far away to see any signs of decay— to him, it looked like a stunning city of incredible beauty, and in his imagination, he filled its wide avenues and huge temples with a crowd of happy, active people.
For an hour the little expedition rested upon the mountain-top, and then Tarzan led them down into the valley below. There was no trail, but the way was less arduous than the ascent of the opposite face of the mountain had been. Once in the valley their progress was rapid, so that it was still light when they halted before the towering walls of the ancient city.
For an hour, the small group took a break at the mountain top, and then Tarzan guided them down into the valley below. There was no path, but the descent was easier than climbing the other side of the mountain had been. Once they reached the valley, they moved quickly, so it was still light when they stopped in front of the towering walls of the ancient city.
The outer wall was fifty feet in height where it had not fallen into ruin, but nowhere as far as they could see had more than ten or twenty feet of the upper courses fallen away. It was still a formidable defense. On several occasions Tarzan had thought that he discerned things moving behind the ruined portions of the wall near to them, as though creatures were watching them from behind the bulwarks of the ancient pile. And often he felt the sensation of unseen eyes upon him, but not once could he be sure that it was more than imagination.
The outer wall stood fifty feet tall where it hadn't crumbled, but as far as they could see, only ten or twenty feet of the upper sections had collapsed. It was still a strong defense. Several times, Tarzan thought he noticed something moving behind the ruined parts of the wall nearby, as if creatures were watching them from behind the remnants of the old structure. He often felt the sensation of unseen eyes on him, but he could never be sure it was anything beyond his imagination.
That night they camped outside the city. Once, at midnight, they were awakened by a shrill scream from beyond the great wall. It was very high at first, descending gradually until it ended in a series of dismal moans. It had a strange effect upon the blacks, almost paralyzing them with terror while it lasted, and it was an hour before the camp settled down to sleep once more. In the morning the effects of it were still visible in the fearful, sidelong glances that the Waziri continually cast at the massive and forbidding structure which loomed above them.
That night they set up camp outside the city. At midnight, they were suddenly jolted awake by a piercing scream coming from beyond the massive wall. It started off very high, gradually lowering until it finished in a series of mournful groans. It had a peculiar effect on the locals, nearly freezing them in fear while it lasted, and it took an hour before the camp could settle down to sleep again. In the morning, the aftermath was still evident in the anxious, sideways glances that the Waziri kept casting at the imposing and intimidating structure looming over them.
It required considerable encouragement and urging on Tarzan’s part to prevent the blacks from abandoning the venture on the spot and hastening back across the valley toward the cliffs they had scaled the day before. But at length, by dint of commands, and threats that he would enter the city alone, they agreed to accompany him.
It took a lot of persuasion and urging from Tarzan to keep the Black men from ditching the mission right then and rushing back across the valley toward the cliffs they had climbed the previous day. But eventually, through commands and threats that he would go into the city by himself, they agreed to go with him.
For fifteen minutes they marched along the face of the wall before they discovered a means of ingress. Then they came to a narrow cleft about twenty inches wide. Within, a flight of concrete steps, worn hollow by centuries of use, rose before them, to disappear at a sharp turning of the passage a few yards ahead.
For fifteen minutes, they walked along the wall before finding a way in. Then they reached a narrow opening about twenty inches wide. Inside, a set of concrete steps, worn down by centuries of use, led up to a sharp turn in the passage just a few yards ahead.
Into this narrow alley Tarzan made his way, turning his giant shoulders sideways that they might enter at all. Behind him trailed his black warriors. At the turn in the cleft the stairs ended, and the path was level; but it wound and twisted in a serpentine fashion, until suddenly at a sharp angle it debouched upon a narrow court, across which loomed an inner wall equally as high as the outer. This inner wall was set with little round towers alternating along its entire summit with pointed monoliths. In places these had fallen, and the wall was ruined, but it was in a much better state of preservation than the outer wall.
Into this narrow alley, Tarzan moved, turning his broad shoulders sideways to squeeze through. Behind him followed his Black warriors. At the bend in the passage, the stairs ended, and the path became level; but it wound and twisted in a snake-like manner until, suddenly, at a sharp angle, it opened up into a small courtyard, where a tall inner wall loomed just as high as the outer one. This inner wall featured small round towers alternating with pointed monoliths along its entire top. In some spots, these had crumbled, leaving the wall in ruins, but overall, it was in much better condition than the outer wall.
Another narrow passage led through this wall, and at its end Tarzan and his warriors found themselves in a broad avenue, on the opposite side of which crumbling edifices of hewn granite loomed dark and forbidding. Upon the crumbling debris along the face of the buildings trees had grown, and vines wound in and out of the hollow, staring windows; but the building directly opposite them seemed less overgrown than the others, and in a much better state of preservation. It was a massive pile, surmounted by an enormous dome. At either side of its great entrance stood rows of tall pillars, each capped by a huge, grotesque bird carved from the solid rock of the monoliths.
Another narrow path led through this wall, and at the end, Tarzan and his warriors found themselves in a wide avenue. On the opposite side, crumbling buildings made of hewn granite loomed dark and intimidating. Trees had grown on the crumbling debris along the face of the buildings, and vines twisted in and out of the empty, staring windows. However, the building directly across from them seemed less overgrown than the others and was in much better shape. It was a massive structure topped by an enormous dome. On either side of its grand entrance stood rows of tall pillars, each topped by a huge, grotesque bird carved from the solid rock of the monoliths.
As the ape-man and his companions stood gazing in varying degrees of wonderment at this ancient city in the midst of savage Africa, several of them became aware of movement within the structure at which they were looking. Dim, shadowy shapes appeared to be moving about in the semi-darkness of the interior. There was nothing tangible that the eye could grasp—only an uncanny suggestion of life where it seemed that there should be no life, for living things seemed out of place in this weird, dead city of the long-dead past.
As the ape-man and his friends looked in awe at the ancient city in the heart of wild Africa, some of them noticed movement within the structure they were staring at. Faint, shadowy figures seemed to move around in the dimness of the interior. There was nothing solid to see—just a strange hint of life where it felt like there shouldn’t be any, since living beings seemed out of place in this eerie, lifeless city of the distant past.
Tarzan recalled something that he had read in the library at Paris of a lost race of white men that native legend described as living in the heart of Africa. He wondered if he were not looking upon the ruins of the civilization that this strange people had wrought amid the savage surroundings of their strange and savage home. Could it be possible that even now a remnant of that lost race inhabited the ruined grandeur that had once been their progenitor? Again he became conscious of a stealthy movement within the great temple before him. “Come!” he said, to his Waziri. “Let us have a look at what lies behind those ruined walls.”
Tarzan remembered something he had read in the library in Paris about a lost race of white people, which local legends claimed lived in the heart of Africa. He wondered if he was actually looking at the remnants of the civilization that these mysterious people had built in the wild environment of their strange and savage homeland. Could it be possible that even now a remnant of that lost race still inhabited the fallen grandeur that had once been theirs? Again, he noticed a sneaky movement within the great temple in front of him. “Come!” he said to his Waziri. “Let’s take a look at what’s behind those crumbling walls.”
His men were loath to follow him, but when they saw that he was bravely entering the frowning portal they trailed a few paces behind in a huddled group that seemed the personification of nervous terror. A single shriek such as they had heard the night before would have been sufficient to have sent them all racing madly for the narrow cleft that led through the great walls to the outer world.
His men were reluctant to follow him, but when they saw him boldly step into the dark entrance, they gathered a few steps behind in a tight group that embodied nervous fear. A single scream like the one they had heard the night before would have been enough to send them all running frantically for the narrow gap that led through the massive walls to the outside world.
As Tarzan entered the building he was distinctly aware of many eyes upon him. There was a rustling in the shadows of a near-by corridor, and he could have sworn that he saw a human hand withdrawn from an embrasure that opened above him into the domelike rotunda in which he found himself.
As Tarzan stepped inside the building, he noticed that many people were watching him. He heard a rustling sound from a nearby corridor, and he could have sworn he saw a human hand quickly pull back from a nook that opened above him into the dome-shaped rotunda where he was.
The floor of the chamber was of concrete, the walls of smooth granite, upon which strange figures of men and beasts were carved. In places tablets of yellow metal had been set in the solid masonry of the walls.
The floor of the chamber was made of concrete, the walls were smooth granite, where strange figures of men and beasts were carved. In some areas, tablets of yellow metal had been embedded in the solid masonry of the walls.
When he approached closer to one of these tablets he saw that it was of gold, and bore many hieroglyphics. Beyond this first chamber there were others, and back of them the building branched out into enormous wings. Tarzan passed through several of these chambers, finding many evidences of the fabulous wealth of the original builders. In one room were seven pillars of solid gold, and in another the floor itself was of the precious metal. And all the while that he explored, his blacks huddled close together at his back, and strange shapes hovered upon either hand and before them and behind, yet never close enough that any might say that they were not alone.
As he got closer to one of the tablets, he noticed it was made of gold and covered in many hieroglyphics. Beyond this first room, there were more chambers, and behind them, the building extended into massive wings. Tarzan moved through several of these rooms, discovering many signs of the incredible wealth of the original builders. In one room, there were seven pillars made of solid gold, and in another, the floor was made of the precious metal. Meanwhile, his men stayed huddled together behind him, and strange shapes moved on either side, in front of them, and behind, yet never close enough for anyone to claim they were not alone.
The strain, however, was telling upon the nerves of the Waziri. They begged Tarzan to return to the sunlight. They said that no good could come of such an expedition, for the ruins were haunted by the spirits of the dead who had once inhabited them.
The stress, however, was taking a toll on the Waziri's nerves. They pleaded with Tarzan to go back to the sunlight. They argued that nothing good could come from such a journey, as the ruins were said to be haunted by the spirits of those who had once lived there.
“They are watching us, O king,” whispered Busuli. “They are waiting until they have led us into the innermost recesses of their stronghold, and then they will fall upon us and tear us to pieces with their teeth. That is the way with spirits. My mother’s uncle, who is a great witch doctor, has told me all about it many times.”
“They're watching us, Your Majesty,” Busuli whispered. “They're waiting until they've lured us deep into their fortress, and then they'll attack us and tear us apart with their teeth. That's how spirits operate. My mom's uncle, who's a powerful witch doctor, has told me all about it many times.”
Tarzan laughed. “Run back into the sunlight, my children,” he said. “I will join you when I have searched this old ruin from top to bottom, and found the gold, or found that there is none. At least we may take the tablets from the walls, though the pillars are too heavy for us to handle; but there should be great storerooms filled with gold—gold that we can carry away upon our backs with ease. Run on now, out into the fresh air where you may breathe easier.”
Tarzan laughed. “Go back into the sunlight, kids,” he said. “I’ll join you after I’ve searched this old ruin from top to bottom and either found the gold or discovered that there isn’t any. At the very least, we can take the tablets from the walls, even though the pillars are too heavy for us to move. But there should be big storerooms filled with gold—gold that we can easily carry on our backs. Now go on, get out into the fresh air where you can breathe easier.”
Some of the warriors started to obey their chief with alacrity, but Busuli and several others hesitated to leave him—hesitated between love and loyalty for their king, and superstitious fear of the unknown. And then, quite unexpectedly, that occurred which decided the question without the necessity for further discussion. Out of the silence of the ruined temple there rang, close to their ears, the same hideous shriek they had heard the previous night, and with horrified cries the black warriors turned and fled through the empty halls of the age-old edifice.
Some of the warriors began to follow their chief eagerly, but Busuli and a few others hesitated to leave him, torn between their love and loyalty for their king and a superstitious fear of the unknown. Then, quite unexpectedly, something happened that settled the issue without needing any more discussion. From the silence of the ruined temple, there burst forth, close to their ears, the same awful shriek they had heard the night before, and with terrified cries, the black warriors turned and ran through the empty halls of the ancient building.
Behind them stood Tarzan of the Apes where they had left him, a grim smile upon his lips—waiting for the enemy he fully expected was about to pounce upon him. But again silence reigned, except for the faint suggestion of the sound of naked feet moving stealthily in near-by places.
Behind them stood Tarzan of the Apes where they had left him, a grim smile on his lips—waiting for the enemy he fully expected would soon attack him. But once again, silence dominated, except for the faint hint of the sound of bare feet moving stealthily nearby.
Then Tarzan wheeled and passed on into the depths of the temple. From room to room he went, until he came to one at which a rude, barred door still stood, and as he put his shoulder against it to push it in, again the shriek of warning rang out almost beside him. It was evident that he was being warned to refrain from desecrating this particular room. Or could it be that within lay the secret to the treasure stores?
Then Tarzan turned and went deeper into the temple. He moved from room to room until he reached one with a rough, barred door still standing. As he pushed against it with his shoulder, a loud warning shriek echoed right beside him. It was clear that he was being told not to disturb this specific room. Or could it be that the secret to the treasure was hidden inside?
At any rate, the very fact that the strange, invisible guardians of this weird place had some reason for wishing him not to enter this particular chamber was sufficient to treble Tarzan’s desire to do so, and though the shrieking was repeated continuously, he kept his shoulder to the door until it gave before his giant strength to swing open upon creaking wooden hinges.
At any rate, the fact that the strange, invisible guardians of this weird place had some reason for wanting him not to enter this specific room only increased Tarzan’s desire to go in. Even though the shrieking kept happening nonstop, he pushed against the door with all his might until it finally swung open on creaking wooden hinges.
Within all was black as the tomb. There was no window to let in the faintest ray of light, and as the corridor upon which it opened was itself in semi-darkness, even the open door shed no relieving rays within. Feeling before him upon the floor with the butt of his spear, Tarzan entered the Stygian gloom. Suddenly the door behind him closed, and at the same time hands clutched him from every direction out of the darkness.
Within all was black as a tomb. There was no window to let in the faintest ray of light, and since the corridor it opened into was also in semi-darkness, even the open door didn’t let in any comforting light. As he felt his way along the floor with the butt of his spear, Tarzan stepped into the pitch-black gloom. Suddenly, the door behind him slammed shut, and at the same time, hands grabbed him from all sides out of the darkness.
The ape-man fought with all the savage fury of self-preservation backed by the herculean strength that was his. But though he felt his blows land, and his teeth sink into soft flesh, there seemed always two new hands to take the place of those that he fought off. At last they dragged him down, and slowly, very slowly, they overcame him by the mere weight of their numbers. And then they bound him—his hands behind his back and his feet trussed up to meet them. He had heard no sound except the heavy breathing of his antagonists, and the noise of the battle. He knew not what manner of creatures had captured him, but that they were human seemed evident from the fact that they had bound him.
The ape-man fought with all the wild determination of survival fueled by his immense strength. But even though he felt his punches connect and his teeth pierce soft flesh, it seemed like there were always two new hands to replace the ones he fought off. Eventually, they overpowered him, and slowly, very slowly, they subdued him with the sheer weight of their numbers. Then they tied him up—his hands behind his back and his feet secured to match. He heard nothing but the heavy breathing of his opponents and the sounds of the struggle. He had no idea what kind of creatures had captured him, but it was clear they were human since they had tied him up.
Presently they lifted him from the floor, and half dragging, half pushing him, they brought him out of the black chamber through another doorway into an inner courtyard of the temple. Here he saw his captors. There must have been a hundred of them—short, stocky men, with great beards that covered their faces and fell upon their hairy breasts.
Currently, they lifted him from the floor, and half dragging, half pushing him, they brought him out of the dark room through another doorway into an inner courtyard of the temple. Here he saw his captors. There must have been a hundred of them—short, stocky men, with large beards that covered their faces and fell onto their hairy chests.
The thick, matted hair upon their heads grew low over their receding brows, and hung about their shoulders and their backs. Their crooked legs were short and heavy, their arms long and muscular. About their loins they wore the skins of leopards and lions, and great necklaces of the claws of these same animals depended upon their breasts. Massive circlets of virgin gold adorned their arms and legs. For weapons they carried heavy, knotted bludgeons, and in the belts that confined their single garments each had a long, wicked-looking knife.
The thick, tangled hair on their heads hung low over their receding foreheads and draped around their shoulders and backs. Their short, stocky legs were heavy, and their arms were long and muscular. They wore leopard and lion skins around their waists, and large necklaces made of the claws of these animals hung from their chests. Big bands of pure gold decorated their arms and legs. They carried heavy, knotted clubs as weapons, and in the belts that held their single garments, each had a long, menacing knife.
But the feature of them that made the most startling impression upon their prisoner was their white skins—neither in color nor feature was there a trace of the negroid about them. Yet, with their receding foreheads, wicked little close-set eyes, and yellow fangs, they were far from prepossessing in appearance.
But the thing that struck their prisoner the most was their white skin—there was no hint of African features in either their color or looks. Still, with their sloping foreheads, maliciously small eyes, and yellowed teeth, they were far from attractive in appearance.
During the fight within the dark chamber, and while they had been dragging Tarzan to the inner court, no word had been spoken, but now several of them exchanged grunting, monosyllabic conversation in a language unfamiliar to the ape-man, and presently they left him lying upon the concrete floor while they trooped off on their short legs into another part of the temple beyond the court.
During the struggle in the dark room, while they were pulling Tarzan to the inner courtyard, no one said a word. But now a few of them were grunting out brief, one-syllable words in a language that the ape-man didn’t understand. Soon after, they left him lying on the concrete floor and walked away on their short legs to another part of the temple beyond the courtyard.
As Tarzan lay there upon his back he saw that the temple entirely surrounded the little inclosure, and that on all sides its lofty walls rose high above him. At the top a little patch of blue sky was visible, and, in one direction, through an embrasure, he could see foliage, but whether it was beyond or within the temple he did not know.
As Tarzan lay on his back, he noticed that the temple completely surrounded the small enclosure, with its tall walls towering over him on all sides. A small patch of blue sky was visible at the top, and in one direction, through an opening, he could see some foliage, but he couldn't tell if it was outside or inside the temple.
About the court, from the ground to the top of the temple, were series of open galleries, and now and then the captive caught glimpses of bright eyes gleaming from beneath masses of tumbling hair, peering down upon him from above.
About the courtyard, from the ground to the top of the temple, there were rows of open galleries, and now and then the captive caught sight of bright eyes shining from underneath tangles of messy hair, looking down at him from above.
The ape-man gently tested the strength of the bonds that held him, and while he could not be sure it seemed that they were of insufficient strength to withstand the strain of his mighty muscles when the time came to make a break for freedom; but he did not dare to put them to the crucial test until darkness had fallen, or he felt that no spying eyes were upon him.
The ape-man carefully checked the strength of the bindings that secured him, and while he couldn't be certain, it appeared they weren't strong enough to handle the power of his strong muscles when he decided to make a run for freedom. However, he didn’t want to put them to the ultimate test until night had fallen or he was sure no watchful eyes were on him.
He had lain within the court for several hours before the first rays of sunlight penetrated the vertical shaft; almost simultaneously he heard the pattering of bare feet in the corridors about him, and a moment later saw the galleries above fill with crafty faces as a score or more entered the courtyard.
He had been lying in the courtyard for several hours before the first rays of sunlight broke through the vertical shaft; almost at the same time, he heard the sound of bare feet padding around in the hallways nearby, and a moment later, he saw the galleries above fill with sly faces as a group of over twenty people entered the courtyard.
For a moment every eye was bent upon the noonday sun, and then in unison the people in the galleries and those in the court below took up the refrain of a low, weird chant. Presently those about Tarzan began to dance to the cadence of their solemn song. They circled him slowly, resembling in their manner of dancing a number of clumsy, shuffling bears; but as yet they did not look at him, keeping their little eyes fixed upon the sun.
For a moment, everyone was focused on the midday sun, and then, as one, the people in the galleries and those in the court below started a soft, strange chant. Soon, those around Tarzan began to dance to the rhythm of their serious song. They moved in a slow circle around him, looking like a bunch of awkward, shuffling bears; but they still didn't look at him, keeping their small eyes locked on the sun.
For ten minutes or more they kept up their monotonous chant and steps, and then suddenly, and in perfect unison, they turned toward their victim with upraised bludgeons and emitting fearful howls, the while they contorted their features into the most diabolical expressions, they rushed upon him.
For ten minutes or more, they maintained their repetitive chant and footsteps, and then suddenly, in perfect harmony, they turned toward their victim with raised clubs, letting out terrifying screams, all while twisting their faces into the most evil expressions as they charged at him.
At the same instant a female figure dashed into the midst of the bloodthirsty horde, and, with a bludgeon similar to their own, except that it was wrought from gold, beat back the advancing men.
At that very moment, a woman rushed into the middle of the bloodthirsty crowd and, wielding a club like theirs but made of gold, pushed back the approaching men.
Chapter XX
La
For a moment Tarzan thought that by some strange freak of fate a miracle had saved him, but when he realized the ease with which the girl had, single-handed, beaten off twenty gorilla-like males, and an instant later, as he saw them again take up their dance about him while she addressed them in a singsong monotone, which bore every evidence of rote, he came to the conclusion that it was all but a part of the ceremony of which he was the central figure.
For a moment, Tarzan thought some strange twist of fate had saved him, but when he saw how easily the girl had single-handedly driven off twenty gorilla-like males, and a moment later, as he watched them start their dance around him while she spoke to them in a singsong tone that clearly showed it was memorized, he realized that it was all just part of the ceremony in which he was the main focus.
After a moment or two the girl drew a knife from her girdle, and, leaning over Tarzan, cut the bonds from his legs. Then, as the men stopped their dance, and approached, she motioned to him to rise. Placing the rope that had been about his legs around his neck, she led him across the courtyard, the men following in twos.
After a moment, the girl pulled a knife from her belt and leaned over Tarzan to cut the ropes binding his legs. As the men stopped their dance and came closer, she signaled for him to get up. She put the rope that had been around his legs around his neck and led him across the courtyard, with the men following in pairs.
Through winding corridors she led, farther and farther into the remoter precincts of the temple, until they came to a great chamber in the center of which stood an altar. Then it was that Tarzan translated the strange ceremony that had preceded his introduction into this holy of holies.
Through winding hallways she guided them, deeper and deeper into the more secluded areas of the temple, until they arrived at a large room where an altar stood in the center. That’s when Tarzan explained the unusual ritual that had taken place before he was brought into this sacred space.
He had fallen into the hands of descendants of the ancient sun worshippers. His seeming rescue by a votaress of the high priestess of the sun had been but a part of the mimicry of their heathen ceremony—the sun looking down upon him through the opening at the top of the court had claimed him as his own, and the priestess had come from the inner temple to save him from the polluting hands of worldlings—to save him as a human offering to their flaming deity.
He had fallen into the hands of the descendants of the ancient sun worshippers. His apparent rescue by a devotee of the high priestess of the sun was just part of their pagan ceremony—the sun looking down on him through the opening at the top of the court had claimed him as its own, and the priestess had come from the inner temple to save him from the corrupting hands of ordinary people—to save him as a human sacrifice to their blazing deity.
And had he needed further assurance as to the correctness of his theory he had only to cast his eyes upon the brownish-red stains that caked the stone altar and covered the floor in its immediate vicinity, or to the human skulls which grinned from countless niches in the towering walls.
And if he needed more proof that his theory was right, he just had to look at the brownish-red stains that caked the stone altar and covered the floor around it, or at the human skulls that grinned from countless niches in the towering walls.
The priestess led the victim to the altar steps. Again the galleries above filled with watchers, while from an arched doorway at the east end of the chamber a procession of females filed slowly into the room. They wore, like the men, only skins of wild animals caught about their waists with rawhide belts or chains of gold; but the black masses of their hair were incrusted with golden headgear composed of many circular and oval pieces of gold ingeniously held together to form a metal cap from which depended at each side of the head, long strings of oval pieces falling to the waist.
The priestess led the victim up the altar steps. Once again, the galleries above filled with onlookers, while a procession of women slowly entered the room through an arched doorway at the east end of the chamber. Like the men, they wore only wild animal skins around their waists held in place by rawhide belts or chains of gold; however, the thick masses of their hair were adorned with golden headgear made of many circular and oval pieces of gold cleverly fastened together to create a metal cap, from which long strings of oval pieces hung down to their waists on both sides.
The females were more symmetrically proportioned than the males, their features were much more perfect, the shapes of their heads and their large, soft, black eyes denoting far greater intelligence and humanity than was possessed by their lords and masters.
The females had more symmetrical proportions than the males, their features were much more refined, and the shapes of their heads along with their large, soft, dark eyes showed a much higher level of intelligence and humanity than that of their lords and masters.
Each priestess bore two golden cups, and as they formed in line along one side of the altar the men formed opposite them, advancing and taking each a cup from the female opposite. Then the chant began once more, and presently from a dark passageway beyond the altar another female emerged from the cavernous depths beneath the chamber.
Each priestess carried two golden cups, and as they lined up on one side of the altar, the men lined up opposite them, moving forward to take a cup from the woman in front of them. Then the chant started again, and soon a woman appeared from a dark passageway beyond the altar, coming out from the deep cavern beneath the chamber.
The high priestess, thought Tarzan. She was a young woman with a rather intelligent and shapely face. Her ornaments were similar to those worn by her votaries, but much more elaborate, many being set with diamonds. Her bare arms and legs were almost concealed by the massive, bejeweled ornaments which covered them, while her single leopard skin was supported by a close-fitting girdle of golden rings set in strange designs with innumerable small diamonds. In the girdle she carried a long, jeweled knife, and in her hand a slender wand in lieu of a bludgeon.
The high priestess, Tarzan thought. She was a young woman with a pretty smart and attractive face. Her jewelry was similar to what her followers wore, but much fancier, with many pieces adorned with diamonds. Her bare arms and legs were nearly covered by the heavy, jeweled ornaments draped over them, while a single leopard skin was held in place by a snug girdle of golden rings decorated with unusual designs and countless tiny diamonds. In the girdle, she carried a long, jeweled knife, and in her hand was a slim wand instead of a club.
As she advanced to the opposite side of the altar she halted, and the chanting ceased. The priests and priestesses knelt before her, while with wand extended above them she recited a long and tiresome prayer. Her voice was soft and musical—Tarzan could scarce realize that its possessor in a moment more would be transformed by the fanatical ecstasy of religious zeal into a wild-eyed and bloodthirsty executioner, who, with dripping knife, would be the first to drink her victim’s red, warm blood from the little golden cup that stood upon the altar.
As she walked to the other side of the altar, she stopped, and the chanting stopped. The priests and priestesses knelt before her, and with her wand held high, she recited a long and tedious prayer. Her voice was soft and melodic—Tarzan could hardly believe that in just a moment, she would be turned, by the intense excitement of religious passion, into a wild-eyed and bloodthirsty executioner who, with a bloody knife, would be the first to drink her victim’s warm, red blood from the small golden cup on the altar.
As she finished her prayer she let her eyes rest for the first time upon Tarzan. With every indication of considerable curiosity she examined him from head to foot. Then she addressed him, and when she had finished stood waiting, as though she expected a reply.
As she finished her prayer, she finally let her eyes rest on Tarzan. With clear curiosity, she took in his appearance from head to toe. Then she spoke to him, and after she finished, she stood there waiting, as if she expected him to respond.
“I do not understand your language,” said Tarzan. “Possibly we may speak together in another tongue?” But she could not understand him, though he tried French, English, Arab, Waziri, and, as a last resort, the mongrel tongue of the West Coast.
“I don’t understand your language,” said Tarzan. “Maybe we can talk in another language?” But she couldn’t understand him, even though he tried French, English, Arabic, Waziri, and, as a last resort, the mixed language of the West Coast.
She shook her head, and it seemed that there was a note of weariness in her voice as she motioned to the priests to continue with the rites. These now circled in a repetition of their idiotic dance, which was terminated finally at a command from the priestess, who had stood throughout, still looking intently upon Tarzan.
She shook her head, and there was a hint of exhaustion in her voice as she signaled the priests to keep going with the rituals. They began their silly dance again, which finally ended when the priestess—who had been standing the whole time, still looking closely at Tarzan—gave the command.
At her signal the priests rushed upon the ape-man, and, lifting him bodily, laid him upon his back across the altar, his head hanging over one edge, his legs over the opposite. Then they and the priestesses formed in two lines, with their little golden cups in readiness to capture a share of the victim’s lifeblood after the sacrificial knife had accomplished its work.
At her signal, the priests charged at the ape-man, lifting him up and laying him on his back across the altar, his head hanging over one edge and his legs over the other. Then, they and the priestesses lined up in two rows, holding their small golden cups, ready to collect a portion of the victim’s blood after the sacrificial knife had completed its task.
In the line of priests an altercation arose as to who should have first place. A burly brute with all the refined intelligence of a gorilla stamped upon his bestial face was attempting to push a smaller man to second place, but the smaller one appealed to the high priestess, who in a cold peremptory voice sent the larger to the extreme end of the line. Tarzan could hear him growling and rumbling as he went slowly to the inferior station.
In the line of priests, a dispute broke out over who should take the top spot. A big, rough guy with the subtlety of a gorilla scowled as he tried to shove a smaller man down to second place, but the smaller man turned to the high priestess. In a sharp and commanding tone, she sent the larger man all the way to the back of the line. Tarzan could hear him grumbling and mumbling as he slowly moved to the less important position.
Then the priestess, standing above him, began reciting what Tarzan took to be an invocation, the while she slowly raised her thin, sharp knife aloft. It seemed ages to the ape-man before her arm ceased its upward progress and the knife halted high above his unprotected breast.
Then the priestess, standing over him, started chanting what Tarzan thought was an invocation, all while she slowly raised her thin, sharp knife up high. It felt like forever to the ape-man before her arm stopped moving upward and the knife hung high above his unprotected chest.
Then it started downward, slowly at first, but as the incantation increased in rapidity, with greater speed. At the end of the line Tarzan could still hear the grumbling of the disgruntled priest. The man’s voice rose louder and louder. A priestess near him spoke in sharp tones of rebuke. The knife was quite near to Tarzan’s breast now, but it halted for an instant as the high priestess raised her eyes to shoot her swift displeasure at the instigator of this sacrilegious interruption.
Then it started to go down, slowly at first, but as the chant picked up speed, it went faster. At the end of the line, Tarzan could still hear the complaints of the unhappy priest. The man’s voice got louder and louder. A priestess near him spoke in a sharp tone of reprimand. The knife was very close to Tarzan’s chest now, but it paused for a moment as the high priestess looked up to cast her quick disapproval at the person causing this blasphemous interruption.
There was a sudden commotion in the direction of the disputants, and Tarzan rolled his head in their direction in time to see the burly brute of a priest leap upon the woman opposite him, dashing out her brains with a single blow of his heavy cudgel. Then that happened which Tarzan had witnessed a hundred times before among the wild denizens of his own savage jungle. He had seen the thing fall upon Kerchak, and Tublat, and Terkoz; upon a dozen of the other mighty bull apes of his tribe; and upon Tantor, the elephant; there was scarce any of the males of the forest that did not at times fall prey to it. The priest went mad, and with his heavy bludgeon ran amuck among his fellows.
There was a sudden uproar among the fighters, and Tarzan turned his head to see the big, brutish priest jump onto the woman in front of him, smashing her skull with a single swing of his heavy club. Then, what Tarzan had seen happen countless times before among the wild creatures in his own savage jungle unfolded. He had watched the same scene play out with Kerchak, Tublat, Terkoz, and a dozen other powerful male apes from his tribe, as well as Tantor, the elephant; nearly all the males of the forest occasionally fell victim to it. The priest lost his mind and, with his heavy weapon, went on a rampage among his peers.
His screams of rage were frightful as he dashed hither and thither, dealing terrific blows with his giant weapon, or sinking his yellow fangs into the flesh of some luckless victim. And during it the priestess stood with poised knife above Tarzan, her eyes fixed in horror upon the maniacal thing that was dealing out death and destruction to her votaries.
His screams of rage were terrifying as he ran back and forth, delivering powerful blows with his massive weapon or sinking his yellow fangs into the flesh of some unfortunate victim. Meanwhile, the priestess stood with a raised knife above Tarzan, her eyes filled with horror as she watched the maniac wreaking death and destruction on her followers.
Presently the room was emptied except for the dead and dying on the floor, the victim upon the altar, the high priestess, and the madman. As the cunning eyes of the latter fell upon the woman they lighted with a new and sudden lust. Slowly he crept toward her, and now he spoke; but this time there fell upon Tarzan’s surprised ears a language he could understand; the last one that he would ever have thought of employing in attempting to converse with human beings—the low guttural barking of the tribe of great anthropoids—his own mother tongue. And the woman answered the man in the same language.
The room was mostly empty, except for the dead and dying on the floor, the victim on the altar, the high priestess, and the madman. When the madman’s sharp eyes landed on the woman, they sparked with a new and sudden desire. He slowly moved closer to her, and then he spoke; this time, Tarzan was surprised to hear a language he could understand—one he never would have expected to use to communicate with humans—the low, guttural barking of the tribe of great anthropoids—his own mother tongue. The woman responded to the man in the same language.
He was threatening—she attempting to reason with him, for it was quite evident that she saw that he was past her authority. The brute was quite close now—creeping with clawlike hands extended toward her around the end of the altar. Tarzan strained at the bonds which held his arms pinioned behind him. The woman did not see—she had forgotten her prey in the horror of the danger that threatened herself. As the brute leaped past Tarzan to clutch his victim, the ape-man gave one superhuman wrench at the thongs that held him. The effort sent him rolling from the altar to the stone floor on the opposite side from that on which the priestess stood; but as he sprang to his feet the thongs dropped from his freed arms, and at the same time he realized that he was alone in the inner temple—the high priestess and the mad priest had disappeared.
He was menacing—she was trying to reason with him, since it was clear that she recognized he was beyond her control. The brute was very close now—sneaking with his claw-like hands reaching toward her around the end of the altar. Tarzan struggled against the ropes that tied his arms behind him. The woman didn’t notice—she had forgotten her target in the terror of the danger looming over her. As the brute leaped past Tarzan to grab his prey, the ape-man gave one superhuman tug at the bindings that held him. The effort sent him rolling off the altar to the stone floor on the opposite side from where the priestess stood; but as he got back on his feet, the ropes fell away from his now-free arms, and at the same moment, he realized he was alone in the inner temple—the high priestess and the crazy priest had vanished.
And then a muffled scream came from the cavernous mouth of the dark hole beyond the sacrificial altar through which the priestess had entered the temple. Without even a thought for his own safety, or the possibility for escape which this rapid series of fortuitous circumstances had thrust upon him, Tarzan of the Apes answered the call of the woman in danger. With a little bound he was at the gaping entrance to the subterranean chamber, and a moment later was running down a flight of age-old concrete steps that led he knew not where.
And then a muffled scream echoed from the dark mouth of the hole beyond the sacrificial altar where the priestess had entered the temple. Without even thinking about his own safety or the chance to escape that this quick series of lucky events had given him, Tarzan of the Apes responded to the woman's cry for help. With a small leap, he reached the open entrance to the underground chamber, and moments later, he was running down a set of ancient concrete steps that he didn’t know led to where.
The faint light that filtered in from above showed him a large, low-ceiled vault from which several doorways led off into inky darkness, but there was no need to thread an unknown way, for there before him lay the objects of his search—the mad brute had the girl upon the floor, and gorilla-like fingers were clutching frantically at her throat as she struggled to escape the fury of the awful thing upon her.
The dim light coming in from above revealed a large, low-ceilinged room with several doorways leading into pitch-black darkness. But there was no need to wander down an unknown path, because right in front of him was what he had been looking for—the crazed brute had the girl on the floor, and its gorilla-like hands were desperately gripping her throat as she fought to break free from the rage of the terrifying creature above her.
As Tarzan’s heavy hand fell upon his shoulder the priest dropped his victim, and turned upon her would-be rescuer. With foam-flecked lips and bared fangs the mad sun-worshiper battled with the tenfold power of the maniac. In the blood lust of his fury the creature had undergone a sudden reversion to type, which left him a wild beast, forgetful of the dagger that projected from his belt—thinking only of nature’s weapons with which his brute prototype had battled.
As Tarzan's strong hand landed on his shoulder, the priest released his victim and turned to face her would-be savior. With foamy lips and bared teeth, the crazed sun-worshiper fought with the unhinged power of a madman. In his bloodlust, he had quickly reverted to a primal state, becoming a wild beast, forgetting the dagger that hung from his belt—focused only on the natural weapons that his animal counterpart had fought with.
But if he could use his teeth and hands to advantage, he found one even better versed in the school of savage warfare to which he had reverted, for Tarzan of the Apes closed with him, and they fell to the floor tearing and rending at one another like two bull apes; while the primitive priestess stood flattened against the wall, watching with wide, fear-fascinated eyes the growling, snapping beasts at her feet.
But if he could use his teeth and hands effectively, he found someone even more skilled in the brutal style of fighting he had fallen back on, as Tarzan of the Apes grappled with him, and they crashed to the floor, clawing and tearing at each other like two male apes; while the primitive priestess pressed herself flat against the wall, watching with wide, terrified fascination as the snarling, snapping creatures fought at her feet.
At last she saw the stranger close one mighty hand upon the throat of his antagonist, and as he forced the bruteman’s head far back rain blow after blow upon the upturned face. A moment later he threw the still thing from him, and, arising, shook himself like a lion. He placed a foot upon the carcass before him, and raised his head to give the victory cry of his kind, but as his eyes fell upon the opening above him leading into the temple of human sacrifice he thought better of his intended act.
At last, she saw the stranger grip his opponent’s throat with one powerful hand, and as he forced the brute’s head back, he landed blow after blow on his exposed face. Moments later, he tossed the still body away from him, and, standing up, shook himself like a lion. He placed a foot on the carcass in front of him and raised his head to let out the victory cry of his kind, but when his gaze fell on the opening above him leading into the temple of human sacrifice, he reconsidered his planned action.
The girl, who had been half paralyzed by fear as the two men fought, had just commenced to give thought to her probable fate now that, though released from the clutches of a madman, she had fallen into the hands of one whom but a moment before she had been upon the point of killing. She looked about for some means of escape. The black mouth of a diverging corridor was near at hand, but as she turned to dart into it the ape-man’s eyes fell upon her, and with a quick leap he was at her side, and a restraining hand was laid upon her arm.
The girl, who had been paralyzed with fear while the two men fought, had just started to think about what might happen to her now that, although she had escaped from a madman, she had ended up in the hands of someone she had nearly killed just moments earlier. She looked around for a way to escape. The dark entrance to a side corridor was close by, but as she turned to rush into it, the ape-man's gaze locked onto her, and with a quick leap he was by her side, placing a restraining hand on her arm.
“Wait!” said Tarzan of the Apes, in the language of the tribe of Kerchak.
“Wait!” said Tarzan of the Apes, in the language of the Kerchak tribe.
The girl looked at him in astonishment.
The girl stared at him in disbelief.
“Who are you,” she whispered, “who speaks the language of the first man?”
“Who are you,” she whispered, “who speaks the language of the first man?”
“I am Tarzan of the Apes,” he answered in the vernacular of the anthropoids.
“I am Tarzan of the Apes,” he replied in the language of the apes.
“What do you want of me?” she continued. “For what purpose did you save me from Tha?”
“What do you want from me?” she asked. “Why did you save me from Tha?”
“I could not see a woman murdered?” It was a half question that answered her.
“I couldn’t see a woman get murdered?” It was a half question that answered her.
“But what do you intend to do with me now?” she continued.
“But what are you planning to do with me now?” she continued.
“Nothing,” he replied, “but you can do something for me—you can lead me out of this place to freedom.” He made the suggestion without the slightest thought that she would accede. He felt quite sure that the sacrifice would go on from the point where it had been interrupted if the high priestess had her way, though he was equally positive that they would find Tarzan of the Apes unbound and with a long dagger in his hand a much less tractable victim than Tarzan disarmed and bound.
“Nothing,” he replied, “but you can help me—you can guide me out of this place to freedom.” He suggested it without any expectation that she would agree. He was pretty sure that the sacrifice would resume from where it had been interrupted if the high priestess had her way, although he was equally certain that they would find Tarzan of the Apes unbound and holding a long dagger in his hand a much less compliant victim than Tarzan disarmed and tied up.
The girl stood looking at him for a long moment before she spoke.
The girl stared at him for a long moment before she said anything.
“You are a very wonderful man,” she said. “You are such a man as I have seen in my daydreams ever since I was a little girl. You are such a man as I imagine the forbears of my people must have been—the great race of people who built this mighty city in the heart of a savage world that they might wrest from the bowels of the earth the fabulous wealth for which they had sacrificed their far-distant civilization.
“You're an amazing man,” she said. “You're exactly the kind of man I've envisioned in my daydreams since I was a little girl. You're like what I imagine the ancestors of my people must have been—those great people who built this incredible city in the middle of a wild world so they could extract the fabulous wealth from the earth that they sacrificed their once-thriving civilization for.”
“I cannot understand why you came to my rescue in the first place, and now I cannot understand why, having me within your power, you do not wish to be revenged upon me for having sentenced you to death—for having almost put you to death with my own hand.”
“I don’t get why you helped me out in the first place, and now I can’t understand why, with me in your control, you don’t want to take revenge on me for sentencing you to death—for almost killing you myself.”
“I presume,” replied the ape-man, “that you but followed the teachings of your religion. I cannot blame YOU for that, no matter what I may think of your creed. But who are you—what people have I fallen among?”
“I assume,” replied the ape-man, “that you simply followed the teachings of your religion. I can’t hold that against YOU, no matter what I may think of your beliefs. But who are you—what group of people have I come across?”
“I am La, high priestess of the Temple of the Sun, in the city of Opar. We are descendants of a people who came to this savage world more than ten thousand years ago in search of gold. Their cities stretched from a great sea under the rising sun to a great sea into which the sun descends at night to cool his flaming brow. They were very rich and very powerful, but they lived only a few months of the year in their magnificent palaces here; the rest of the time they spent in their native land, far, far to the north.
“I am La, the high priestess of the Temple of the Sun, in the city of Opar. We are the descendants of a people who arrived in this wild world over ten thousand years ago looking for gold. Their cities spanned from a vast sea under the rising sun to a great sea where the sun sets at night to cool its blazing brow. They were incredibly wealthy and powerful, but they only lived a few months of the year in their magnificent palaces here; the rest of the time, they spent in their homeland, far to the north.”
“Many ships went back and forth between this new world and the old. During the rainy season there were but few of the inhabitants remained here, only those who superintended the working of the mines by the black slaves, and the merchants who had to stay to supply their wants, and the soldiers who guarded the cities and the mines.
“Many ships traveled back and forth between this new world and the old. During the rainy season, only a few of the inhabitants stayed here: those overseeing the work of the black slaves in the mines, the merchants who had to remain to meet their needs, and the soldiers guarding the cities and the mines.”
“It was at one of these times that the great calamity occurred. When the time came for the teeming thousands to return none came. For weeks the people waited. Then they sent out a great galley to learn why no one came from the mother country, but though they sailed about for many months, they were unable to find any trace of the mighty land that had for countless ages borne their ancient civilization—it had sunk into the sea.
“It was during one of these times that the great disaster happened. When it was time for the huge crowds to return, no one showed up. For weeks, the people waited. Then they sent out a massive ship to find out why no one was coming from the homeland, but even after sailing for many months, they couldn't find any trace of the great land that had supported their ancient civilization for countless ages—it had sunk into the sea.”
“From that day dated the downfall of my people. Disheartened and unhappy, they soon became a prey to the black hordes of the north and the black hordes of the south. One by one the cities were deserted or overcome. The last remnant was finally forced to take shelter within this mighty mountain fortress. Slowly we have dwindled in power, in civilization, in intellect, in numbers, until now we are no more than a small tribe of savage apes.
“From that day marked the decline of my people. Discouraged and unhappy, they quickly fell victim to the dark armies from the north and the dark armies from the south. One by one, the cities were abandoned or conquered. The last remnants were ultimately pushed to seek refuge within this great mountain stronghold. Gradually, we have lost our power, our culture, our intellect, and our numbers, until now we are little more than a small tribe of primitive apes.”
“In fact, the apes live with us, and have for many ages. We call them the first men—we speak their language quite as much as we do our own; only in the rituals of the temple do we make any attempt to retain our mother tongue. In time it will be forgotten, and we will speak only the language of the apes; in time we will no longer banish those of our people who mate with apes, and so in time we shall descend to the very beasts from which ages ago our progenitors may have sprung.”
“In fact, the apes live among us, and have for a very long time. We refer to them as the first men—we communicate in their language as much as our own; only during the rituals at the temple do we try to keep our original language alive. Eventually, it will be forgotten, and we will only speak the apes' language; eventually, we won’t exclude our people who mate with apes, and so eventually we will descend to the very beasts from which our ancestors may have come long ago.”
“But why are you more human than the others?” asked the man.
“But why are you more human than the rest?” asked the man.
“For some reason the women have not reverted to savagery so rapidly as the men. It may be because only the lower types of men remained here at the time of the great catastrophe, while the temples were filled with the noblest daughters of the race. My strain has remained clearer than the rest because for countless ages my foremothers were high priestesses—the sacred office descends from mother to daughter. Our husbands are chosen for us from the noblest in the land. The most perfect man, mentally and physically, is selected to be the husband of the high priestess.”
“For some reason, the women haven't returned to savagery as quickly as the men. This might be because only the lower classes of men were left here during the great catastrophe, while the temples were filled with the noblest daughters of the race. My lineage has stayed purer than others because for countless generations, my foremothers were high priestesses—the sacred role is passed down from mother to daughter. Our husbands are chosen from the noblest in the land. The most perfect man, both mentally and physically, is picked to be the husband of the high priestess.”
“From what I saw of the gentlemen above,” said Tarzan, with a grin, “there should be little trouble in choosing from among them.”
“From what I saw of the guys up there,” said Tarzan, with a grin, “it shouldn’t be hard to pick one of them.”
The girl looked at him quizzically for a moment.
The girl looked at him curiously for a moment.
“Do not be sacrilegious,” she said. “They are very holy men—they are priests.”
“Don’t be disrespectful,” she said. “They are very holy men—they’re priests.”
“Then there are others who are better to look upon?” he asked.
“Are there others who look better?” he asked.
“The others are all more ugly than the priests,” she replied.
“The others are all uglier than the priests,” she replied.
Tarzan shuddered at her fate, for even in the dim light of the vault he was impressed by her beauty.
Tarzan shivered at her fate, for even in the dim light of the vault he was struck by her beauty.
“But how about myself?” he asked suddenly. “Are you going to lead me to liberty?”
“But what about me?” he asked suddenly. “Are you going to guide me to freedom?”
“You have been chosen by The Flaming God as his own,” she answered solemnly. “Not even I have the power to save you—should they find you again. But I do not intend that they shall find you. You risked your life to save mine. I may do no less for you. It will be no easy matter—it may require days; but in the end I think that I can lead you beyond the walls. Come, they will look here for me presently, and if they find us together we shall both be lost—they would kill me did they think that I had proved false to my god.”
“You’ve been chosen by The Flaming God as his own,” she said seriously. “Not even I have the power to save you if they find you again. But I’m determined they won’t find you. You risked your life to save mine, and I won’t do any less for you. It won’t be easy—it might take days—but I believe I can lead you beyond the walls in the end. Come on, they’ll be looking for me here soon, and if they find us together, we’re both done for—they would kill me if they thought I had betrayed my god.”
“You must not take the risk, then,” he said quickly. “I will return to the temple, and if I can fight my way to freedom there will be no suspicion thrown upon you.”
“You can’t take that chance,” he said quickly. “I’ll go back to the temple, and if I can find a way to escape, no one will suspect you.”
But she would not have it so, and finally persuaded him to follow her, saying that they had already remained in the vault too long to prevent suspicion from falling upon her even if they returned to the temple.
But she wouldn't accept that, and eventually convinced him to follow her, saying that they had already been in the vault too long to avoid raising suspicion about her even if they went back to the temple.
“I will hide you, and then return alone,” she said, “telling them that I was long unconscious after you killed Tha, and that I do not know whither you escaped.”
“I'll hide you, and then I'll come back alone,” she said, “telling them that I was out cold for a long time after you killed Tha, and that I have no idea where you went.”
And so she led him through winding corridors of gloom, until finally they came to a small chamber into which a little light filtered through a stone grating in the ceiling.
And so she guided him through dark, twisting hallways, until they finally reached a small room where a bit of light came through a stone grate in the ceiling.
“This is the Chamber of the Dead,” she said. “None will think of searching here for you—they would not dare. I will return after it is dark. By that time I may have found a plan to effect your escape.”
“This is the Chamber of the Dead,” she said. “No one will think to look for you here—they wouldn’t dare. I’ll come back after dark. By then, I might have figured out a way to help you escape.”
She was gone, and Tarzan of the Apes was left alone in the Chamber of the Dead, beneath the long-dead city of Opar.
She was gone, and Tarzan of the Apes was left alone in the Chamber of the Dead, beneath the long-abandoned city of Opar.
Chapter XXI
The Castaways
Clayton dreamed that he was drinking his fill of water, pure, delightful drafts of fresh water. With a start he gained consciousness to find himself wet through by torrents of rain that were falling upon his body and his upturned face. A heavy tropical shower was beating down upon them. He opened his mouth and drank. Presently he was so revived and strengthened that he was enabled to raise himself upon his hands. Across his legs lay Monsieur Thuran. A few feet aft Jane Porter was huddled in a pitiful little heap in the bottom of the boat—she was quite still. Clayton knew that she was dead.
Clayton dreamed he was drinking to his heart's content, enjoying refreshing sips of pure water. Suddenly, he became aware of the torrential rain soaking him, hitting his body and upturned face. A heavy tropical shower was pouring down on them. He opened his mouth and drank. Soon, he felt so refreshed and energized that he managed to lift himself up on his hands. Monsieur Thuran lay across his legs. A few feet behind him, Jane Porter was curled up in a sad little heap at the bottom of the boat—she was completely still. Clayton realized that she was dead.
After infinite labor he released himself from Thuran’s pinioning body, and with renewed strength crawled toward the girl. He raised her head from the rough boards of the boat’s bottom. There might be life in that poor, starved frame even yet. He could not quite abandon all hope, and so he seized a water-soaked rag and squeezed the precious drops between the swollen lips of the hideous thing that had but a few short days before glowed with the resplendent life of happy youth and glorious beauty.
After endless effort, he freed himself from Thuran's restraining body, and with newfound strength, crawled toward the girl. He lifted her head from the rough boards of the boat's bottom. There might still be life in that poor, starved body. He couldn't completely give up hope, so he grabbed a water-soaked rag and squeezed the precious droplets between the swollen lips of the hideous figure that just a few days before had shone with the vibrant life of youthful happiness and stunning beauty.
For some time there was no sign of returning animation, but at last his efforts were rewarded by a slight tremor of the half-closed lids. He chafed the thin hands, and forced a few more drops of water into the parched throat. The girl opened her eyes, looking up at him for a long time before she could recall her surroundings.
For a while, there was no sign of any life coming back, but finally, his efforts paid off with a slight flutter of her half-closed eyelids. He rubbed her thin hands and managed to get a few more drops of water into her dry throat. The girl opened her eyes, staring up at him for a long time before she could remember where she was.
“Water?” she whispered. “Are we saved?”
“Water?” she whispered. “Are we safe?”
“It is raining,” he explained. “We may at least drink. Already it has revived us both.”
“It’s raining,” he said. “At least we can have a drink. It’s already lifted our spirits.”
“Monsieur Thuran?” she asked. “He did not kill you. Is he dead?”
“Monsieur Thuran?” she asked. “He didn't kill you. Is he dead?”
“I do not know,” replied Clayton. “If he lives and this rain revives him—” But he stopped there, remembering too late that he must not add further to the horrors which the girl already had endured.
“I don’t know,” Clayton replied. “If he survives and this rain brings him back—” But he stopped there, realizing too late that he shouldn't add to the horrors the girl had already faced.
But she guessed what he would have said.
But she figured out what he would have said.
“Where is he?” she asked.
"Where's he?" she asked.
Clayton nodded his head toward the prostrate form of the Russian. For a time neither spoke.
Clayton nodded towards the lying figure of the Russian. For a while, neither of them said anything.
“I will see if I can revive him,” said Clayton at length.
"I'll see if I can bring him back," Clayton said after a moment.
“No,” she whispered, extending a detaining hand toward him. “Do not do that—he will kill you when the water has given him strength. If he is dying, let him die. Do not leave me alone in this boat with that beast.”
“No,” she whispered, reaching out to stop him. “Don’t do that—he will kill you when the water gives him strength. If he’s dying, let him die. Don’t leave me alone in this boat with that monster.”
Clayton hesitated. His honor demanded that he attempt to revive Thuran, and there was the possibility, too, that the Russian was beyond human aid. It was not dishonorable to hope so. As he sat fighting out his battle he presently raised his eyes from the body of the man, and as they passed above the gunwale of the boat he staggered weakly to his feet with a little cry of joy.
Clayton hesitated. His honor compelled him to try to revive Thuran, and there was also the chance that the Russian was beyond any human help. It wasn't dishonorable to think that way. As he sat wrestling with his thoughts, he eventually lifted his eyes from the man's body, and as his gaze went above the edge of the boat, he weakly staggered to his feet with a small cry of joy.
“Land, Jane!” he almost shouted through his cracked lips. “Thank God, land!”
“Land, Jane!” he almost shouted through his chapped lips. “Thank God, land!”
The girl looked, too, and there, not a hundred yards away, she saw a yellow beach, and, beyond, the luxurious foliage of a tropical jungle.
The girl looked as well, and there, not a hundred yards away, she saw a yellow beach, and, beyond it, the lush greenery of a tropical jungle.
“Now you may revive him,” said Jane Porter, for she, too, had been haunted with the pangs of conscience which had resulted from her decision to prevent Clayton from offering succor to their companion.
“Now you can bring him back,” said Jane Porter, because she, too, had been troubled by the guilt from her choice to stop Clayton from helping their friend.
It required the better part of half an hour before the Russian evinced sufficient symptoms of returning consciousness to open his eyes, and it was some time later before they could bring him to a realization of their good fortune. By this time the boat was scraping gently upon the sandy bottom.
It took almost half an hour for the Russian to show enough signs of coming around to open his eyes, and it was a while longer before they could make him understand their good luck. By then, the boat was gently scraping against the sandy bottom.
Between the refreshing water that he had drunk and the stimulus of renewed hope, Clayton found strength to stagger through the shallow water to the shore with a line made fast to the boat’s bow. This he fastened to a small tree which grew at the top of a low bank, for the tide was at flood, and he feared that the boat might carry them all out to sea again with the ebb, since it was quite likely that it would be beyond his strength to get Jane Porter to the shore for several hours. Next he managed to stagger and crawl toward the near-by jungle, where he had seen evidences of profusion of tropical fruit. His former experience in the jungle of Tarzan of the Apes had taught him which of the many growing things were edible, and after nearly an hour of absence he returned to the beach with a little armful of food.
Between the refreshing water he had drunk and the boost of renewed hope, Clayton found the strength to stagger through the shallow water to the shore with a line secured to the boat’s bow. He tied it to a small tree at the top of a low bank, as the tide was high, and he worried that the boat might drift them all out to sea again when the tide went out, since it was likely that he wouldn’t have the strength to get Jane Porter to the shore for several hours. Next, he managed to stagger and crawl toward the nearby jungle, where he had seen signs of an abundance of tropical fruit. His previous experience in the jungle from Tarzan of the Apes had taught him which of the many plants were edible, and after nearly an hour, he returned to the beach with a small armful of food.
The rain had ceased, and the hot sun was beating down so mercilessly upon her that Jane Porter insisted on making an immediate attempt to gain the land. Still further invigorated by the food Clayton had brought, the three were able to reach the half shade of the small tree to which their boat was moored. Here, thoroughly exhausted, they threw themselves down to rest, sleeping until dark.
The rain had stopped, and the hot sun was beating down so fiercely on her that Jane Porter insisted on making a quick attempt to reach the land. Energized by the food Clayton had brought, the three were able to make it to the partial shade of the small tree where their boat was tied up. Here, completely worn out, they lay down to rest, sleeping until it was dark.
For a month they lived upon the beach in comparative safety. As their strength returned the two men constructed a rude shelter in the branches of a tree, high enough from the ground to insure safety from the larger beasts of prey. By day they gathered fruits and trapped small rodents; at night they lay cowering within their frail shelter while savage denizens of the jungle made hideous the hours of darkness.
For a month, they lived on the beach in relative safety. As they regained their strength, the two men built a makeshift shelter in the branches of a tree, high enough off the ground to protect them from larger predators. During the day, they gathered fruits and trapped small rodents; at night, they huddled together in their flimsy shelter while the savage creatures of the jungle made the darkness terrifying.
They slept upon litters of jungle grasses, and for covering at night Jane Porter had only an old ulster that belonged to Clayton, the same garment that he had worn upon that memorable trip to the Wisconsin woods. Clayton had erected a frail partition of boughs to divide their arboreal shelter into two rooms—one for the girl and the other for Monsieur Thuran and himself.
They slept on piles of jungle grass, and at night Jane Porter had just an old coat that belonged to Clayton, the same one he wore on that unforgettable trip to the Wisconsin woods. Clayton had put up a weak barrier made of branches to split their tree shelter into two rooms—one for the girl and the other for Monsieur Thuran and himself.
From the first the Russian had exhibited every trait of his true character—selfishness, boorishness, arrogance, cowardice, and lust. Twice had he and Clayton come to blows because of Thuran’s attitude toward the girl. Clayton dared not leave her alone with him for an instant. The existence of the Englishman and his fiancee was one continual nightmare of horror, and yet they lived on in hope of ultimate rescue.
From the start, the Russian showed every aspect of his true nature—selfishness, rudeness, arrogance, cowardice, and desire. Twice he and Clayton had gotten into fights because of Thuran’s behavior toward the girl. Clayton wouldn’t dare leave her alone with him for even a moment. The life of the Englishman and his fiancée was a constant nightmare, but they held on to hope for eventual rescue.
Jane Porter’s thoughts often reverted to her other experience on this savage shore. Ah, if the invincible forest god of that dead past were but with them now. No longer would there be aught to fear from prowling beasts, or from the bestial Russian. She could not well refrain from comparing the scant protection afforded her by Clayton with what she might have expected had Tarzan of the Apes been for a single instant confronted by the sinister and menacing attitude of Monsieur Thuran. Once, when Clayton had gone to the little stream for water, and Thuran had spoken coarsely to her, she voiced her thoughts.
Jane Porter often found herself thinking about her previous experience on this wild shore. If only the powerful forest god from her past were with them now. They wouldn’t have to fear the lurking beasts or the brutal Russian. She couldn’t help but compare the limited protection that Clayton offered her with what she would have expected if Tarzan of the Apes had faced the threatening attitude of Monsieur Thuran, even for just a moment. Once, when Clayton had gone to the small stream for water and Thuran had spoken rudely to her, she shared her thoughts.
“It is well for you, Monsieur Thuran,” she said, “that the poor Monsieur Tarzan who was lost from the ship that brought you and Miss Strong to Cape Town is not here now.”
“It’s a good thing for you, Monsieur Thuran,” she said, “that poor Monsieur Tarzan, who got separated from the ship that brought you and Miss Strong to Cape Town, isn’t here now.”
“You knew the pig?” asked Thuran, with a sneer.
“You knew the pig?” Thuran asked with a sneer.
“I knew the man,” she replied. “The only real man, I think, that I have ever known.”
“I knew the guy,” she replied. “The only real guy, I think, that I have ever known.”
There was something in her tone of voice that led the Russian to attribute to her a deeper feeling for his enemy than friendship, and he grasped at the suggestion to be further revenged upon the man whom he supposed dead by besmirching his memory to the girl.
There was something in her tone that made the Russian think she felt more for his enemy than just friendship, and he seized on the idea to get back at the man he believed was dead by tarnishing his memory in front of her.
“He was worse than a pig,” he cried. “He was a poltroon and a coward. To save himself from the righteous wrath of the husband of a woman he had wronged, he perjured his soul in an attempt to place the blame entirely upon her. Not succeeding in this, he ran away from France to escape meeting the husband upon the field of honor. That is why he was on board the ship that bore Miss Strong and myself to Cape Town. I know whereof I speak, for the woman in the case is my sister. Something more I know that I have never told another—your brave Monsieur Tarzan leaped overboard in an agony of fear because I recognized him, and insisted that he make reparation to me the following morning—we could have fought with knives in my stateroom.”
“He was worse than a pig,” he shouted. “He was a coward and a spineless traitor. To save himself from the justified anger of the husband of a woman he had wronged, he lied through his teeth to try and shift all the blame onto her. When that didn’t work, he fled France to avoid facing the husband in a duel. That’s why he was on the ship that took Miss Strong and me to Cape Town. I know what I’m talking about because the woman involved is my sister. There’s something else I know that I’ve never told anyone—your brave Monsieur Tarzan jumped overboard in a panic when I recognized him and insisted that he make things right with me the next morning—we could have fought with knives in my cabin.”
Jane Porter laughed. “You do not for a moment imagine that one who has known both Monsieur Tarzan and you could ever believe such an impossible tale?”
Jane Porter laughed. “You really don’t think that someone who has known both Monsieur Tarzan and you could ever believe such an unbelievable story?”
“Then why did he travel under an assumed name?” asked Monsieur Thuran.
“Then why did he travel using a fake name?” asked Monsieur Thuran.
“I do not believe you,” she cried, but nevertheless the seed of suspicion was sown, for she knew that Hazel Strong had known her forest god only as John Caldwell, of London.
"I don't believe you," she shouted, but still, the seed of doubt was planted, as she realized that Hazel Strong had only known her forest god as John Caldwell from London.
A scant five miles north of their rude shelter, all unknown to them, and practically as remote as though separated by thousands of miles of impenetrable jungle, lay the snug little cabin of Tarzan of the Apes. While farther up the coast, a few miles beyond the cabin, in crude but well-built shelters, lived a little party of eighteen souls—the occupants of the three boats from the Lady Alice from which Clayton’s boat had become separated.
A mere five miles north of their basic shelter, completely unaware to them and almost as distant as if it were separated by thousands of miles of dense jungle, was the cozy little cabin of Tarzan of the Apes. Further up the coast, a few miles beyond the cabin, lived a small group of eighteen people in simple but sturdy shelters—the occupants of the three boats from the Lady Alice from which Clayton’s boat had become separated.
Over a smooth sea they had rowed to the mainland in less than three days. None of the horrors of shipwreck had been theirs, and though depressed by sorrow, and suffering from the shock of the catastrophe and the unaccustomed hardships of their new existence there was none much the worse for the experience.
They had rowed to the mainland over a calm sea in less than three days. They hadn't faced any of the nightmares of a shipwreck, and even though they were weighed down by grief and dealing with the shock of the disaster and the unfamiliar challenges of their new life, none of them were significantly worse off from the experience.
All were buoyed by the hope that the fourth boat had been picked up, and that a thorough search of the coast would be quickly made. As all the firearms and ammunition on the yacht had been placed in Lord Tennington’s boat, the party was well equipped for defense, and for hunting the larger game for food.
Everyone was uplifted by the hope that the fourth boat had been found and that a thorough search of the coast would happen soon. Since all the guns and ammunition from the yacht had been moved to Lord Tennington’s boat, the group was well-prepared for defense and for hunting larger game for food.
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter was their only immediate anxiety. Fully assured in his own mind that his daughter had been picked up by a passing steamer, he gave over the last vestige of apprehension concerning her welfare, and devoted his giant intellect solely to the consideration of those momentous and abstruse scientific problems which he considered the only proper food for thought in one of his erudition. His mind appeared blank to the influence of all extraneous matters.
Professor Archimedes Q. Porter was their only immediate concern. Completely convinced that his daughter had been rescued by a passing steamer, he let go of any last worries about her safety and focused his brilliant mind exclusively on the significant and complex scientific issues he believed were the only worthwhile subjects for someone of his knowledge. He seemed entirely oblivious to everything else around him.
“Never,” said the exhausted Mr. Samuel T. Philander, to Lord Tennington, “never has Professor Porter been more difficult—er—I might say, impossible. Why, only this morning, after I had been forced to relinquish my surveillance for a brief half hour he was entirely missing upon my return. And, bless me, sir, where do you imagine I discovered him? A half mile out in the ocean, sir, in one of the lifeboats, rowing away for dear life. I do not know how he attained even that magnificent distance from shore, for he had but a single oar, with which he was blissfully rowing about in circles.
“Never,” said the exhausted Mr. Samuel T. Philander to Lord Tennington, “never has Professor Porter been more difficult—actually, I’d say impossible. Just this morning, after I had to take a break from keeping an eye on him for a brief half hour, he was totally missing when I got back. And, good heavens, sir, can you guess where I found him? Half a mile out in the ocean, sir, in one of the lifeboats, rowing away for dear life. I have no idea how he managed to get that far from shore, since he only had one oar, with which he was happily rowing in circles."
“When one of the sailors had taken me out to him in another boat the professor became quite indignant at my suggestion that we return at once to land. ‘Why, Mr. Philander,’ he said, ‘I am surprised that you, sir, a man of letters yourself, should have the temerity so to interrupt the progress of science. I had about deduced from certain astronomic phenomena I have had under minute observation during the past several tropic nights an entirely new nebular hypothesis which will unquestionably startle the scientific world. I wish to consult a very excellent monograph on Laplace’s hypothesis, which I understand is in a certain private collection in New York City. Your interference, Mr. Philander, will result in an irreparable delay, for I was just rowing over to obtain this pamphlet.’ And it was with the greatest difficulty that I persuaded him to return to shore, without resorting to force,” concluded Mr. Philander.
“When one of the sailors took me out to him in another boat, the professor became quite upset at my suggestion that we return to land immediately. ‘Why, Mr. Philander,’ he said, ‘I’m surprised that you, a person of letters yourself, would have the boldness to interrupt the progress of science. I’ve almost figured out an entirely new nebular hypothesis based on certain astronomical phenomena I’ve been carefully observing over the past several nights in the tropics. I need to consult a very good monograph on Laplace’s hypothesis, which I understand is in a private collection in New York City. Your interference, Mr. Philander, will cause an irreparable delay, because I was just rowed over to collect this pamphlet.’ And it was with great difficulty that I convinced him to return to shore without using force,” concluded Mr. Philander.
Miss Strong and her mother were very brave under the strain of almost constant apprehension of the attacks of savage beasts. Nor were they quite able to accept so readily as the others the theory that Jane, Clayton, and Monsieur Thuran had been picked up safely.
Miss Strong and her mother were very brave despite the constant fear of attacks from wild animals. They also couldn’t easily believe, like the others, that Jane, Clayton, and Monsieur Thuran had been rescued safely.
Jane Porter’s Esmeralda was in a constant state of tears at the cruel fate which had separated her from her “po, li’le honey.”
Jane Porter’s Esmeralda was always in tears over the cruel fate that had separated her from her “po, li’le honey.”
Lord Tennington’s great-hearted good nature never deserted him for a moment. He was still the jovial host, seeking always for the comfort and pleasure of his guests. With the men of his yacht he remained the just but firm commander—there was never any more question in the jungle than there had been on board the Lady Alice as to who was the final authority in all questions of importance, and in all emergencies requiring cool and intelligent leadership.
Lord Tennington's kind-hearted nature never left him for a second. He was still the cheerful host, always looking out for the comfort and enjoyment of his guests. With the men on his yacht, he was still the fair but strong commander—there was never any doubt in the jungle, just like there hadn't been on board the Lady Alice, about who was in charge when it came to important issues and emergencies that needed calm and smart leadership.
Could this well-organized and comparatively secure party of castaways have seen the ragged, fear-haunted trio a few miles south of them they would scarcely have recognized in them the formerly immaculate members of the little company that had laughed and played upon the Lady Alice. Clayton and Monsieur Thuran were almost naked, so torn had their clothes been by the thorn bushes and tangled vegetation of the matted jungle through which they had been compelled to force their way in search of their ever more difficult food supply.
Could this well-organized and relatively secure group of castaways have seen the tattered, fear-stricken trio a few miles south of them, they would hardly have recognized the once-pristine members of the small company that had laughed and played on the Lady Alice. Clayton and Monsieur Thuran were nearly naked, as their clothes had been torn to shreds by the thorn bushes and tangled vegetation of the dense jungle they had to push through in search of their increasingly scarce food supply.
Jane Porter had of course not been subjected to these strenuous expeditions, but her apparel was, nevertheless, in a sad state of disrepair.
Jane Porter had not been part of these intense journeys, but her clothing was still in pretty bad shape.
Clayton, for lack of any better occupation, had carefully saved the skin of every animal they had killed. By stretching them upon the stems of trees, and diligently scraping them, he had managed to save them in a fair condition, and now that his clothes were threatening to cover his nakedness no longer, he commenced to fashion a rude garment of them, using a sharp thorn for a needle, and bits of tough grass and animal tendons in lieu of thread.
Clayton, with nothing better to do, had saved the skin of every animal they had hunted. By stretching them over tree branches and carefully scraping them, he kept them in decent shape. Now that his clothes were barely covering him, he started to make a crude garment from the skins, using a sharp thorn as a needle and tough grass and animal tendons as thread.
The result when completed was a sleeveless garment which fell nearly to his knees. As it was made up of numerous small pelts of different species of rodents, it presented a rather strange and wonderful appearance, which, together with the vile stench which permeated it, rendered it anything other than a desirable addition to a wardrobe. But the time came when for the sake of decency he was compelled to don it, and even the misery of their condition could not prevent Jane Porter from laughing heartily at sight of him.
The outcome when finished was a sleeveless outfit that nearly reached his knees. Since it was created from many small pelts of various rodent species, it had a rather odd and impressive look, which, along with the awful smell that hung around it, made it anything but a welcome addition to a wardrobe. But the moment arrived when, for the sake of decency, he had to wear it, and even the misery of their situation couldn't stop Jane Porter from laughing loudly at the sight of him.
Later, Thuran also found it necessary to construct a similar primitive garment, so that, with their bare legs and heavily bearded faces, they looked not unlike reincarnations of two prehistoric progenitors of the human race. Thuran acted like one.
Later, Thuran also felt it was necessary to make a similar basic outfit, so that, with their bare legs and thick beards, they resembled two prehistoric ancestors of the human race. Thuran behaved like one.
Nearly two months of this existence had passed when the first great calamity befell them. It was prefaced by an adventure which came near terminating abruptly the sufferings of two of them—terminating them in the grim and horrible manner of the jungle, forever.
Nearly two months of this existence had passed when the first major disaster hit them. It was preceded by an adventure that nearly ended the suffering of two of them—ending it in the grim and horrifying way that the jungle does, forever.
Thuran, down with an attack of jungle fever, lay in the shelter among the branches of their tree of refuge. Clayton had been into the jungle a few hundred yards in search of food. As he returned Jane Porter walked to meet him. Behind the man, cunning and crafty, crept an old and mangy lion. For three days his ancient thews and sinews had proved insufficient for the task of providing his cavernous belly with meat. For months he had eaten less and less frequently, and farther and farther had he roamed from his accustomed haunts in search of easier prey. At last he had found nature’s weakest and most defenseless creature—in a moment more Numa would dine.
Thuran, suffering from jungle fever, lay in the shelter among the branches of their tree of refuge. Clayton had ventured a few hundred yards into the jungle searching for food. As he returned, Jane Porter walked to meet him. Behind him, sly and stealthy, crept an old, scruffy lion. For three days, his aging muscles had failed to provide enough meat for his empty stomach. He had been eating less and less frequently over the months and had wandered farther from his usual spots in search of easier prey. Finally, he had found nature’s weakest and most defenseless creature—in just a moment, Numa would feast.
Clayton, all unconscious of the lurking death behind him, strode out into the open toward Jane. He had reached her side, a hundred feet from the tangled edge of jungle when past his shoulder the girl saw the tawny head and the wicked yellow eyes as the grasses parted, and the huge beast, nose to ground, stepped softly into view.
Clayton, completely unaware of the hidden danger behind him, walked out into the open toward Jane. He had reached her side, a hundred feet from the thick jungle when the girl saw the tawny head and the menacing yellow eyes as the grass moved aside, and the massive beast, with its nose to the ground, quietly came into view.
So frozen with horror was she that she could utter no sound, but the fixed and terrified gaze of her fear-widened eyes spoke as plainly to Clayton as words. A quick glance behind him revealed the hopelessness of their situation. The lion was scarce thirty paces from them, and they were equally as far from the shelter. The man was armed with a stout stick—as efficacious against a hungry lion, he realized, as a toy pop-gun charged with a tethered cork.
So frozen with fear was she that she couldn’t make a sound, but the terrified look in her widened eyes spoke to Clayton just as clearly as words. A quick glance behind him showed how hopeless their situation was. The lion was barely thirty steps away, and they were just as far from safety. The man had a sturdy stick, but he realized it was as useful against a hungry lion as a toy pop-gun with a cork.
Numa, ravenous with hunger, had long since learned the futility of roaring and moaning as he searched for prey, but now that it was as surely his as though already he had felt the soft flesh beneath his still mighty paw, he opened his huge jaws, and gave vent to his long-pent rage in a series of deafening roars that made the air tremble.
Numa, starving and desperate, had long realized that roaring and moaning in search of food was pointless, but now that he was certain it was his for the taking, as if he could already feel the soft flesh under his powerful paw, he opened his massive jaws and unleashed his pent-up anger in a series of thunderous roars that shook the air.
“Run, Jane!” cried Clayton. “Quick! Run for the shelter!” But her paralyzed muscles refused to respond, and she stood mute and rigid, staring with ghastly countenance at the living death creeping toward them.
“Run, Jane!” shouted Clayton. “Hurry! Get to the shelter!” But her frozen muscles wouldn’t budge, and she stood there silent and stiff, staring in horror at the living death approaching them.
Thuran, at the sound of that awful roar, had come to the opening of the shelter, and as he saw the tableau below him he hopped up and down, shrieking to them in Russian.
Thuran, at the sound of that terrible roar, had rushed to the entrance of the shelter, and as he saw the scene below him, he jumped up and down, shouting to them in Russian.
“Run! Run!” he cried. “Run, or I shall be left all alone in this horrible place,” and then he broke down and commenced to weep. For a moment this new voice distracted the attention of the lion, who halted to cast an inquiring glance in the direction of the tree. Clayton could endure the strain no longer. Turning his back upon the beast, he buried his head in his arms and waited.
“Run! Run!” he shouted. “Run, or I’ll be left all alone in this terrible place,” and then he started to cry. For a moment, this new voice caught the lion's attention, causing it to stop and look curiously at the tree. Clayton couldn’t take the pressure anymore. Turning away from the beast, he buried his head in his arms and waited.
The girl looked at him in horror. Why did he not do something? If he must die, why not die like a man—bravely; beating at that terrible face with his puny stick, no matter how futile it might be. Would Tarzan of the Apes have done thus? Would he not at least have gone down to his death fighting heroically to the last?
The girl stared at him in shock. Why wasn't he doing anything? If he had to die, why not face it like a man—bravely, hitting that awful face with his little stick, even if it seemed pointless? Would Tarzan of the Apes have acted this way? Wouldn't he at least have fought courageously to the end?
Now the lion was crouching for the spring that would end their young lives beneath cruel, rending, yellow fangs. Jane Porter sank to her knees in prayer, closing her eyes to shut out the last hideous instant. Thuran, weak from fever, fainted.
Now the lion was crouching, ready to pounce and take their young lives with its cruel, sharp yellow teeth. Jane Porter dropped to her knees in prayer, closing her eyes to block out the final horrifying moment. Thuran, weak from fever, fainted.
Seconds dragged into minutes, long minutes into an eternity, and yet the beast did not spring. Clayton was almost unconscious from the prolonged agony of fright—his knees trembled—a moment more and he would collapse.
Seconds stretched into minutes, long minutes turned into forever, and still the beast didn’t attack. Clayton was nearly unconscious from the endless terror—his knees shook—one more moment and he would fall.
Jane Porter could endure it no longer. She opened her eyes. Could she be dreaming?
Jane Porter couldn’t take it anymore. She opened her eyes. Could this be a dream?
“William,” she whispered; “look!”
“William,” she whispered; “check it out!”
Clayton mastered himself sufficiently to raise his head and turn toward the lion. An ejaculation of surprise burst from his lips. At their very feet the beast lay crumpled in death. A heavy war spear protruded from the tawny hide. It had entered the great back above the right shoulder, and, passing entirely through the body, had pierced the savage heart.
Clayton managed to compose himself enough to lift his head and look at the lion. A gasp of surprise escaped his lips. Right at their feet, the beast lay lifeless. A heavy war spear stuck out from its golden fur. It had entered the broad back just above the right shoulder and had completely gone through the body, piercing the fierce heart.
Jane Porter had risen to her feet; as Clayton turned back to her she staggered in weakness. He put out his arms to save her from falling, and then drew her close to him—pressing her head against his shoulder, he stooped to kiss her in thanksgiving.
Jane Porter had gotten to her feet; as Clayton turned back to her, she wobbled from weakness. He reached out his arms to catch her before she fell, then pulled her close—pressing her head against his shoulder, he leaned down to kiss her in gratitude.
Gently the girl pushed him away.
Gently, the girl pushed him away.
“Please do not do that, William,” she said. “I have lived a thousand years in the past brief moments. I have learned in the face of death how to live. I do not wish to hurt you more than is necessary; but I can no longer bear to live out the impossible position I have attempted because of a false sense of loyalty to an impulsive promise I made you.
“Please don’t do that, William,” she said. “I have lived a thousand years in just a few moments of the past. I’ve learned how to live in the face of death. I don’t want to hurt you more than necessary, but I can’t keep living in this impossible situation I’ve tried to maintain out of a misguided sense of loyalty to an impulsive promise I made to you."
“The last few seconds of my life have taught me that it would be hideous to attempt further to deceive myself and you, or to entertain for an instant longer the possibility of ever becoming your wife, should we regain civilization.”
“The last few seconds of my life have taught me that it would be terrible to keep deceiving myself and you, or to even consider for a moment that I could ever become your wife if we were to regain civilization.”
“Why, Jane,” he cried, “what do you mean? What has our providential rescue to do with altering your feelings toward me? You are but unstrung—tomorrow you will be yourself again.”
“Why, Jane,” he exclaimed, “what do you mean? What does our unexpected rescue have to do with changing how you feel about me? You're just a bit overwhelmed—tomorrow you’ll be back to your old self.”
“I am more nearly myself this minute than I have been for over a year,” she replied. “The thing that has just happened has again forced to my memory the fact that the bravest man that ever lived honored me with his love. Until it was too late I did not realize that I returned it, and so I sent him away. He is dead now, and I shall never marry. I certainly could not wed another less brave than he without harboring constantly a feeling of contempt for the relative cowardice of my husband. Do you understand me?”
“I feel more like myself right now than I have in over a year,” she said. “What just happened reminded me that the bravest man who ever lived loved me. I didn’t realize that I loved him back until it was too late, so I pushed him away. He’s gone now, and I’ll never get married. There’s no way I could marry someone less brave than him without always feeling a sense of contempt for my husband’s relative cowardice. Do you get what I’m saying?”
“Yes,” he answered, with bowed head, his face mantling with the flush of shame.
“Yes,” he replied, looking down, his face turning red with embarrassment.
And it was the next day that the great calamity befell.
And it was the next day that the huge disaster struck.
Chapter XXII
The Treasure Vaults of Opar
It was quite dark before La, the high priestess, returned to the Chamber of the Dead with food and drink for Tarzan. She bore no light, feeling with her hands along the crumbling walls until she gained the chamber. Through the stone grating above, a tropic moon served dimly to illuminate the interior.
It was pretty dark by the time La, the high priestess, came back to the Chamber of the Dead with food and drinks for Tarzan. She didn't carry a light, instead feeling her way along the crumbling walls until she reached the chamber. A tropical moon faintly illuminated the interior through the stone grating above.
Tarzan, crouching in the shadows at the far side of the room as the first sound of approaching footsteps reached him, came forth to meet the girl as he recognized that it was she.
Tarzan, hiding in the shadows on the far side of the room when he first heard the sound of approaching footsteps, stepped out to greet the girl as soon as he realized it was her.
“They are furious,” were her first words. “Never before has a human sacrifice escaped the altar. Already fifty have gone forth to track you down. They have searched the temple—all save this single room.”
“They’re really angry,” were her first words. “Never before has a human sacrifice gotten away from the altar. Already fifty people have gone out to find you. They’ve searched the temple—all except this one room.”
“Why do they fear to come here?” he asked.
“Why are they afraid to come here?” he asked.
“It is the Chamber of the Dead. Here the dead return to worship. See this ancient altar? It is here that the dead sacrifice the living—if they find a victim here. That is the reason our people shun this chamber. Were one to enter he knows that the waiting dead would seize him for their sacrifice.”
“It’s the Chamber of the Dead. This is where the dead come back to worship. See this ancient altar? It’s where the dead sacrifice the living—if they find a victim here. That’s why our people avoid this chamber. If someone enters, they know the waiting dead would take them for their sacrifice.”
“But you?” he asked.
"But what about you?" he asked.
“I am high priestess—I alone am safe from the dead. It is I who at rare intervals bring them a human sacrifice from the world above. I alone may enter here in safety.”
“I am the high priestess—I alone am safe from the dead. It’s me who, at rare times, brings them a human sacrifice from the world above. Only I can enter here safely.”
“Why have they not seized me?” he asked, humoring her grotesque belief.
“Why haven't they caught me?” he asked, playing along with her bizarre belief.
She looked at him quizzically for a moment. Then she replied:
She gave him a confused look for a moment. Then she responded:
“It is the duty of a high priestess to instruct, to interpret—according to the creed that others, wiser than herself, have laid down; but there is nothing in the creed which says that she must believe. The more one knows of one’s religion the less one believes—no one living knows more of mine than I.”
“It’s the responsibility of a high priestess to teach and interpret—based on the beliefs established by those who are wiser than she is; however, there’s nothing in those beliefs that requires her to have faith. The more you learn about your religion, the less you tend to believe—no one alive knows more about mine than I do.”
“Then your only fear in aiding me to escape is that your fellow mortals may discover your duplicity?”
“Then your only worry about helping me escape is that your fellow humans might find out what you’ve done?”
“That is all—the dead are dead; they cannot harm—or help. We must therefore depend entirely upon ourselves, and the sooner we act the better it will be. I had difficulty in eluding their vigilance but now in bringing you this morsel of food. To attempt to repeat the thing daily would be the height of folly. Come, let us see how far we may go toward liberty before I must return.”
“That’s it—the dead are dead; they can’t hurt or help us. We have to rely completely on ourselves, and the sooner we take action, the better it will be. I had trouble slipping past their watchfulness, but now I’m able to bring you this little bit of food. Trying to do this every day would be extremely foolish. Come on, let’s see how far we can get toward freedom before I have to go back.”
She led him back to the chamber beneath the altar room. Here she turned into one of the several corridors leading from it. In the darkness Tarzan could not see which one. For ten minutes they groped slowly along a winding passage, until at length they came to a closed door. Here he heard her fumbling with a key, and presently came the sound of a metal bolt grating against metal. The door swung in on scraping hinges, and they entered.
She took him back to the room beneath the altar room. Here, she turned into one of the several hallways leading from it. In the dark, Tarzan couldn’t see which one. For ten minutes, they felt their way slowly down a winding passage until they finally reached a closed door. He heard her struggling with a key, and soon he heard the sound of a metal bolt scraping against metal. The door creaked open on rusty hinges, and they stepped inside.
“You will be safe here until tomorrow night,” she said.
"You'll be safe here until tomorrow night," she said.
Then she went out, and, closing the door, locked it behind her.
Then she stepped outside, closed the door, and locked it behind her.
Where Tarzan stood it was dark as Erebus. Not even his trained eyes could penetrate the utter blackness. Cautiously he moved forward until his out-stretched hand touched a wall, then very slowly he traveled around the four walls of the chamber.
Where Tarzan stood, it was as dark as night. Not even his trained eyes could see through the complete darkness. Cautiously, he moved forward until his outstretched hand touched a wall, then very slowly he made his way around the four walls of the room.
Apparently it was about twenty feet square. The floor was of concrete, the walls of the dry masonry that marked the method of construction above ground. Small pieces of granite of various sizes were ingeniously laid together without mortar to construct these ancient foundations.
Apparently, it was about twenty feet on each side. The floor was made of concrete, and the walls were built from the dry masonry that indicated how it was constructed above ground. Small pieces of granite of different sizes were skillfully fitted together without mortar to create these ancient foundations.
The first time around the walls Tarzan thought he detected a strange phenomenon for a room with no windows but a single door. Again he crept carefully around close to the wall. No, he could not be mistaken! He paused before the center of the wall opposite the door. For a moment he stood quite motionless, then he moved a few feet to one side. Again he returned, only to move a few feet to the other side.
The first time he went around the walls, Tarzan thought he noticed something odd about a room with no windows and just one door. He carefully crept along the wall again. No, he couldn't be wrong! He paused in front of the center of the wall opposite the door. For a moment, he stood completely still, then he moved a few feet to one side. He came back again, only to shift a few feet to the other side.
Once more he made the entire circuit of the room, feeling carefully every foot of the walls. Finally he stopped again before the particular section that had aroused his curiosity. There was no doubt of it! A distinct draft of fresh air was blowing into the chamber through the intersection of the masonry at that particular point—and nowhere else.
Once again, he walked around the room, carefully feeling every inch of the walls. Finally, he stopped at the specific area that had caught his attention. There was no doubt about it! A noticeable draft of fresh air was coming into the room through the gap in the masonry at that exact spot—and nowhere else.
Tarzan tested several pieces of the granite which made up the wall at this spot, and finally was rewarded by finding one which lifted out readily. It was about ten inches wide, with a face some three by six inches showing within the chamber. One by one the ape-man lifted out similarly shaped stones. The wall at this point was constructed entirely, it seemed, of these almost perfect slabs. In a short time he had removed some dozen, when he reached in to test the next layer of masonry. To his surprise, he felt nothing behind the masonry he had removed as far as his long arm could reach.
Tarzan tested several pieces of the granite that made up the wall in this spot and eventually found one that came out easily. It was about ten inches wide, with a face of about three by six inches visible inside the chamber. One by one, the ape-man pulled out similarly shaped stones. It seemed that the wall in this area was made entirely of these nearly perfect slabs. In a short time, he had removed about a dozen when he reached in to check the next layer of masonry. To his surprise, he felt nothing behind the masonry he had removed as far as his long arm could reach.
It was a matter of but a few minutes to remove enough of the wall to permit his body to pass through the aperture. Directly ahead of him he thought he discerned a faint glow—scarcely more than a less impenetrable darkness. Cautiously he moved forward on hands and knees, until at about fifteen feet, or the average thickness of the foundation walls, the floor ended abruptly in a sudden drop. As far out as he could reach he felt nothing, nor could he find the bottom of the black abyss that yawned before him, though, clinging to the edge of the floor, he lowered his body into the darkness to its full length.
It took just a few minutes to take out enough of the wall to let his body squeeze through the opening. Straight ahead, he thought he saw a small glow—barely more than a slightly less thick darkness. He carefully crawled forward on his hands and knees until, about fifteen feet in, which was about the average thickness of the foundation walls, the floor suddenly dropped off. No matter how far he stretched out, he felt nothing and couldn’t find the bottom of the dark void that gaped in front of him. Holding onto the edge of the floor, he lowered his body into the darkness, letting himself hang down completely.
Finally it occurred to him to look up, and there above him he saw through a round opening a tiny circular patch of starry sky. Feeling up along the sides of the shaft as far as he could reach, the ape-man discovered that so much of the wall as he could feel converged toward the center of the shaft as it rose. This fact precluded possibility of escape in that direction.
Finally, he thought to look up, and there above him, he saw through a round opening a small circular patch of starry sky. Feeling along the sides of the shaft as far as he could reach, the ape-man found that the part of the wall he could touch converged toward the center of the shaft as it went up. This meant there was no chance of escaping that way.
As he sat speculating on the nature and uses of this strange passage and its terminal shaft, the moon topped the opening above, letting a flood of soft, silvery light into the shadowy place. Instantly the nature of the shaft became apparent to Tarzan, for far below him he saw the shimmering surface of water. He had come upon an ancient well—but what was the purpose of the connection between the well and the dungeon in which he had been hidden?
As he sat pondering the nature and uses of this strange passage and its vertical shaft, the moon emerged above the opening, flooding the dark space with soft, silvery light. Suddenly, the purpose of the shaft became clear to Tarzan, as he saw the shimmering surface of water far below him. He had found an ancient well—but what was the connection between the well and the dungeon where he had been kept?
As the moon crossed the opening of the shaft its light flooded the whole interior, and then Tarzan saw directly across from him another opening in the opposite wall. He wondered if this might not be the mouth of a passage leading to possible escape. It would be worth investigating, at least, and this he determined to do.
As the moon moved across the top of the shaft, its light filled the entire space, and then Tarzan noticed another opening in the wall opposite him. He wondered if this could be the entrance to a passage that might lead to an escape. It was worth checking out, at the very least, so he decided to investigate.
Quickly returning to the wall he had demolished to explore what lay beyond it, he carried the stones into the passageway and replaced them from that side. The deep deposit of dust which he had noticed upon the blocks as he had first removed them from the wall had convinced him that even if the present occupants of the ancient pile had knowledge of this hidden passage they had made no use of it for perhaps generations.
Quickly going back to the wall he had knocked down to see what was on the other side, he took the stones into the hallway and put them back from that side. The thick layer of dust he had seen on the blocks when he first took them from the wall made him sure that even if the current residents of the old building knew about this hidden passage, they hadn't used it for maybe generations.
The wall replaced, Tarzan turned to the shaft, which was some fifteen feet wide at this point. To leap across the intervening space was a small matter to the ape-man, and a moment later he was proceeding along a narrow tunnel, moving cautiously for fear of being precipitated into another shaft such as he had just crossed.
The wall was gone, and Tarzan turned to the shaft, which was about fifteen feet wide at this point. Jumping across the gap was easy for the ape-man, and a moment later, he was making his way down a narrow tunnel, moving carefully to avoid falling into another shaft like the one he had just crossed.
He had advanced some hundred feet when he came to a flight of steps leading downward into Stygian gloom. Some twenty feet below, the level floor of the tunnel recommenced, and shortly afterward his progress was stopped by a heavy wooden door which was secured by massive wooden bars upon the side of Tarzan’s approach. This fact suggested to the ape-man that he might surely be in a passageway leading to the outer world, for the bolts, barring progress from the opposite side, tended to substantiate this hypothesis, unless it were merely a prison to which it led.
He had gone about a hundred feet when he reached a flight of stairs going down into dark shadows. About twenty feet below, the flat floor of the tunnel started up again, and soon after that his way was blocked by a heavy wooden door secured with large wooden bars on the side Tarzan was approaching. This made the ape-man think he might be in a passageway leading to the outside world, since the bolts preventing entry from the other side supported this idea, unless it just led to a prison.
Along the tops of the bars were deep layers of dust—a further indication that the passage had lain long unused. As he pushed the massive obstacle aside, its great hinges shrieked out in weird protest against this unaccustomed disturbance. For a moment Tarzan paused to listen for any responsive note which might indicate that the unusual night noise had alarmed the inmates of the temple; but as he heard nothing he advanced beyond the doorway.
Along the tops of the bars was a thick layer of dust—another sign that the passage had been unused for a long time. When he pushed the heavy barrier aside, its large hinges let out a loud screech in protest against this unexpected disturbance. For a moment, Tarzan stopped to listen for any sound that might show that the unusual noise of the night had worried the people in the temple; but since he heard nothing, he moved forward past the doorway.
Carefully feeling about, he found himself within a large chamber, along the walls of which, and down the length of the floor, were piled many tiers of metal ingots of an odd though uniform shape. To his groping hands they felt not unlike double-headed bootjacks. The ingots were quite heavy, and but for the enormous number of them he would have been positive that they were gold; but the thought of the fabulous wealth these thousands of pounds of metal would have represented were they in reality gold, almost convinced him that they must be of some baser metal.
Carefully feeling around, he found himself in a large room, where the walls and the floor were stacked with many layers of metal ingots that had a strange but uniform shape. To his searching hands, they felt a bit like double-headed bootjacks. The ingots were quite heavy, and if it weren't for the sheer number of them, he would have been sure they were gold; but the idea of the incredible wealth that these thousands of pounds of metal would represent if they were actually gold almost convinced him that they had to be made of some lesser metal.
At the far end of the chamber he discovered another barred door, and again the bars upon the inside renewed the hope that he was traversing an ancient and forgotten passageway to liberty. Beyond the door the passage ran straight as a war spear, and it soon became evident to the ape-man that it had already led him beyond the outer walls of the temple. If he but knew the direction it was leading him! If toward the west, then he must also be beyond the city’s outer walls.
At the far end of the room, he found another barred door, and once again, the bars on the inside sparked the hope that he was making his way through an old and forgotten route to freedom. Beyond the door, the passage extended straight like a spear, and it quickly became clear to the ape-man that it had already taken him past the temple's outer walls. If only he knew which direction it was leading him! If it was heading west, then he must also be outside the city’s walls.
With increasing hopes he forged ahead as rapidly as he dared, until at the end of half an hour he came to another flight of steps leading upward. At the bottom this flight was of concrete, but as he ascended his naked feet felt a sudden change in the substance they were treading. The steps of concrete had given place to steps of granite. Feeling with his hands, the ape-man discovered that these latter were evidently hewed from rock, for there was no crack to indicate a joint.
With growing confidence, he pushed forward as quickly as he could until, after about half an hour, he reached another set of stairs going up. The bottom of the stairs was made of concrete, but as he climbed, his bare feet sensed a sudden change in the material he was walking on. The concrete steps had turned into granite ones. As he felt with his hands, the ape-man realized that these were clearly carved from rock, as there were no cracks to show a joint.
For a hundred feet the steps wound spirally up, until at a sudden turning Tarzan came into a narrow cleft between two rocky walls. Above him shone the starry sky, and before him a steep incline replaced the steps that had terminated at its foot. Up this pathway Tarzan hastened, and at its upper end came out upon the rough top of a huge granite bowlder.
For a hundred feet, the staircase spiraled upward, and abruptly, Tarzan found himself in a narrow gap between two rocky walls. The starry sky glittered above him, and ahead, a steep slope took the place of the steps that had ended at its base. Tarzan quickly ascended this path and emerged at the top onto the rugged surface of a massive granite boulder.
A mile away lay the ruined city of Opar, its domes and turrets bathed in the soft light of the equatorial moon. Tarzan dropped his eyes to the ingot he had brought away with him. For a moment he examined it by the moon’s bright rays, then he raised his head to look out upon the ancient piles of crumbling grandeur in the distance.
A mile away was the ruined city of Opar, its domes and towers glowing in the soft light of the equatorial moon. Tarzan lowered his gaze to the ingot he had taken with him. For a moment, he studied it in the moonlight, then raised his head to gaze at the ancient structures of crumbling grandeur in the distance.
“Opar,” he mused, “Opar, the enchanted city of a dead and forgotten past. The city of the beauties and the beasts. City of horrors and death; but—city of fabulous riches.” The ingot was of virgin gold.
“Opar,” he thought, “Opar, the magical city of a dead and forgotten past. The city of beauty and monsters. A city of nightmares and death; but—a city of incredible wealth.” The ingot was pure gold.
The bowlder on which Tarzan found himself lay well out in the plain between the city and the distant cliffs he and his black warriors had scaled the morning previous. To descend its rough and precipitous face was a task of infinite labor and considerable peril even to the ape-man; but at last he felt the soft soil of the valley beneath his feet, and without a backward glance at Opar he turned his face toward the guardian cliffs, and at a rapid trot set off across the valley.
The boulder that Tarzan was sitting on was out in the plain between the city and the distant cliffs that he and his black warriors had climbed the day before. Climbing down its rough and steep surface was a challenging and risky task even for the ape-man; but finally, he felt the soft soil of the valley under his feet. Without looking back at Opar, he turned toward the guardian cliffs and started across the valley at a brisk trot.
The sun was just rising as he gained the summit of the flat mountain at the valley’s western boundary. Far beneath him he saw smoke arising above the tree-tops of the forest at the base of the foothills.
The sun was just coming up as he reached the top of the flat mountain at the western edge of the valley. Far below, he saw smoke rising above the treetops of the forest at the base of the foothills.
“Man,” he murmured. “And there were fifty who went forth to track me down. Can it be they?”
“Man,” he whispered. “And there were fifty who set out to find me. Could it really be them?”
Swiftly he descended the face of the cliff, and, dropping into a narrow ravine which led down to the far forest, he hastened onward in the direction of the smoke. Striking the forest’s edge about a quarter of a mile from the point at which the slender column arose into the still air, he took to the trees. Cautiously he approached until there suddenly burst upon his view a rude boma, in the center of which, squatted about their tiny fires, sat his fifty black Waziri. He called to them in their own tongue:
Quickly, he climbed down the cliff and dropped into a narrow ravine that led to the distant forest. He hurried toward the smoke. He reached the edge of the forest about a quarter of a mile from where the thin column rose into the calm air, and then he entered the trees. Carefully, he moved closer until he suddenly saw a rough boma, where his fifty black Waziri were sitting around their small fires. He called to them in their own language:
“Arise, my children, and greet thy king!”
“Get up, my children, and greet your king!”
With exclamations of surprise and fear the warriors leaped to their feet, scarcely knowing whether to flee or not. Then Tarzan dropped lightly from an overhanging branch into their midst. When they realized that it was indeed their chief in the flesh, and no materialized spirit, they went mad with joy.
With shouts of shock and fear, the warriors jumped up, barely knowing whether to run or stay. Then Tarzan dropped down gracefully from a branch above them. When they realized it was really their chief and not a ghost, they went wild with happiness.
“We were cowards, oh, Waziri,” cried Busuli. “We ran away and left you to your fate; but when our panic was over we swore to return and save you, or at least take revenge upon your murderers. We were but now preparing to scale the heights once more and cross the desolate valley to the terrible city.”
“We were cowards, oh, Waziri,” Busuli exclaimed. “We ran away and left you to your fate; but once our fear subsided, we promised to come back and rescue you, or at least get revenge on your killers. We were just getting ready to climb the heights again and cross the barren valley to the dreadful city.”
“Have you seen fifty frightful men pass down from the cliffs into this forest, my children?” asked Tarzan.
“Have you seen fifty scary men come down from the cliffs into this forest, my children?” asked Tarzan.
“Yes, Waziri,” replied Busuli. “They passed us late yesterday, as we were about to turn back after you. They had no woodcraft. We heard them coming for a mile before we saw them, and as we had other business in hand we withdrew into the forest and let them pass. They were waddling rapidly along upon short legs, and now and then one would go upon all fours like Bolgani, the gorilla. They were indeed fifty frightful men, Waziri.”
“Yes, Waziri,” Busuli replied. “They went by us late yesterday, just as we were getting ready to turn back after you. They had no skills in tracking. We could hear them coming from a mile away before we saw them, and since we had other things to deal with, we stepped into the forest and let them go by. They were quickly waddling along on short legs, and occasionally one would drop down on all fours like Bolgani, the gorilla. They were definitely fifty terrifying men, Waziri.”
When Tarzan had related his adventures and told them of the yellow metal he had found, not one demurred when he outlined a plan to return by night and bring away what they could carry of the vast treasure; and so it was that as dusk fell across the desolate valley of Opar fifty ebon warriors trailed at a smart trot over the dry and dusty ground toward the giant bowlder that loomed before the city.
When Tarzan shared his adventures and talked about the gold he had discovered, no one disagreed when he suggested a plan to return at night and take as much of the treasure as they could carry. So, as night fell over the empty valley of Opar, fifty dark-skinned warriors moved quickly over the dry, dusty ground toward the massive boulder that stood in front of the city.
If it had seemed a difficult task to descend the face of the bowlder, Tarzan soon found that it would be next to impossible to get his fifty warriors to the summit. Finally the feat was accomplished by dint of herculean efforts upon the part of the ape-man. Ten spears were fastened end to end, and with one end of this remarkable chain attached to his waist, Tarzan at last succeeded in reaching the summit.
If it had seemed like a tough job to climb down the rocks, Tarzan quickly realized that getting his fifty warriors to the top would be almost impossible. Eventually, the challenge was overcome thanks to the extraordinary efforts of the ape-man. Ten spears were tied together end to end, and with one end of this unique chain attached to his waist, Tarzan finally managed to reach the top.
Once there, he drew up one of his blacks, and in this way the entire party was finally landed in safety upon the bowlder’s top. Immediately Tarzan led them to the treasure chamber, where to each was allotted a load of two ingots, for each about eighty pounds.
Once they arrived, he pulled up one of his ropes, and this way the whole group was finally brought safely to the top of the boulder. Right away, Tarzan took them to the treasure chamber, where everyone was given a load of two ingots, each weighing around eighty pounds.
By midnight the entire party stood once more at the foot of the bowlder, but with their heavy loads it was mid-forenoon ere they reached the summit of the cliffs. From there on the homeward journey was slow, as these proud fighting men were unaccustomed to the duties of porters. But they bore their burdens uncomplainingly, and at the end of thirty days entered their own country.
By midnight, the whole group was once again at the base of the boulder, but with their heavy loads, it was mid-morning before they reached the top of the cliffs. After that, the journey home was slow since these proud warriors weren’t used to carrying loads like porters. However, they carried their burdens without complaining, and after thirty days, they finally entered their homeland.
Here, instead of continuing on toward the northwest and their village, Tarzan guided them almost directly west, until on the morning of the thirty-third day he bade them break camp and return to their own village, leaving the gold where they had stacked it the previous night.
Here, instead of heading northwest to their village, Tarzan led them almost directly west. On the morning of the thirty-third day, he told them to pack up and go back to their own village, leaving the gold where they had piled it the night before.
“And you, Waziri?” they asked.
“And you, Waziri?” they asked.
“I shall remain here for a few days, my children,” he replied. “Now hasten back to thy wives and children.”
“I'll be here for a few days, my kids,” he replied. “Now hurry back to your wives and children.”
When they had gone Tarzan gathered up two of the ingots and, springing into a tree, ran lightly above the tangled and impenetrable mass of undergrowth for a couple of hundred yards, to emerge suddenly upon a circular clearing about which the giants of the jungle forest towered like a guardian host. In the center of this natural amphitheater, was a little flat-topped mound of hard earth.
When they left, Tarzan picked up two of the ingots and jumped into a tree, moving effortlessly above the thick and dense undergrowth for a few hundred yards until he suddenly entered a circular clearing surrounded by the towering giants of the jungle like a protective group. In the middle of this natural amphitheater was a small, flat-topped mound of hard earth.
Hundreds of times before had Tarzan been to this secluded spot, which was so densely surrounded by thorn bushes and tangled vines and creepers of huge girth that not even Sheeta, the leopard, could worm his sinuous way within, nor Tantor, with his giant strength, force the barriers which protected the council chamber of the great apes from all but the harmless denizens of the savage jungle.
Hundreds of times before, Tarzan had been to this secluded spot, which was surrounded so densely by thorn bushes and tangled vines that not even Sheeta, the leopard, could wiggle his way in, nor could Tantor, with his massive strength, break through the barriers that protected the council chamber of the great apes from all but the harmless creatures of the wild jungle.
Fifty trips Tarzan made before he had deposited all the ingots within the precincts of the amphitheater. Then from the hollow of an ancient, lightning-blasted tree he produced the very spade with which he had uncovered the chest of Professor Archimedes Q. Porter which he had once, apelike, buried in this selfsame spot. With this he dug a long trench, into which he laid the fortune that his blacks had carried from the forgotten treasure vaults of the city of Opar.
Fifty trips Tarzan made before he finally placed all the ingots inside the amphitheater. Then, from the hollow of an old, lightning-struck tree, he pulled out the same spade he used to dig up Professor Archimedes Q. Porter’s chest, which he had once, like an ape, buried right in this spot. With it, he dug a long trench and laid down the fortune that his men had brought from the lost treasure vaults of the city of Opar.
That night he slept within the amphitheater, and early the next morning set out to revisit his cabin before returning to his Waziri. Finding things as he had left them, he went forth into the jungle to hunt, intending to bring his prey to the cabin where he might feast in comfort, spending the night upon a comfortable couch.
That night he slept in the amphitheater, and early the next morning he set out to check on his cabin before going back to his Waziri. Finding everything just as he had left it, he ventured into the jungle to hunt, planning to bring his catch back to the cabin so he could enjoy a meal in comfort and sleep on a cozy couch that night.
For five miles toward the south he roamed, toward the banks of a fair-sized river that flowed into the sea about six miles from his cabin. He had gone inland about half a mile when there came suddenly to his trained nostrils the one scent that sets the whole savage jungle aquiver—Tarzan smelled man.
For five miles to the south, he wandered toward the banks of a decent-sized river that flowed into the sea about six miles from his cabin. He had gone about half a mile inland when, suddenly, his trained nose picked up the one scent that sends the entire wild jungle into a frenzy—Tarzan smelled a human.
The wind was blowing off the ocean, so Tarzan knew that the authors of the scent were west of him. Mixed with the man scent was the scent of Numa. Man and lion. “I had better hasten,” thought the ape-man, for he had recognized the scent of whites. “Numa may be a-hunting.”
The wind was blowing off the ocean, so Tarzan knew that the source of the smell was to the west of him. Mixed with the human scent was the scent of Numa. Human and lion. “I should hurry,” thought the ape-man, as he recognized the scent of white people. “Numa might be hunting.”
When he came through the trees to the edge of the jungle he saw a woman kneeling in prayer, and before her stood a wild, primitive-looking white man, his face buried in his arms. Behind the man a mangy lion was advancing slowly toward this easy prey. The man’s face was averted; the woman’s bowed in prayer. He could not see the features of either.
When he emerged from the trees at the edge of the jungle, he saw a woman kneeling in prayer, and in front of her stood a wild, primitive-looking white man with his face buried in his arms. A scruffy lion was slowly moving toward this easy target behind the man. The man's face was turned away; the woman's was bowed in prayer. He couldn't see the features of either.
Already Numa was about to spring. There was not a second to spare. Tarzan could not even unsling his bow and fit an arrow in time to send one of his deadly poisoned shafts into the yellow hide. He was too far away to reach the beast in time with his knife. There was but a single hope—a lone alternative. And with the quickness of thought the ape-man acted.
Already Numa was about to leap. There wasn’t a second to waste. Tarzan couldn’t even take his bow off his back and fit an arrow fast enough to shoot one of his deadly poisoned darts into the yellow hide. He was too far away to reach the beast in time with his knife. There was only one hope—a single alternative. And with the speed of thought, the ape-man took action.
A brawny arm flew back—for the briefest fraction of an instant a huge spear poised above the giant’s shoulder—and then the mighty arm shot out, and swift death tore through the intervening leaves to bury itself in the heart of the leaping lion. Without a sound he rolled over at the very feet of his intended victims—dead.
A muscular arm swung back—for just a split second, a massive spear hovered above the giant's shoulder—and then the powerful arm shot forward, and instant death pierced through the leaves to strike the leaping lion straight in the heart. Without a sound, it rolled over at the feet of its intended targets—dead.
For a moment neither the man nor the woman moved. Then the latter opened her eyes to look with wonder upon the dead beast behind her companion. As that beautiful head went up Tarzan of the Apes gave a gasp of incredulous astonishment. Was he mad? It could not be the woman he loved! But, indeed, it was none other.
For a moment, neither the man nor the woman moved. Then she opened her eyes to gaze in amazement at the dead animal behind her companion. As that beautiful head lifted, Tarzan of the Apes gasped in disbelief. Was he losing his mind? It couldn't be the woman he loved! But, in fact, it was none other.
And the woman rose, and the man took her in his arms to kiss her, and of a sudden the ape-man saw red through a bloody mist of murder, and the old scar upon his forehead burned scarlet against his brown hide.
And the woman stood up, and the man embraced her to kiss her, and suddenly the ape-man was blinded by rage, seeing red through a bloody haze of violence, while the old scar on his forehead glowed bright against his brown skin.
There was a terrible expression upon his savage face as he fitted a poisoned shaft to his bow. An ugly light gleamed in those gray eyes as he sighted full at the back of the unsuspecting man beneath him.
There was a horrible look on his brutal face as he nocked a poisoned arrow to his bow. A sinister light shone in those gray eyes as he aimed directly at the back of the unsuspecting man below him.
For an instant he glanced along the polished shaft, drawing the bowstring far back, that the arrow might pierce through the heart for which it was aimed.
For a moment, he looked down the smooth shaft, pulling the bowstring all the way back, so the arrow could hit the heart it was targeting.
But he did not release the fatal messenger. Slowly the point of the arrow drooped; the scar upon the brown forehead faded; the bowstring relaxed; and Tarzan of the Apes, with bowed head, turned sadly into the jungle toward the village of the Waziri.
But he didn’t let go of the deadly messenger. Slowly, the tip of the arrow drooped; the mark on the brown forehead faded; the bowstring loosened; and Tarzan of the Apes, with his head down, sadly turned into the jungle heading toward the Waziri village.
Chapter XXIII
The Fifty Frightful Men
For several long minutes Jane Porter and William Cecil Clayton stood silently looking at the dead body of the beast whose prey they had so narrowly escaped becoming.
For several long minutes, Jane Porter and William Cecil Clayton stood quietly, staring at the dead body of the beast whose prey they had narrowly managed to avoid becoming.
The girl was the first to speak again after her outbreak of impulsive avowal.
The girl was the first to speak up again after her burst of spontaneous confession.
“Who could it have been?” she whispered.
“Who could it have been?” she whispered.
“God knows!” was the man’s only reply.
“God knows!” was the man’s only response.
“If it is a friend, why does he not show himself?” continued Jane. “Wouldn’t it be well to call out to him, and at least thank him?”
“If it’s a friend, why doesn’t he show himself?” Jane continued. “Wouldn’t it be a good idea to call out to him and at least thank him?”
Mechanically Clayton did her bidding, but there was no response.
Clayton mechanically did what she asked, but there was no response.
Jane Porter shuddered. “The mysterious jungle,” she murmured. “The terrible jungle. It renders even the manifestations of friendship terrifying.”
Jane Porter shuddered. “The mysterious jungle,” she murmured. “The terrifying jungle. It makes even the signs of friendship seem scary.”
“We had best return to the shelter,” said Clayton. “You will be at least a little safer there. I am no protection whatever,” he added bitterly.
“We should go back to the shelter,” Clayton said. “You'll be at least somewhat safer there. I can’t protect you at all,” he added bitterly.
“Do not say that, William,” she hastened to urge, acutely sorry for the wound her words had caused. “You have done the best you could. You have been noble, and self-sacrificing, and brave. It is no fault of yours that you are not a superman. There is only one other man I have ever known who could have done more than you. My words were ill chosen in the excitement of the reaction—I did not wish to wound you. All that I wish is that we may both understand once and for all that I can never marry you—that such a marriage would be wicked.”
“Don't say that, William,” she quickly urged, feeling really sorry for the hurt her words had caused. “You've done the best you can. You've been noble, selfless, and brave. It's not your fault that you're not a superhero. There's only one other man I've ever known who could have done more than you. I chose my words poorly in the heat of the moment—I never meant to hurt you. All I want is for us to understand once and for all that I can never marry you—that such a marriage would be wrong.”
“I think I understand,” he replied. “Let us not speak of it again—at least until we are back in civilization.”
“I think I get it,” he replied. “Let’s not talk about it again—at least until we’re back in civilization.”
The next day Thuran was worse. Almost constantly he was in a state of delirium. They could do nothing to relieve him, nor was Clayton over-anxious to attempt anything. On the girl’s account he feared the Russian—in the bottom of his heart he hoped the man would die. The thought that something might befall him that would leave her entirely at the mercy of this beast caused him greater anxiety than the probability that almost certain death awaited her should she be left entirely alone upon the outskirts of the cruel forest.
The next day, Thuran was even worse. He was almost always in a state of delirium. They couldn't do anything to help him, and Clayton wasn’t too eager to try. For the girl’s sake, he was scared of the Russian—in the back of his mind, he hoped the man would die. The idea that something might happen to him, leaving her completely at the mercy of this monster, worried him even more than the fact that she would likely face almost certain death if left all alone on the edge of the harsh forest.
The Englishman had extracted the heavy spear from the body of the lion, so that when he went into the forest to hunt that morning he had a feeling of much greater security than at any time since they had been cast upon the savage shore. The result was that he penetrated farther from the shelter than ever before.
The Englishman had pulled the heavy spear out of the lion's body, so when he went into the forest to hunt that morning, he felt a lot more secure than he had since they arrived on the wild shore. As a result, he ventured farther from the shelter than ever before.
To escape as far as possible from the mad ravings of the fever-stricken Russian, Jane Porter had descended from the shelter to the foot of the tree—she dared not venture farther. Here, beside the crude ladder Clayton had constructed for her, she sat looking out to sea, in the always surviving hope that a vessel might be sighted.
To get as far away as possible from the crazy talk of the fevered Russian, Jane Porter had come down from the shelter to the base of the tree—she didn't dare go any further. Here, next to the makeshift ladder Clayton had made for her, she sat watching the sea, always holding on to the hope that a ship might appear.
Her back was toward the jungle, and so she did not see the grasses part, or the savage face that peered from between. Little, bloodshot, close-set eyes scanned her intently, roving from time to time about the open beach for indications of the presence of others than herself. Presently another head appeared, and then another and another. The man in the shelter commenced to rave again, and the heads disappeared as silently and as suddenly as they had come. But soon they were thrust forth once more, as the girl gave no sign of perturbation at the continued wailing of the man above.
Her back was to the jungle, so she didn't see the grasses part or the savage face peering through. Small, bloodshot, close-set eyes scanned her intently, occasionally glancing around the open beach for signs of anyone else. Soon another head appeared, then another and another. The man in the shelter started to rave again, and the heads vanished as quietly and suddenly as they had appeared. But they soon poked out again, as the girl showed no indication of being disturbed by the man's ongoing wailing above.
One by one grotesque forms emerged from the jungle to creep stealthily upon the unsuspecting woman. A faint rustling of the grasses attracted her attention. She turned, and at the sight that confronted her staggered to her feet with a little shriek of fear. Then they closed upon her with a rush. Lifting her bodily in his long, gorilla-like arms, one of the creatures turned and bore her into the jungle. A filthy paw covered her mouth to stifle her screams. Added to the weeks of torture she had already undergone, the shock was more than she could withstand. Shattered nerves collapsed, and she lost consciousness. When she regained her senses she found herself in the thick of the primeval forest. It was night. A huge fire burned brightly in the little clearing in which she lay. About it squatted fifty frightful men. Their heads and faces were covered with matted hair. Their long arms rested upon the bent knees of their short, crooked legs. They were gnawing, like beasts, upon unclean food. A pot boiled upon the edge of the fire, and out of it one of the creatures would occasionally drag a hunk of meat with a sharpened stick.
Grotesque figures emerged one by one from the jungle, stealthily approaching the unsuspecting woman. A faint rustling in the grass caught her attention. She turned, and upon seeing what was there, she staggered to her feet with a small shriek of fear. Then they rushed toward her. One of the creatures lifted her in its long, gorilla-like arms and turned to carry her deeper into the jungle. A filthy hand covered her mouth to silence her screams. After weeks of torture, the shock was more than she could bear. Her shattered nerves gave out, and she lost consciousness. When she came to, she found herself in the heart of the primeval forest. It was night. A huge fire blazed brightly in the small clearing where she lay. Around it squatted fifty terrifying men. Their heads and faces were covered in matted hair. Their long arms rested on their bent knees, which were supported by short, crooked legs. They were gnawing like animals on filthy food. A pot simmered on the edge of the fire, and now and then one of the creatures would drag a piece of meat out with a sharpened stick.
When they discovered that their captive had regained consciousness, a piece of this repulsive stew was tossed to her from the foul hand of a nearby feaster. It rolled close to her side, but she only closed her eyes as a qualm of nausea surged through her.
When they found out that their captive was awake again, a chunk of the disgusting food was thrown to her from the dirty hand of a nearby eater. It rolled close to her side, but she just shut her eyes as waves of nausea hit her.
For many days they traveled through the dense forest. The girl, footsore and exhausted, was half dragged, half pushed through the long, hot, tedious days. Occasionally, when she would stumble and fall, she was cuffed and kicked by the nearest of the frightful men. Long before they reached their journey’s end her shoes had been discarded—the soles entirely gone. Her clothes were torn to mere shreds and tatters, and through the pitiful rags her once white and tender skin showed raw and bleeding from contact with the thousand pitiless thorns and brambles through which she had been dragged.
For many days, they traveled through the thick forest. The girl, sore-footed and exhausted, was half dragged, half pushed through the long, hot, grueling days. Occasionally, when she stumbled and fell, the nearest of the terrifying men would hit and kick her. Long before they reached their destination, her shoes had been thrown away— the soles completely gone. Her clothes were ripped into shreds and tatters, and through the pitiful rags, her once white and delicate skin was visible, raw and bleeding from contact with the countless merciless thorns and brambles she had been pulled through.
The last two days of the journey found her in such utter exhaustion that no amount of kicking and abuse could force her to her poor, bleeding feet. Outraged nature had reached the limit of endurance, and the girl was physically powerless to raise herself even to her knees.
The last two days of the journey left her so completely exhausted that no amount of kicking or shouting could get her to her poor, bleeding feet. Nature had pushed her to her limit, and the girl was physically unable to lift herself even to her knees.
As the beasts surrounded her, chattering threateningly the while they goaded her with their cudgels and beat and kicked her with their fists and feet, she lay with closed eyes, praying for the merciful death that she knew alone could give her surcease from suffering; but it did not come, and presently the fifty frightful men realized that their victim was no longer able to walk, and so they picked her up and carried her the balance of the journey.
As the creatures closed in around her, threateningly jabbering while they prodded her with their clubs and punched and kicked her with their hands and feet, she lay there with her eyes shut, praying for the merciful death she knew was the only escape from her pain; but it never came, and soon the fifty terrifying men noticed that their victim could no longer walk, so they picked her up and carried her the rest of the way.
Late one afternoon she saw the ruined walls of a mighty city looming before them, but so weak and sick was she that it inspired not the faintest shadow of interest. Wherever they were bearing her, there could be but one end to her captivity among these fierce half brutes.
Late one afternoon, she saw the crumbled walls of a once-great city rising in front of them, but she felt so weak and unwell that it sparked not even a hint of curiosity. No matter where they were taking her, there could only be one outcome to her captivity among these savage half-beings.
At last they passed through two great walls and came to the ruined city within. Into a crumbling pile they bore her, and here she was surrounded by hundreds more of the same creatures that had brought her; but among them were females who looked less horrible. At sight of them the first faint hope that she had entertained came to mitigate her misery. But it was short-lived, for the women offered her no sympathy, though, on the other hand, neither did they abuse her.
At last, they went through two massive walls and arrived at the ruined city inside. They carried her into a decaying structure, and here she was surrounded by hundreds more of the same creatures that had brought her there; but among them were women who looked a bit less terrifying. Seeing them sparked the first glimmer of hope she had, easing her misery slightly. However, it was brief, as the women showed her no sympathy, but on the other hand, they didn't mistreat her either.
After she had been inspected to the entire satisfaction of the inmates of the building she was borne to a dark chamber in the vaults beneath, and here upon the bare floor she was left, with a metal bowl of water and another of food.
After she had been thoroughly checked by the residents of the building, she was taken to a dark room in the basement, and there on the bare floor she was left, with a metal bowl of water and another bowl of food.
For a week she saw only some of the women whose duty it was to bring her food and water. Slowly her strength was returning—soon she would be in fit condition to offer as a sacrifice to The Flaming God. Fortunate indeed it was that she could not know the fate for which she was destined.
For a week, she only saw a few of the women responsible for bringing her food and water. Gradually, her strength was coming back—soon she'd be ready to be offered as a sacrifice to The Flaming God. It was quite fortunate that she couldn't know the fate that awaited her.
As Tarzan of the Apes moved slowly through the jungle after casting the spear that saved Clayton and Jane Porter from the fangs of Numa, his mind was filled with all the sorrow that belongs to a freshly opened heart wound.
As Tarzan of the Apes made his way through the jungle after throwing the spear that saved Clayton and Jane Porter from Numa's jaws, he was overwhelmed with the deep sadness that comes with a freshly exposed emotional wound.
He was glad that he had stayed his hand in time to prevent the consummation of the thing that in the first mad wave of jealous wrath he had contemplated. Only the fraction of a second had stood between Clayton and death at the hands of the ape-man. In the short moment that had elapsed after he had recognized the girl and her companion and the relaxing of the taut muscles that held the poisoned shaft directed at the Englishman’s heart, Tarzan had been swayed by the swift and savage impulses of brute life.
He was relieved that he had stopped himself in time to prevent the completion of what he had initially thought of in a moment of jealous fury. Only a split second had separated Clayton from death at the hands of the ape-man. In the brief moment that passed after he recognized the girl and her companion, and the tension eased in the muscles that had directed the poisoned arrow at the Englishman’s heart, Tarzan had been influenced by the quick and fierce instincts of primal life.
He had seen the woman he craved—his woman—his mate—in the arms of another. There had been but one course open to him, according to the fierce jungle code that guided him in this other existence; but just before it had become too late the softer sentiments of his inherent chivalry had risen above the flaming fires of his passion and saved him. A thousand times he gave thanks that they had triumphed before his fingers had released that polished arrow.
He had seen the woman he desired—his woman—his partner—being held by someone else. There was only one option available to him, based on the intense jungle code that guided him in this different life; but just as it was about to be too late, the gentler feelings of his natural chivalry took over the burning fires of his passion and saved him. He felt grateful a thousand times that those feelings had prevailed before he let that sleek arrow slip from his fingers.
As he contemplated his return to the Waziri the idea became repugnant. He did not wish to see a human being again. At least he would range alone through the jungle for a time, until the sharp edge of his sorrow had become blunted. Like his fellow beasts, he preferred to suffer in silence and alone.
As he thought about going back to the Waziri, the idea made him feel sick. He didn't want to see another person ever again. At least he could roam through the jungle by himself for a while, until the sting of his sadness had eased. Like the other creatures, he chose to endure his pain quietly and alone.
That night he slept again in the amphitheater of the apes, and for several days he hunted from there, returning at night. On the afternoon of the third day he returned early. He had lain stretched upon the soft grass of the circular clearing for but a few moments when he heard far to the south a familiar sound. It was the passing through the jungle of a band of great apes—he could not mistake that. For several minutes he lay listening. They were coming in the direction of the amphitheater.
That night he slept again in the apes' amphitheater, and for several days he hunted from there, coming back at night. On the afternoon of the third day, he returned early. He had only just stretched out on the soft grass of the circular clearing for a few moments when he heard a familiar sound far to the south. It was a group of large apes moving through the jungle—he couldn't be mistaken. For several minutes, he lay listening. They were coming toward the amphitheater.
Tarzan arose lazily and stretched himself. His keen ears followed every movement of the advancing tribe. They were upwind, and presently he caught their scent, though he had not needed this added evidence to assure him that he was right.
Tarzan got up slowly and stretched. His sharp ears picked up on every sound from the approaching tribe. They were upwind, and soon he caught their scent, though he didn’t need this extra proof to confirm he was correct.
As they came closer to the amphitheater Tarzan of the Apes melted into the branches upon the other side of the arena. There he waited to inspect the newcomers. Nor had he long to wait.
As they got closer to the amphitheater, Tarzan of the Apes blended into the branches on the other side of the arena. He stayed there to watch the newcomers. And he didn’t have to wait long.
Presently a fierce, hairy face appeared among the lower branches opposite him. The cruel little eyes took in the clearing at a glance, then there was a chattered report returned to those behind. Tarzan could hear the words. The scout was telling the other members of the tribe that the coast was clear and that they might enter the amphitheater in safety.
Right now, a tough, hairy face showed up among the lower branches across from him. The mean little eyes scanned the clearing quickly, then there was a series of clicks sent back to those behind. Tarzan could hear the words. The scout was informing the other tribe members that it was safe and they could enter the amphitheater.
First the leader dropped lightly upon the soft carpet of the grassy floor, and then, one by one, nearly a hundred anthropoids followed him. There were the huge adults and several young. A few nursing babes clung close to the shaggy necks of their savage mothers.
First, the leader landed gently on the soft carpet of grass, and then, one by one, nearly a hundred apes followed him. There were large adults and several young ones. A few nursing babies clung closely to the furry necks of their wild mothers.
Tarzan recognized many members of the tribe. It was the same into which he had come as a tiny babe. Many of the adults had been little apes during his boyhood. He had frolicked and played about this very jungle with them during their brief childhood. He wondered if they would remember him—the memory of some apes is not overlong, and two years may be an eternity to them.
Tarzan recognized many people in the tribe. It was the same one he had arrived in as a tiny baby. Many of the adults had been young apes during his childhood. He had played and had fun in this very jungle with them during their short time as kids. He wondered if they would remember him—the memory of some apes doesn’t last long, and two years can feel like forever to them.
From the talk which he overheard he learned that they had come to choose a new king—their late chief had fallen a hundred feet beneath a broken limb to an untimely end.
From the conversation he overheard, he found out that they had come to select a new king— their former leader had died unexpectedly after falling a hundred feet from a broken branch.
Tarzan walked to the end of an overhanging limb in plain view of them. The quick eyes of a female caught sight of him first. With a barking guttural she called the attention of the others. Several huge bulls stood erect to get a better view of the intruder. With bared fangs and bristling necks they advanced slowly toward him, with deep-throated, ominous growls.
Tarzan walked to the end of a protruding branch where they could see him clearly. A female spotted him first with her sharp eyes. With a harsh bark, she alerted the others. Several large males stood up to get a better look at the intruder. With their teeth bared and fur raised, they moved slowly toward him, growling deeply and menacingly.
“Karnath, I am Tarzan of the Apes,” said the ape-man in the vernacular of the tribe. “You remember me. Together we teased Numa when we were still little apes, throwing sticks and nuts at him from the safety of high branches.”
“Karnath, I’m Tarzan of the Apes,” said the ape-man in the tribe's language. “You remember me. We used to tease Numa when we were little apes, throwing sticks and nuts at him from the safety of high branches.”
The brute he had addressed stopped with a look of half-comprehending, dull wonderment upon his savage face.
The guy he talked to paused, a mix of confusion and dull wonder on his rough face.
“And Magor,” continued Tarzan, addressing another, “do you not recall your former king—he who slew the mighty Kerchak? Look at me! Am I not the same Tarzan—mighty hunter—invincible fighter—that you all knew for many seasons?”
“And Magor,” continued Tarzan, speaking to another, “do you not remember your previous king—he who killed the mighty Kerchak? Look at me! Am I not the same Tarzan—great hunter—unbeatable fighter—that you all recognized for many seasons?”
The apes all crowded forward now, but more in curiosity than threatening. They muttered among themselves for a few moments.
The apes all pushed forward now, but more out of curiosity than aggression. They whispered to each other for a few moments.
“What do you want among us now?” asked Karnath.
“What do you want with us now?” asked Karnath.
“Only peace,” answered the ape-man.
"Only peace," replied the ape-man.
Again the apes conferred. At length Karnath spoke again.
Again, the apes talked among themselves. Finally, Karnath spoke up once more.
“Come in peace, then, Tarzan of the Apes,” he said.
“Come in peace, then, Tarzan of the Apes,” he said.
And so Tarzan of the Apes dropped lightly to the turf into the midst of the fierce and hideous horde—he had completed the cycle of evolution, and had returned to be once again a brute among brutes.
And so Tarzan of the Apes landed softly on the ground in the middle of the fierce and terrifying group—he had finished the process of evolution and had become once again a wild beast among wild beasts.
There were no greetings such as would have taken place among men after a separation of two years. The majority of the apes went on about the little activities that the advent of the ape-man had interrupted, paying no further attention to him than as though he had not been gone from the tribe at all.
There were no friendly hellos like you would expect after a two-year separation. Most of the apes continued their small activities that the arrival of the ape-man had interrupted, paying no more attention to him than if he had never left the tribe at all.
One or two young bulls who had not been old enough to remember him sidled up on all fours to sniff at him, and one bared his fangs and growled threateningly—he wished to put Tarzan immediately into his proper place. Had Tarzan backed off, growling, the young bull would quite probably have been satisfied, but always after Tarzan’s station among his fellow apes would have been beneath that of the bull which had made him step aside.
One or two young bulls that were too young to remember him approached on all fours to sniff at him, and one bared its teeth and growled menacingly—he aimed to put Tarzan in his place right away. If Tarzan had backed off with a growl, the young bull would likely have been satisfied, but that would mean Tarzan's status among his fellow apes would always be below the bull that forced him to step aside.
But Tarzan of the Apes did not back off. Instead, he swung his giant palm with all the force of his mighty muscles, and, catching the young bull alongside the head, sent him sprawling across the turf. The ape was up and at him again in a second, and this time they closed with tearing fingers and rending fangs—or at least that had been the intention of the young bull; but scarcely had they gone down, growling and snapping, than the ape-man’s fingers found the throat of his antagonist.
But Tarzan of the Apes didn’t back down. Instead, he swung his massive hand with all the strength of his powerful muscles, hitting the young bull on the side of the head and knocking him down onto the ground. The ape was back on him in a second, and this time they engaged with clawing hands and biting jaws—or at least that was the young bull's intention; but barely had they hit the ground, growling and snapping, when the ape-man’s fingers found the throat of his opponent.
Presently the young bull ceased to struggle, and lay quite still. Then Tarzan released his hold and arose—he did not wish to kill, only to teach the young ape, and others who might be watching, that Tarzan of the Apes was still master.
Currently, the young bull stopped struggling and lay completely still. Then Tarzan let go and stood up—he didn’t want to kill, only to show the young ape and any others who might be watching that Tarzan of the Apes was still in charge.
The lesson served its purpose—the young apes kept out of his way, as young apes should when their betters were about, and the old bulls made no attempt to encroach upon his prerogatives. For several days the she-apes with young remained suspicious of him, and when he ventured too near rushed upon him with wide mouths and hideous roars. Then Tarzan discreetly skipped out of harm’s way, for that also is a custom among the apes—only mad bulls will attack a mother. But after a while even they became accustomed to him.
The lesson worked as intended—the young apes avoided him, as they should when their elders were around, and the older bulls didn't try to challenge his authority. For several days, the female apes with their young were still wary of him, and whenever he got too close, they lunged at him with open mouths and scary roars. Then Tarzan wisely backed off, because that's also a rule among the apes—only crazy bulls would go after a mother. But eventually, they got used to him.
He hunted with them as in days gone by, and when they found that his superior reason guided him to the best food sources, and that his cunning rope ensnared toothsome game that they seldom if ever tasted, they came again to look up to him as they had in the past after he had become their king. And so it was that before they left the amphitheater to return to their wanderings they had once more chosen him as their leader.
He hunted with them like in the old days, and when they realized that his sharp thinking led him to the best food sources, and that his clever rope caught tasty game they rarely, if ever, experienced, they began to respect him again like they did when he became their king. So it was that before they left the amphitheater to continue their travels, they once again chose him as their leader.
The ape-man felt quite contented with his new lot. He was not happy—that he never could be again, but he was at least as far from everything that might remind him of his past misery as he could be. Long since he had given up every intention of returning to civilization, and now he had decided to see no more his black friends of the Waziri. He had foresworn humanity forever. He had started life an ape—as an ape he would die.
The ape-man felt pretty satisfied with his new life. He wasn’t happy—he could never be happy again—but he was at least as far away from anything that might remind him of his past suffering as possible. Long ago, he had abandoned any thought of going back to civilization, and now he had chosen not to see his black friends from the Waziri anymore. He had sworn off humanity for good. He had started life as an ape—and that’s how he would die.
He could not, however, erase from his memory the fact that the woman he loved was within a short journey of the stamping-ground of his tribe; nor could he banish the haunting fear that she might be constantly in danger. That she was illy protected he had seen in the brief instant that had witnessed Clayton’s inefficiency. The more Tarzan thought of it, the more keenly his conscience pricked him.
He couldn't, however, forget that the woman he loved was just a short distance from where his tribe lived; nor could he shake the nagging worry that she might always be at risk. He had realized how poorly she was protected in the brief moment he witnessed Clayton's incompetence. The more Tarzan thought about it, the more his conscience nagged at him.
Finally he came to loathe himself for permitting his own selfish sorrow and jealousy to stand between Jane Porter and safety. As the days passed the thing preyed more and more upon his mind, and he had about determined to return to the coast and place himself on guard over Jane Porter and Clayton, when news reached him that altered all his plans and sent him dashing madly toward the east in reckless disregard of accident and death.
Finally, he started to hate himself for allowing his own selfish sadness and jealousy to get in the way of Jane Porter's safety. As the days went by, it gnawed at him more and more, and he had pretty much decided to go back to the coast to keep an eye on Jane Porter and Clayton when news came that changed all his plans and sent him racing toward the east without a care for accidents or death.
Before Tarzan had returned to the tribe, a certain young bull, not being able to secure a mate from among his own people, had, according to custom, fared forth through the wild jungle, like some knight-errant of old, to win a fair lady from some neighboring community.
Before Tarzan returned to the tribe, a young bull, unable to find a mate among his own people, had, following tradition, set out through the wild jungle, like a knight-errant of old, to win a fair lady from a nearby community.
He had but just returned with his bride, and was narrating his adventures quickly before he should forget them. Among other things he told of seeing a great tribe of strange-looking apes.
He had just come back with his bride and was quickly sharing his adventures before he forgot them. Among other things, he mentioned seeing a huge group of unusual-looking apes.
“They were all hairy-faced bulls but one,” he said, “and that one was a she, lighter in color even than this stranger,” and he chucked a thumb at Tarzan.
“They were all hairy-faced bulls except for one,” he said, “and that one was a female, lighter in color even than this stranger,” and he pointed with his thumb at Tarzan.
The ape-man was all attention in an instant. He asked questions as rapidly as the slow-witted anthropoid could answer them.
The ape-man was completely focused in an instant. He fired off questions as quickly as the not-so-bright ape could respond.
“Were the bulls short, with crooked legs?”
“Were the bulls short with crooked legs?”
“They were.”
“They were.”
“Did they wear the skins of Numa and Sheeta about their loins, and carry sticks and knives?”
“Did they wear the skins of Numa and Sheeta around their waist and carry sticks and knives?”
“They did.”
"They sure did."
“And were there many yellow rings about their arms and legs?”
“Were there a lot of yellow rings on their arms and legs?”
“Yes.”
"Yes."
“And the she one—was she small and slender, and very white?”
“And the woman—was she petite and slim, and very pale?”
“Yes.”
“Yep.”
“Did she seem to be one of the tribe, or was she a prisoner?”
“Did she seem like she was one of them, or was she a captive?”
“They dragged her along—sometimes by an arm—sometimes by the long hair that grew upon her head; and always they kicked and beat her. Oh, but it was great fun to watch them.”
“They pulled her along—sometimes by an arm—sometimes by the long hair on her head; and they always kicked and hit her. Oh, but it was so much fun to watch them.”
“God!” muttered Tarzan.
“God!” muttered Tarzan.
“Where were they when you saw them, and which way were they going?” continued the ape-man.
“Where were they when you saw them, and which direction were they heading?” continued the ape-man.
“They were beside the second water back there,” and he pointed to the south. “When they passed me they were going toward the morning, upward along the edge of the water.”
“They were by the second water back there,” and he pointed south. “When they passed me, they were heading toward the east, moving up along the edge of the water.”
“When was this?” asked Tarzan.
“When was this?” Tarzan asked.
“Half a moon since.”
"Half a moon ago."
Without another word the ape-man sprang into the trees and fled like a disembodied spirit eastward in the direction of the forgotten city of Opar.
Without another word, the ape-man jumped into the trees and dashed away like a ghost heading east toward the long-lost city of Opar.
Chapter XXIV
How Tarzan Came Again to Opar
When Clayton returned to the shelter and found Jane Porter was missing, he became frantic with fear and grief. He found Monsieur Thuran quite rational, the fever having left him with the surprising suddenness which is one of its peculiarities. The Russian, weak and exhausted, still lay upon his bed of grasses within the shelter.
When Clayton got back to the shelter and saw that Jane Porter was gone, he was overwhelmed with fear and sadness. He found Monsieur Thuran surprisingly sensible, as the fever had left him suddenly, which is one of its odd traits. The Russian, weak and worn out, still lay on his bed of grasses inside the shelter.
When Clayton asked him about the girl he seemed surprised to know that she was not there.
When Clayton asked him about the girl, he looked surprised to find out she wasn't there.
“I have heard nothing unusual,” he said. “But then I have been unconscious much of the time.”
“I haven’t heard anything unusual,” he said. “But I’ve been unconscious for most of the time.”
Had it not been for the man’s very evident weakness, Clayton should have suspected him of having sinister knowledge of the girl’s whereabouts; but he could see that Thuran lacked sufficient vitality even to descend, unaided, from the shelter. He could not, in his present physical condition, have harmed the girl, nor could he have climbed the rude ladder back to the shelter.
Had it not been for the man’s obvious weakness, Clayton would have suspected that he knew something dark about the girl’s whereabouts; but he could see that Thuran didn’t have enough strength to even get down from the shelter on his own. In his current physical state, he couldn’t have harmed the girl, nor could he have climbed the rough ladder back to the shelter.
Until dark the Englishman searched the nearby jungle for a trace of the missing one or a sign of the trail of her abductor. But though the spoor left by the fifty frightful men, unversed in woodcraft as they were, would have been as plain to the densest denizen of the jungle as a city street to the Englishman, yet he crossed and recrossed it twenty times without observing the slightest indication that many men had passed that way but a few short hours since.
Until dark, the Englishman searched the nearby jungle for any sign of the missing person or a clue about her kidnapper. Even though the tracks left by the fifty terrifying men, who were inexperienced in navigating the woods, would have been as obvious to the least intelligent jungle inhabitant as a city street is to the Englishman, he crossed and recrossed it twenty times without noticing the slightest indication that many men had passed that way just a few hours earlier.
As he searched, Clayton continued to call the girl’s name aloud, but the only result of this was to attract Numa, the lion. Fortunately the man saw the shadowy form worming its way toward him in time to climb into the branches of a tree before the beast was close enough to reach him. This put an end to his search for the balance of the afternoon, as the lion paced back and forth beneath him until dark.
As he searched, Clayton kept calling the girl’s name out loud, but all it did was draw the attention of Numa, the lion. Luckily, he spotted the shadowy figure making its way toward him just in time to scramble up into a tree before the beast got too close. This ended his search for the rest of the afternoon, as the lion paced back and forth below him until nightfall.
Even after the beast had left, Clayton dared not descend into the awful blackness beneath him, and so he spent a terrifying and hideous night in the tree. The next morning he returned to the beach, relinquishing the last hope of succoring Jane Porter.
Even after the beast had gone, Clayton didn't dare go down into the terrible darkness below him, so he spent a frightening and horrible night in the tree. The next morning, he made his way back to the beach, giving up any hope of saving Jane Porter.
During the week that followed, Monsieur Thuran rapidly regained his strength, lying in the shelter while Clayton hunted food for both. The men never spoke except as necessity demanded. Clayton now occupied the section of the shelter which had been reserved for Jane Porter, and only saw the Russian when he took food or water to him, or performed the other kindly offices which common humanity required.
During the week that followed, Monsieur Thuran quickly got his strength back, resting in the shelter while Clayton searched for food for both of them. The men spoke only when absolutely necessary. Clayton was now using the part of the shelter that had been set aside for Jane Porter, and only saw the Russian when he brought him food or water, or did other kind things that basic humanity required.
When Thuran was again able to descend in search of food, Clayton was stricken with fever. For days he lay tossing in delirium and suffering, but not once did the Russian come near him. Food the Englishman could not have eaten, but his craving for water amounted practically to torture. Between the recurrent attacks of delirium, weak though he was, he managed to reach the brook once a day and fill a tiny can that had been among the few appointments of the lifeboat.
When Thuran was finally able to go back down to look for food, Clayton was hit with a fever. For days, he lay tossing in delirium and suffering, but not once did the Russian come near him. The Englishman couldn't have eaten food, but his thirst for water was almost unbearable. In between the bouts of delirium, weak as he was, he managed to reach the brook once a day and fill a small can that had been one of the few supplies from the lifeboat.
Thuran watched him on these occasions with an expression of malignant pleasure—he seemed really to enjoy the suffering of the man who, despite the just contempt in which he held him, had ministered to him to the best of his ability while he lay suffering the same agonies. At last Clayton became so weak that he was no longer able to descend from the shelter. For a day he suffered for water without appealing to the Russian, but finally, unable to endure it longer, he asked Thuran to fetch him a drink. The Russian came to the entrance to Clayton’s room, a dish of water in his hand. A nasty grin contorted his features.
Thuran watched him during these moments with a look of malicious satisfaction—he genuinely seemed to take pleasure in the torment of the man who, despite having a justified disdain for him, had done his best to care for him while enduring the same pain. Eventually, Clayton became so weak that he could no longer get out of the shelter. For a day, he suffered from thirst without asking the Russian for help, but finally, unable to bear it any longer, he asked Thuran to bring him a drink. The Russian approached the entrance to Clayton’s room, holding a dish of water in his hand. A cruel grin twisted his face.
“Here is water,” he said. “But first let me remind you that you maligned me before the girl—that you kept her to yourself, and would not share her with me—”
“Here’s some water,” he said. “But first, let me remind you that you spoke poorly of me in front of the girl—that you kept her to yourself and wouldn’t share her with me—”
Clayton interrupted him. “Stop!” he cried. “Stop! What manner of cur are you that you traduce the character of a good woman whom we believe dead! God! I was a fool ever to let you live—you are not fit to live even in this vile land.”
Clayton cut him off. “Stop!” he shouted. “Stop! What kind of worthless person are you to slander the character of a good woman we think is dead! Damn it! I was a fool to ever let you live—you’re not even worthy of living in this horrible place.”
“Here is your water,” said the Russian. “All you will get,” and he raised the basin to his lips and drank; what was left he threw out upon the ground below. Then he turned and left the sick man.
“Here’s your water,” said the Russian. “It’s all you’ll get,” and he lifted the basin to his lips and drank; whatever was left, he poured out onto the ground below. Then he turned and walked away from the sick man.
Clayton rolled over, and, burying his face in his arms, gave up the battle.
Clayton rolled over, buried his face in his arms, and surrendered to the struggle.
The next day Thuran determined to set out toward the north along the coast, for he knew that eventually he must come to the habitations of civilized men—at least he could be no worse off than he was here, and, furthermore, the ravings of the dying Englishman were getting on his nerves. So he stole Clayton’s spear and set off upon his journey. He would have killed the sick man before he left had it not occurred to him that it would really have been a kindness to do so.
The next day, Thuran decided to head north along the coast because he realized he would eventually reach the homes of civilized people—at least he couldn't be in a worse situation than he was here, and besides, the ramblings of the dying Englishman were getting on his nerves. So, he took Clayton’s spear and set off on his journey. He would have killed the sick man before leaving if it hadn't occurred to him that it would actually have been a kindness to do so.
That same day he came to a little cabin by the beach, and his heart filled with renewed hope as he saw this evidence of the proximity of civilization, for he thought it but the outpost of a nearby settlement. Had he known to whom it belonged, and that its owner was at that very moment but a few miles inland, Nikolas Rokoff would have fled the place as he would a pestilence. But he did not know, and so he remained for a few days to enjoy the security and comparative comforts of the cabin. Then he took up his northward journey once more.
That same day, he arrived at a small cabin by the beach, and his heart filled with renewed hope as he saw this sign of civilization nearby, thinking it was just the outpost of a nearby settlement. If he had known to whom it belonged, and that the owner was just a few miles inland at that very moment, Nikolas Rokoff would have fled the place like it was a disease. But he didn’t know, so he stayed for a few days to enjoy the security and relative comfort of the cabin. Then he continued his journey northward once again.
In Lord Tennington’s camp preparations were going forward to build permanent quarters, and then to send out an expedition of a few men to the north in search of relief.
In Lord Tennington's camp, preparations were underway to construct permanent housing, and plans were being made to send a small group of men northward in search of help.
As the days had passed without bringing the longed-for succor, hope that Jane Porter, Clayton, and Monsieur Thuran had been rescued began to die. No one spoke of the matter longer to Professor Porter, and he was so immersed in his scientific dreaming that he was not aware of the elapse of time.
As the days went by without the much-anticipated help, the hope of rescuing Jane Porter, Clayton, and Monsieur Thuran started to fade. Nobody brought it up with Professor Porter anymore, and he was so lost in his scientific thoughts that he didn’t even notice the time passing.
Occasionally he would remark that within a few days they should certainly see a steamer drop anchor off their shore, and that then they should all be reunited happily. Sometimes he spoke of it as a train, and wondered if it were being delayed by snowstorms.
Occasionally, he would say that in a few days they would definitely see a ship drop anchor off their coast, and then they would all be joyfully reunited. Sometimes he referred to it as a train and wondered if it was being held up by snowstorms.
“If I didn’t know the dear old fellow so well by now,” Tennington remarked to Miss Strong, “I should be quite certain that he was—er—not quite right, don’t you know.”
“If I didn’t know the dear old guy so well by now,” Tennington said to Miss Strong, “I would be completely sure that he was—um—not quite right, you know.”
“If it were not so pathetic it would be ridiculous,” said the girl, sadly. “I, who have known him all my life, know how he worships Jane; but to others it must seem that he is perfectly callous to her fate. It is only that he is so absolutely impractical that he cannot conceive of so real a thing as death unless nearly certain proof of it is thrust upon him.”
“If it weren’t so sad, it would be laughable,” said the girl, sadly. “I, who have known him my whole life, know how much he adores Jane; but to others it must look like he’s completely indifferent to her situation. It's just that he's so utterly impractical that he can't grasp something as real as death unless he’s shown undeniable proof of it.”
“You’d never guess what he was about yesterday,” continued Tennington. “I was coming in alone from a little hunt when I met him walking rapidly along the game trail that I was following back to camp. His hands were clasped beneath the tails of his long black coat, and his top hat was set firmly down upon his head, as with eyes bent upon the ground he hastened on, probably to some sudden death had I not intercepted him.
“You wouldn’t believe what happened with him yesterday,” Tennington went on. “I was returning alone from a small hunt when I saw him walking quickly along the game trail I was taking back to camp. His hands were clasped behind the tails of his long black coat, and his top hat was secure on his head as he hurried on with his eyes fixed on the ground, likely headed for some unexpected disaster if I hadn’t stopped him.”
“‘Why, where in the world are you bound, professor?’ I asked him. ‘I am going into town, Lord Tennington,’ he said, as seriously as possible, ‘to complain to the postmaster about the rural free delivery service we are suffering from here. Why, sir, I haven’t had a piece of mail in weeks. There should be several letters for me from Jane. The matter must be reported to Washington at once.’
“‘Why, where are you headed, professor?’ I asked him. ‘I’m going into town, Lord Tennington,’ he said, as seriously as he could, ‘to complain to the postmaster about the terrible rural free delivery service we have here. I haven’t received any mail in weeks. There should be several letters for me from Jane. This issue needs to be reported to Washington immediately.’”
“And would you believe it, Miss Strong,” continued Tennington, “I had the very deuce of a job to convince the old fellow that there was not only no rural free delivery, but no town, and that he was not even on the same continent as Washington, nor in the same hemisphere.
“And would you believe it, Miss Strong,” continued Tennington, “I had an incredibly tough time convincing the old guy that there was not only no rural free delivery, but no town at all, and that he wasn’t even on the same continent as Washington, or in the same hemisphere.”
“When he did realize he commenced to worry about his daughter—I think it is the first time that he really has appreciated our position here, or the fact that Miss Porter may not have been rescued.”
“When he finally understood, he started to worry about his daughter—I think this is the first time he truly grasps our situation here, or the fact that Miss Porter might not have been saved.”
“I hate to think about it,” said the girl, “and yet I can think of nothing else than the absent members of our party.”
“I hate to think about it,” said the girl, “and yet I can’t stop thinking about the members of our group who are missing.”
“Let us hope for the best,” replied Tennington. “You yourself have set us each a splendid example of bravery, for in a way your loss has been the greatest.”
“Let’s hope for the best,” replied Tennington. “You’ve set us a great example of bravery, because in a way, your loss has been the hardest.”
“Yes,” she replied; “I could have loved Jane Porter no more had she been my own sister.”
“Yes,” she replied, “I couldn’t have loved Jane Porter more if she had been my own sister.”
Tennington did not show the surprise he felt. That was not at all what he meant. He had been much with this fair daughter of Maryland since the wreck of the Lady Alice, and it had recently come to him that he had grown much more fond of her than would prove good for the peace of his mind, for he recalled almost constantly now the confidence which Monsieur Thuran had imparted to him that he and Miss Strong were engaged. He wondered if, after all, Thuran had been quite accurate in his statement. He had never seen the slightest indication on the girl’s part of more than ordinary friendship.
Tennington didn’t show the surprise he felt. That wasn't at all what he meant. He had spent a lot of time with this lovely daughter of Maryland since the wreck of the Lady Alice, and it had recently occurred to him that he had grown much fonder of her than would be good for his state of mind, as he now constantly recalled the confidence Monsieur Thuran had shared with him that he and Miss Strong were engaged. He wondered if Thuran had been completely accurate in his statement. He had never seen any sign from the girl of more than just ordinary friendship.
“And then in Monsieur Thuran’s loss, if they are lost, you would suffer a severe bereavement,” he ventured.
“And then with Monsieur Thuran’s loss, if they are lost, you would experience a deep sorrow,” he suggested.
She looked up at him quickly. “Monsieur Thuran had become a very dear friend,” she said. “I liked him very much, though I have known him but a short time.”
She glanced up at him quickly. “Mr. Thuran has become a very dear friend,” she said. “I liked him a lot, even though I’ve only known him for a short time.”
“Then you were not engaged to marry him?” he blurted out.
“Then you weren’t planning to marry him?” he said abruptly.
“Heavens, no!” she cried. “I did not care for him at all in that way.”
“Heavens, no!” she exclaimed. “I didn't feel that way about him at all.”
There was something that Lord Tennington wanted to say to Hazel Strong—he wanted very badly to say it, and to say it at once; but somehow the words stuck in his throat. He started lamely a couple of times, cleared his throat, became red in the face, and finally ended by remarking that he hoped the cabins would be finished before the rainy season commenced.
There was something that Lord Tennington wanted to say to Hazel Strong—he really wanted to say it, and to say it right away; but somehow the words got stuck in his throat. He awkwardly started a couple of times, cleared his throat, turned red in the face, and finally ended up saying that he hoped the cabins would be finished before the rainy season started.
But, though he did not know it, he had conveyed to the girl the very message he intended, and it left her happy—happier than she had ever before been in all her life.
But, even though he didn’t realize it, he had communicated to the girl exactly what he meant, and it made her happy—happier than she had ever been in her whole life.
Just then further conversation was interrupted by the sight of a strange and terrible-looking figure which emerged from the jungle just south of the camp. Tennington and the girl saw it at the same time. The Englishman reached for his revolver, but when the half-naked, bearded creature called his name aloud and came running toward them he dropped his hand and advanced to meet it.
Just then, the conversation was interrupted by the sight of a strange and terrifying figure that emerged from the jungle just south of the camp. Tennington and the girl spotted it at the same time. The Englishman went for his revolver, but when the half-naked, bearded creature called out his name and ran toward them, he lowered his hand and moved forward to meet it.
None would have recognized in the filthy, emaciated creature, covered by a single garment of small skins, the immaculate Monsieur Thuran the party had last seen upon the deck of the Lady Alice.
None would have recognized in the filthy, emaciated creature, covered by a single garment of small skins, the pristine Monsieur Thuran the group had last seen on the deck of the Lady Alice.
Before the other members of the little community were apprised of his presence Tennington and Miss Strong questioned him regarding the other occupants of the missing boat.
Before the other members of the small community were notified of his presence, Tennington and Miss Strong asked him about the other people on the missing boat.
“They are all dead,” replied Thuran. “The three sailors died before we made land. Miss Porter was carried off into the jungle by some wild animal while I was lying delirious with fever. Clayton died of the same fever but a few days since. And to think that all this time we have been separated by but a few miles—scarcely a day’s march. It is terrible!”
“They're all dead,” Thuran said. “The three sailors died before we reached land. Miss Porter was taken into the jungle by some wild animal while I was lying here, delirious from fever. Clayton passed away from the same fever just a few days ago. And to think we’ve been separated by only a few miles—barely a day’s march. It’s awful!”
How long Jane Porter lay in the darkness of the vault beneath the temple in the ancient city of Opar she did not know. For a time she was delirious with fever, but after this passed she commenced slowly to regain her strength. Every day the woman who brought her food beckoned to her to arise, but for many days the girl could only shake her head to indicate that she was too weak.
How long Jane Porter lay in the darkness of the vault beneath the temple in the ancient city of Opar, she didn't know. For a while, she was delirious with fever, but once that passed, she started to slowly regain her strength. Every day, the woman who brought her food urged her to get up, but for many days, the girl could only shake her head to show that she was too weak.
But eventually she was able to gain her feet, and then to stagger a few steps by supporting herself with one hand upon the wall. Her captors now watched her with increasing interest. The day was approaching, and the victim was gaining in strength.
But eventually she managed to get on her feet and stagger a few steps by leaning on the wall for support. Her captors watched her with growing interest. The day was getting closer, and the victim was getting stronger.
Presently the day came, and a young woman whom Jane Porter had not seen before came with several others to her dungeon. Here some sort of ceremony was performed—that it was of a religious nature the girl was sure, and so she took new heart, and rejoiced that she had fallen among people upon whom the refining and softening influences of religion evidently had fallen. They would treat her humanely—of that she was now quite sure.
Presently, the day arrived, and a young woman whom Jane Porter had never seen before came with a group of others to her prison. They performed some kind of ceremony, which the girl felt was religious in nature. This gave her renewed hope, and she was glad to find herself among people who clearly had been touched by the uplifting and gentle influences of religion. She was now certain they would treat her humanely.
And so when they led her from her dungeon, through long, dark corridors, and up a flight of concrete steps to a brilliant courtyard, she went willingly, even gladly—for was she not among the servants of God? It might be, of course, that their interpretation of the supreme being differed from her own, but that they owned a god was sufficient evidence to her that they were kind and good.
And so when they took her out of her dungeon, through long, dark hallways, and up a flight of concrete stairs to a bright courtyard, she went willingly, even happily—after all, wasn’t she among the servants of God? It could be that their understanding of the supreme being was different from hers, but the fact that they believed in a god was enough for her to see them as kind and good.
But when she saw a stone altar in the center of the courtyard, and dark-brown stains upon it and the nearby concrete of the floor, she began to wonder and to doubt. And as they stooped and bound her ankles, and secured her wrists behind her, her doubts were turned to fear. A moment later, as she was lifted and placed supine across the altar’s top, hope left her entirely, and she trembled in an agony of fright.
But when she saw a stone altar in the middle of the courtyard, with dark brown stains on it and on the nearby concrete floor, she started to wonder and doubt. As they bent down and tied her ankles, securing her wrists behind her, her doubts turned into fear. Moments later, as she was lifted and laid flat on the altar, hope completely left her, and she shook in terror.
During the grotesque dance of the votaries which followed, she lay frozen in horror, nor did she require the sight of the thin blade in the hands of the high priestess as it rose slowly above her to enlighten her further as to her doom.
During the unsettling dance of the worshipers that followed, she lay frozen in fear, and she didn't need to see the thin blade in the hands of the high priestess as it slowly rose above her to understand her fate.
As the hand began its descent, Jane Porter closed her eyes and sent up a silent prayer to the Maker she was so soon to face—then she succumbed to the strain upon her tired nerves, and swooned.
As the hand started to come down, Jane Porter closed her eyes and quietly prayed to the Creator she was about to confront—then she gave in to the pressure on her weary nerves and fainted.
Day and night Tarzan of the Apes raced through the primeval forest toward the ruined city in which he was positive the woman he loved lay either a prisoner or dead.
Day and night, Tarzan of the Apes raced through the ancient forest toward the ruined city where he was sure the woman he loved was either a prisoner or dead.
In a day and a night he covered the same distance that the fifty frightful men had taken the better part of a week to traverse, for Tarzan of the Apes traveled along the middle terrace high above the tangled obstacles that impede progress upon the ground.
In just one day and night, he covered the same distance that the fifty terrifying men had taken most of a week to travel, because Tarzan of the Apes moved along the middle terrace, well above the tangled obstacles that block the way on the ground.
The story the young bull ape had told made it clear to him that the girl captive had been Jane Porter, for there was not another small white “she” in all the jungle. The “bulls” he had recognized from the ape’s crude description as the grotesque parodies upon humanity who inhabit the ruins of Opar. And the girl’s fate he could picture as plainly as though he were an eyewitness to it. When they would lay her across that trim altar he could not guess, but that her dear, frail body would eventually find its way there he was confident.
The story the young bull ape had told made it clear to him that the girl captive was Jane Porter, since there wasn't another small white “she” in the entire jungle. He recognized the “bulls” from the ape’s rough description as the grotesque mockeries of humanity that live in the ruins of Opar. He could imagine the girl’s fate as clearly as if he had witnessed it himself. He couldn’t guess when they would lay her across that neat altar, but he was sure that her dear, fragile body would eventually end up there.
But, finally, after what seemed long ages to the impatient ape-man, he topped the barrier cliffs that hemmed the desolate valley, and below him lay the grim and awful ruins of the now hideous city of Opar. At a rapid trot he started across the dry and dusty, bowlder-strewn ground toward the goal of his desires.
But finally, after what felt like ages to the impatient ape-man, he reached the top of the cliffs that surrounded the desolate valley, and below him were the grim and terrible ruins of the now hideous city of Opar. He quickly set off across the dry, dusty ground scattered with boulders toward the object of his desires.
Would he be in time to rescue? He hoped against hope. At least he could be revenged, and in his wrath it seemed to him that he was equal to the task of wiping out the entire population of that terrible city. It was nearly noon when he reached the great bowlder at the top of which terminated the secret passage to the pits beneath the city. Like a cat he scaled the precipitous sides of the frowning granite kopje. A moment later he was running through the darkness of the long, straight tunnel that led to the treasure vault. Through this he passed, then on and on until at last he came to the well-like shaft upon the opposite side of which lay the dungeon with the false wall.
Would he make it in time to rescue? He hoped against hope. At the very least, he could get revenge, and in his anger, it felt like he could wipe out the entire population of that awful city. It was almost noon when he reached the large boulder at the top of which ended the secret passage to the pits beneath the city. Like a cat, he climbed the steep sides of the looming granite kopje. Moments later, he was running through the darkness of the long, straight tunnel that led to the treasure vault. He passed through this, then on and on until finally, he arrived at the well-like shaft on the opposite side of which lay the dungeon with the false wall.
As he paused a moment upon the brink of the well a faint sound came to him through the opening above. His quick ears caught and translated it—it was the dance of death that preceded a sacrifice, and the singsong ritual of the high priestess. He could even recognize the woman’s voice. Could it be that the ceremony marked the very thing he had so hastened to prevent? A wave of horror swept over him. Was he, after all, to be just a moment too late? Like a frightened deer he leaped across the narrow chasm to the continuation of the passage beyond. At the false wall he tore like one possessed to demolish the barrier that confronted him—with giant muscles he forced the opening, thrusting his head and shoulders through the first small hole he made, and carrying the balance of the wall with him, to clatter resoundingly upon the cement floor of the dungeon.
As he paused for a moment at the edge of the well, a faint sound reached him from above. His sharp ears picked it up and interpreted it—it was the dance of death before a sacrifice, along with the rhythmic chant of the high priestess. He could even recognize her voice. Could it be that the ceremony signified exactly what he had rushed to stop? A wave of horror washed over him. Was he going to be just a moment too late? Like a scared deer, he jumped across the narrow gap to the path ahead. At the false wall, he tore through it as if possessed, breaking down the barrier in front of him—using his powerful muscles, he forced an opening, pushing his head and shoulders through the first small hole he made, and bringing the rest of the wall down with him, crashing onto the cement floor of the dungeon.
With a single leap he cleared the length of the chamber and threw himself against the ancient door. But here he stopped. The mighty bars upon the other side were proof even against such muscles as his. It needed but a moment’s effort to convince him of the futility of endeavoring to force that impregnable barrier. There was but one other way, and that led back through the long tunnels to the bowlder a mile beyond the city’s walls, and then back across the open as he had come to the city first with his Waziri.
With one big jump, he crossed the entire room and slammed against the old door. But then he halted. The heavy bars on the other side were far too strong even for his powerful muscles. It only took a moment for him to realize that trying to break through that unbreakable barrier was pointless. There was only one other option, and that was to go back through the long tunnels to the boulder a mile outside the city walls, and then back across the open ground, just like he had when he first arrived in the city with his Waziri.
He realized that to retrace his steps and enter the city from above ground would mean that he would be too late to save the girl, if it were indeed she who lay upon the sacrificial altar above him. But there seemed no other way, and so he turned and ran swiftly back into the passageway beyond the broken wall. At the well he heard again the monotonous voice of the high priestess, and, as he glanced aloft, the opening, twenty feet above, seemed so near that he was tempted to leap for it in a mad endeavor to reach the inner courtyard that lay so near.
He realized that going back and entering the city from above would mean he’d be too late to save the girl if it really was her lying on the sacrificial altar above him. But there didn’t seem to be any other option, so he turned and ran quickly back into the passageway beyond the broken wall. At the well, he heard the high priestess’s monotonous voice again, and as he looked up, the opening twenty feet above seemed so close that he felt tempted to jump for it in a desperate attempt to reach the inner courtyard that lay so close.
If he could but get one end of his grass rope caught upon some projection at the top of that tantalizing aperture! In the instant’s pause and thought an idea occurred to him. He would attempt it. Turning back to the tumbled wall, he seized one of the large, flat slabs that had composed it. Hastily making one end of his rope fast to the piece of granite, he returned to the shaft, and, coiling the balance of the rope on the floor beside him, the ape-man took the heavy slab in both hands, and, swinging it several times to get the distance and the direction fixed, he let the weight fly up at a slight angle, so that, instead of falling straight back into the shaft again, it grazed the far edge, tumbling over into the court beyond.
If he could just get one end of his grass rope caught on something at the top of that frustrating opening! In that brief moment of pause and thought, an idea came to him. He decided to give it a try. Turning back to the crumbled wall, he grabbed one of the large, flat stones that had been part of it. Quickly tying one end of his rope to the piece of granite, he went back to the shaft. Coiling the rest of the rope on the floor beside him, the ape-man lifted the heavy slab with both hands, swinging it several times to get the distance and direction right. Then he let the weight fly up at a slight angle, so instead of falling straight back into the shaft, it skimmed the far edge and tumbled into the courtyard beyond.
Tarzan dragged for a moment upon the slack end of the rope until he felt that the stone was lodged with fair security at the shaft’s top, then he swung out over the black depths beneath. The moment his full weight came upon the rope he felt it slip from above. He waited there in awful suspense as it dropped in little jerks, inch by inch. The stone was being dragged up the outside of the masonry surrounding the top of the shaft—would it catch at the very edge, or would his weight drag it over to fall upon him as he hurtled into the unknown depths below?
Tarzan pulled on the loose end of the rope for a moment until he was sure the stone was securely lodged at the top of the shaft, then he swung out over the dark depths below. As soon as his full weight hit the rope, he felt it slipping from above. He hung there in terrifying anticipation as it dropped in small jerks, inch by inch. The stone was being pulled up the outside of the wall surrounding the top of the shaft—would it catch at the edge, or would his weight pull it over to fall on him as he plunged into the unknown depths below?
Chapter XXV
Through the Forest Primeval
For a brief, sickening moment Tarzan felt the slipping of the rope to which he clung, and heard the scraping of the block of stone against the masonry above.
For a brief, sickening moment, Tarzan felt the rope he was holding slipping away and heard the stone block scraping against the wall above him.
Then of a sudden the rope was still—the stone had caught at the very edge. Gingerly the ape-man clambered up the frail rope. In a moment his head was above the edge of the shaft. The court was empty. The inhabitants of Opar were viewing the sacrifice. Tarzan could hear the voice of La from the nearby sacrificial court. The dance had ceased. It must be almost time for the knife to fall; but even as he thought these things he was running rapidly toward the sound of the high priestess’ voice.
Then suddenly the rope went still—the stone had caught at the very edge. Cautiously, the ape-man climbed up the fragile rope. In a moment, his head was above the edge of the shaft. The courtyard was empty. The people of Opar were watching the sacrifice. Tarzan could hear La’s voice from the nearby sacrificial court. The dance had stopped. It had to be almost time for the knife to fall; but even as he thought these things, he was quickly running toward the sound of the high priestess’s voice.
Fate guided him to the very doorway of the great roofless chamber. Between him and the altar was the long row of priests and priestesses, awaiting with their golden cups the spilling of the warm blood of their victim. La’s hand was descending slowly toward the bosom of the frail, quiet figure that lay stretched upon the hard stone. Tarzan gave a gasp that was almost a sob as he recognized the features of the girl he loved. And then the scar upon his forehead turned to a flaming band of scarlet, a red mist floated before his eyes, and, with the awful roar of the bull ape gone mad, he sprang like a huge lion into the midst of the votaries.
Fate led him right to the entrance of the vast open chamber. In front of him, lined up between him and the altar, were the priests and priestesses, holding their golden cups, ready for the warm blood of their sacrifice. La's hand was slowly reaching towards the chest of the fragile, silent figure lying on the cold stone. Tarzan gasped, nearly sobbing as he recognized the face of the girl he loved. In that moment, the scar on his forehead felt like a blazing band of red, a crimson haze clouded his vision, and, with the terrifying roar of a mad bull ape, he lunged like a massive lion into the crowd of worshippers.
Seizing a cudgel from the nearest priest, he laid about him like a veritable demon as he forged his rapid way toward the altar. The hand of La had paused at the first noise of interruption. When she saw who the author of it was she went white. She had never been able to fathom the secret of the strange white man’s escape from the dungeon in which she had locked him. She had not intended that he should ever leave Opar, for she had looked upon his giant frame and handsome face with the eyes of a woman and not those of a priestess.
Grabbing a club from the nearest priest, he swung it wildly like a true demon as he hurried toward the altar. La stopped when she heard the first sound of disruption. When she realized who was responsible, she turned pale. She had never figured out how the strange white man managed to escape from the dungeon where she had locked him up. She never meant for him to leave Opar, as she had viewed his strong build and handsome face with the eyes of a woman rather than those of a priestess.
In her clever mind she had concocted a story of wonderful revelation from the lips of the flaming god himself, in which she had been ordered to receive this white stranger as a messenger from him to his people on earth. That would satisfy the people of Opar, she knew. The man would be satisfied, she felt quite sure, to remain and be her husband rather than to return to the sacrificial altar.
In her clever mind, she had come up with a story of an amazing revelation from the flaming god himself, in which she had been instructed to welcome this white stranger as a messenger to his people on earth. She knew that would please the people of Opar. She was fairly certain the man would prefer to stay and be her husband instead of going back to the sacrificial altar.
But when she had gone to explain her plan to him he had disappeared, though the door had been tightly locked as she had left it. And now he had returned—materialized from thin air—and was killing her priests as though they had been sheep. For the moment she forgot her victim, and before she could gather her wits together again the huge white man was standing before her, the woman who had lain upon the altar in his arms.
But when she went to explain her plan to him, he had vanished, even though the door was still tightly locked as she had left it. And now he had returned—appearing out of nowhere—and was killing her priests as if they were sheep. For a moment, she forgot about her victim, and before she could collect her thoughts again, the huge white man was standing in front of her, holding the woman who had been on the altar in his arms.
“One side, La,” he cried. “You saved me once, and so I would not harm you; but do not interfere or attempt to follow, or I shall have to kill you also.”
"Step aside, La," he shouted. "You saved me once, so I won’t hurt you; but don’t interfere or try to follow, or I’ll have to kill you too."
As he spoke he stepped past her toward the entrance to the subterranean vaults.
As he talked, he moved past her toward the entrance of the underground vaults.
“Who is she?” asked the high priestess, pointing at the unconscious woman.
“Who is she?” asked the high priestess, pointing at the unconscious woman.
“She is mine,” said Tarzan of the Apes.
"She's mine," said Tarzan.
For a moment the girl of Opar stood wide-eyed and staring. Then a look of hopeless misery suffused her eyes—tears welled into them, and with a little cry she sank to the cold floor, just as a swarm of frightful men dashed past her to leap upon the ape-man.
For a moment, the girl from Opar stood wide-eyed and staring. Then a look of hopeless misery filled her eyes—tears welled up, and with a small cry, she sank to the cold floor as a group of horrifying men rushed past her to attack the ape-man.
But Tarzan of the Apes was not there when they reached out to seize him. With a light bound he had disappeared into the passage leading to the pits below, and when his pursuers came more cautiously after they found the chamber empty, they but laughed and jabbered to one another, for they knew that there was no exit from the pits other than the one through which he had entered. If he came out at all he must come this way, and they would wait and watch for him above.
But Tarzan of the Apes wasn’t there when they tried to grab him. With a quick leap, he vanished into the passage leading to the pits below, and when his pursuers cautiously followed and found the room empty, they just laughed and chattered to each other, knowing there was no way out of the pits except through the entrance he had used. If he came out at all, he would have to come this way, and they would wait and watch for him above.
And so Tarzan of the Apes, carrying the unconscious Jane Porter, came through the pits of Opar beneath the temple of The Flaming God without pursuit. But when the men of Opar had talked further about the matter, they recalled to mind that this very man had escaped once before into the pits, and, though they had watched the entrance he had not come forth; and yet today he had come upon them from the outside. They would again send fifty men out into the valley to find and capture this desecrater of their temple.
And so Tarzan of the Apes, carrying the unconscious Jane Porter, made his way through the pits of Opar underneath the temple of The Flaming God without being followed. But after the men of Opar discussed it more, they remembered that this same guy had previously escaped into the pits, and even though they had kept an eye on the entrance, he hadn’t come out; yet today he had approached them from the outside. They would send another fifty men out into the valley to find and capture this violator of their temple.
After Tarzan reached the shaft beyond the broken wall, he felt so positive of the successful issue of his flight that he stopped to replace the tumbled stones, for he was not anxious that any of the inmates should discover this forgotten passage, and through it come upon the treasure chamber. It was in his mind to return again to Opar and bear away a still greater fortune than he had already buried in the amphitheater of the apes.
After Tarzan reached the tunnel beyond the broken wall, he felt so confident about the success of his escape that he paused to put the fallen stones back in place. He didn’t want any of the residents to discover this forgotten passage and stumble upon the treasure chamber. He planned to return to Opar and carry away an even greater fortune than the one he had already buried in the amphitheater of the apes.
On through the passageways he trotted, past the first door and through the treasure vault; past the second door and into the long, straight tunnel that led to the lofty hidden exit beyond the city. Jane Porter was still unconscious.
On he ran through the hallways, past the first door and through the treasure vault; past the second door and into the long, straight tunnel that led to the high hidden exit beyond the city. Jane Porter was still unconscious.
At the crest of the great bowlder he halted to cast a backward glance toward the city. Coming across the plain he saw a band of the hideous men of Opar. For a moment he hesitated. Should he descend and make a race for the distant cliffs, or should he hide here until night? And then a glance at the girl’s white face determined him. He could not keep her here and permit her enemies to get between them and liberty. For aught he knew they might have been followed through the tunnels, and to have foes before and behind would result in almost certain capture, since he could not fight his way through the enemy burdened as he was with the unconscious girl.
At the top of the huge boulder, he stopped to look back at the city. Across the plain, he spotted a group of the ugly men of Opar. For a moment, he hesitated. Should he head down and make a run for the distant cliffs, or should he stay here and wait until night? Then he saw the girl’s pale face, and that decision was made for him. He couldn’t leave her here and let her enemies get between them and freedom. For all he knew, they might have been followed through the tunnels, and having enemies in front and behind would almost guarantee their capture, especially since he couldn’t fight his way through with the unconscious girl.
To descend the steep face of the bowlder with Jane Porter was no easy task, but by binding her across his shoulders with the grass rope he succeeded in reaching the ground in safety before the Oparians arrived at the great rock. As the descent had been made upon the side away from the city, the searching party saw nothing of it, nor did they dream that their prey was so close before them.
Sliding down the steep side of the boulder with Jane Porter wasn’t easy, but by tying her across his shoulders with a grass rope, he managed to get to the ground safely before the Oparians reached the large rock. Since they descended on the side away from the city, the search party didn’t see anything and had no idea their target was so near.
By keeping the kopje between them and their pursuers, Tarzan of the Apes managed to cover nearly a mile before the men of Opar rounded the granite sentinel and saw the fugitive before them. With loud cries of savage delight, they broke into a mad run, thinking doubtless that they would soon overhaul the burdened runner; but they both underestimated the powers of the ape-man and overestimated the possibilities of their own short, crooked legs.
By using the kopje as a barrier between him and his pursuers, Tarzan of the Apes was able to cover almost a mile before the men of Opar rounded the granite sentinel and spotted the fugitive ahead of them. With loud shouts of wild excitement, they broke into a frantic run, probably thinking they would quickly catch up to the exhausted runner; however, they both underestimated the abilities of the ape-man and overestimated the capabilities of their own short, crooked legs.
By maintaining an easy trot, Tarzan kept the distance between them always the same. Occasionally he would glance at the face so near his own. Had it not been for the faint beating of the heart pressed so close against his own, he would not have known that she was alive, so white and drawn was the poor, tired face.
By keeping a steady jog, Tarzan maintained the same distance between them. Every now and then, he would look at the face so close to his. If it weren't for the faint beating of the heart pressed against his, he wouldn't have known she was alive, as her poor, tired face was so pale and drawn.
And thus they came to the flat-topped mountain and the barrier cliffs. During the last mile Tarzan had let himself out, running like a deer that he might have ample time to descend the face of the cliffs before the Oparians could reach the summit and hurl rocks down upon them. And so it was that he was half a mile down the mountainside ere the fierce little men came panting to the edge.
And so they arrived at the flat-topped mountain and the steep cliffs. In the last mile, Tarzan had picked up his speed, running like a deer to ensure he had enough time to climb down the cliff face before the Oparians reached the top and started throwing rocks at them. By the time the fierce little men reached the edge, Tarzan was already half a mile down the mountainside.
With cries of rage and disappointment they ranged along the cliff top shaking their cudgels, and dancing up and down in a perfect passion of anger. But this time they did not pursue beyond the boundary of their own country. Whether it was because they recalled the futility of their former long and irksome search, or after witnessing the ease with which the ape-man swung along before them, and the last burst of speed, they realized the utter hopelessness of further pursuit, it is difficult to say; but as Tarzan reached the woods that began at the base of the foothills which skirted the barrier cliffs they turned their faces once more toward Opar.
With shouts of anger and frustration, they lined the cliff top, shaking their sticks and jumping up and down in a fit of rage. But this time, they didn’t chase beyond their own borders. It’s hard to tell whether they remembered how pointless their previous, long, and tiresome search had been, or if seeing the ease with which the ape-man moved in front of them made them realize that continuing the chase was completely hopeless. As Tarzan reached the woods that started at the base of the foothills next to the barrier cliffs, they turned their faces back toward Opar.
Just within the forest’s edge, where he could yet watch the cliff tops, Tarzan laid his burden upon the grass, and going to the near-by rivulet brought water with which he bathed her face and hands; but even this did not revive her, and, greatly worried, he gathered the girl into his strong arms once more and hurried on toward the west.
Just at the edge of the forest, where he could still see the cliff tops, Tarzan laid her down on the grass and went to a nearby stream to get water to wash her face and hands. But even that didn't help her come back to life, and feeling very anxious, he picked the girl up in his strong arms again and rushed westward.
Late in the afternoon Jane Porter regained consciousness. She did not open her eyes at once—she was trying to recall the scenes that she had last witnessed. Ah, she remembered now. The altar, the terrible priestess, the descending knife. She gave a little shudder, for she thought that either this was death or that the knife had buried itself in her heart and she was experiencing the brief delirium preceding death. And when finally she mustered courage to open her eyes, the sight that met them confirmed her fears, for she saw that she was being borne through a leafy paradise in the arms of her dead love. “If this be death,” she murmured, “thank God that I am dead.”
Late in the afternoon, Jane Porter woke up. She didn't open her eyes right away—she was trying to remember the last things she had seen. Oh, she remembered now. The altar, the terrifying priestess, the knife coming down. She shuddered a little, thinking that either this was death or the knife had plunged into her heart and she was experiencing the brief madness before dying. When she finally found the courage to open her eyes, the sight before her confirmed her fears, as she saw that she was being carried through a leafy paradise in the arms of her dead love. “If this is death,” she murmured, “thank God that I am dead.”
“You spoke, Jane!” cried Tarzan. “You are regaining consciousness!”
"You spoke, Jane!" shouted Tarzan. "You're coming back to consciousness!"
“Yes, Tarzan of the Apes,” she replied, and for the first time in months a smile of peace and happiness lighted her face.
“Yes, Tarzan of the Apes,” she replied, and for the first time in months, a smile of peace and happiness lit up her face.
“Thank God!” cried the ape-man, coming to the ground in a little grassy clearing beside the stream. “I was in time, after all.”
“Thank God!” shouted the ape-man, landing in a small grassy clearing next to the stream. “I made it just in time, after all.”
“In time? What do you mean?” she questioned.
“In time? What do you mean?” she asked.
“In time to save you from death upon the altar, dear,” he replied. “Do you not remember?”
“In time to save you from death on the altar, my dear,” he replied. “Don’t you remember?”
“Save me from death?” she asked, in a puzzled tone. “Are we not both dead, my Tarzan?”
“Save me from death?” she asked, confused. “Aren't we both dead, my Tarzan?”
He had placed her upon the grass by now, her back resting against the stem of a huge tree. At her question he stepped back where he could the better see her face.
He had laid her down on the grass, with her back against the trunk of a large tree. In response to her question, he stepped back so he could see her face better.
“Dead!” he repeated, and then he laughed. “You are not, Jane; and if you will return to the city of Opar and ask them who dwell there they will tell you that I was not dead a few short hours ago. No, dear, we are both very much alive.”
“Dead!” he repeated, then he laughed. “You’re not, Jane; and if you go back to the city of Opar and ask the people who live there, they’ll tell you that I wasn’t dead just a few hours ago. No, dear, we’re both very much alive.”
“But both Hazel and Monsieur Thuran told me that you had fallen into the ocean many miles from land,” she urged, as though trying to convince him that he must indeed be dead. “They said that there was no question but that it must have been you, and less that you could have survived or been picked up.”
“But both Hazel and Monsieur Thuran told me that you had fallen into the ocean many miles from shore,” she insisted, as if trying to convince him that he really must be dead. “They said there was no doubt it was you, and even less chance that you could have survived or been rescued.”
“How can I convince you that I am no spirit?” he asked, with a laugh. “It was I whom the delightful Monsieur Thuran pushed overboard, but I did not drown—I will tell you all about it after a while—and here I am very much the same wild man you first knew, Jane Porter.”
“How can I convince you that I'm not a ghost?” he asked with a laugh. “It was me that the charming Monsieur Thuran pushed overboard, but I didn’t drown—I’ll tell you all about it later—and here I am, still very much the same wild guy you first knew, Jane Porter.”
The girl rose slowly to her feet and came toward him.
The girl got up slowly and walked over to him.
“I cannot even yet believe it,” she murmured. “It cannot be that such happiness can be true after all the hideous things that I have passed through these awful months since the Lady Alice went down.”
“I still can’t believe it,” she said softly. “It can’t be possible that such happiness is real after everything terrible I’ve gone through in these awful months since the Lady Alice sank.”
She came close to him and laid a hand, soft and trembling, upon his arm.
She moved closer to him and gently placed a soft, trembling hand on his arm.
“It must be that I am dreaming, and that I shall awaken in a moment to see that awful knife descending toward my heart—kiss me, dear, just once before I lose my dream forever.”
“It has to be a dream, and I’ll wake up any moment to see that terrible knife coming down toward my heart—kiss me, love, just once before I lose this dream forever.”
Tarzan of the Apes needed no second invitation. He took the girl he loved in his strong arms, and kissed her not once, but a hundred times, until she lay there panting for breath; yet when he stopped she put her arms about his neck and drew his lips down to hers once more.
Tarzan of the Apes didn’t need to be told twice. He picked up the girl he loved in his strong arms and kissed her not just once, but a hundred times, until she was breathless; yet when he paused, she wrapped her arms around his neck and pulled his lips down to hers again.
“Am I alive and a reality, or am I but a dream?” he asked.
“Am I alive and real, or am I just a dream?” he asked.
“If you are not alive, my man,” she answered, “I pray that I may die thus before I awaken to the terrible realities of my last waking moments.”
“If you’re not alive, my man,” she replied, “I hope I die like this before I face the terrible truths of my final moments.”
For a while both were silent—gazing into each others’ eyes as though each still questioned the reality of the wonderful happiness that had come to them. The past, with all its hideous disappointments and horrors, was forgotten—the future did not belong to them; but the present—ah, it was theirs; none could take it from them. It was the girl who first broke the sweet silence.
For a while, they both stayed quiet—looking into each other’s eyes as if they were still unsure about the reality of the amazing happiness that had come their way. They forgot the past, with all its terrible disappointments and fears—the future didn’t belong to them; but the present—ah, that was theirs; no one could take it away from them. It was the girl who first interrupted the sweet silence.
“Where are we going, dear?” she asked. “What are we going to do?”
“Where are we headed, babe?” she asked. “What are we going to do?”
“Where would you like best to go?” he asked. “What would you like best to do?”
“Where would you like to go the most?” he asked. “What would you like to do the most?”
“To go where you go, my man; to do whatever seems best to you,” she answered.
“Wherever you go, I’ll go, my man; I’ll do whatever you think is best,” she replied.
“But Clayton?” he asked. For a moment he had forgotten that there existed upon the earth other than they two. “We have forgotten your husband.”
“But Clayton?” he asked. For a moment, he had forgotten that there were other people on earth besides the two of them. “We forgot about your husband.”
“I am not married, Tarzan of the Apes,” she cried. “Nor am I longer promised in marriage. The day before those awful creatures captured me I spoke to Mr. Clayton of my love for you, and he understood then that I could not keep the wicked promise that I had made. It was after we had been miraculously saved from an attacking lion.” She paused suddenly and looked up at him, a questioning light in her eyes. “Tarzan of the Apes,” she cried, “it was you who did that thing? It could have been no other.”
“I’m not married, Tarzan of the Apes,” she exclaimed. “And I’m no longer promised to anyone. The day before those horrible creatures took me, I told Mr. Clayton about my feelings for you, and he realized then that I couldn’t keep the awful promise I had made. That was right after we were miraculously saved from an attacking lion.” She suddenly paused and looked up at him, a questioning look in her eyes. “Tarzan of the Apes,” she cried, “was it you who did that? It couldn’t have been anyone else.”
He dropped his eyes, for he was ashamed.
He looked down, feeling ashamed.
“How could you have gone away and left me?” she cried reproachfully.
“How could you leave me like this?” she cried, hurt.
“Don’t, Jane!” he pleaded. “Please don’t! You cannot know how I have suffered since for the cruelty of that act, or how I suffered then, first in jealous rage, and then in bitter resentment against the fate that I had not deserved. I went back to the apes after that, Jane, intending never again to see a human being.” He told her then of his life since he had returned to the jungle—of how he had dropped like a plummet from a civilized Parisian to a savage Waziri warrior, and from there back to the brute that he had been raised.
“Don’t, Jane!” he begged. “Please don’t! You have no idea how much I’ve suffered since that cruel act, or how I felt back then, first consumed by jealous rage, then filled with bitter resentment towards a fate I didn’t deserve. After that, I went back to the apes, planning never to see another human again.” He then shared with her the story of his life since returning to the jungle—how he had fallen like a stone from a civilized Parisian to a savage Waziri warrior, and from there back to the brute he had been raised to be.
She asked him many questions, and at last fearfully of the things that Monsieur Thuran had told her—of the woman in Paris. He narrated every detail of his civilized life to her, omitting nothing, for he felt no shame, since his heart always had been true to her. When he had finished he sat looking at her, as though waiting for her judgment, and his sentence.
She asked him a lot of questions, and finally, out of concern for what Monsieur Thuran had told her about the woman in Paris. He shared every detail of his life with her, leaving nothing out, because he felt no shame, as his heart had always been loyal to her. Once he finished, he sat there watching her, as if he were waiting for her decision and his fate.
“I knew that he was not speaking the truth,” she said. “Oh, what a horrible creature he is!”
“I knew he wasn’t telling the truth,” she said. “Oh, what a terrible person he is!”
“You are not angry with me, then?” he asked.
“You're not mad at me, then?” he asked.
And her reply, though apparently most irrelevant, was truly feminine.
And her response, although it seemed completely off-topic, was definitely feminine.
“Is Olga de Coude very beautiful?” she asked.
“Is Olga de Coude really beautiful?” she asked.
And Tarzan laughed and kissed her again. “Not one-tenth so beautiful as you, dear,” he said.
And Tarzan laughed and kissed her again. “Not even close to how beautiful you are, dear,” he said.
She gave a contented little sigh, and let her head rest against his shoulder. He knew that he was forgiven.
She let out a satisfied sigh and rested her head on his shoulder. He knew she had forgiven him.
That night Tarzan built a snug little bower high among the swaying branches of a giant tree, and there the tired girl slept, while in a crotch beneath her the ape-man curled, ready, even in sleep, to protect her.
That night, Tarzan built a cozy little shelter high up in the swaying branches of a giant tree, and there the tired girl slept, while in a nook beneath her, the ape-man curled up, ready to protect her even in his sleep.
It took them many days to make the long journey to the coast. Where the way was easy they walked hand in hand beneath the arching boughs of the mighty forest, as might in a far-gone past have walked their primeval forbears. When the underbrush was tangled he took her in his great arms, and bore her lightly through the trees, and the days were all too short, for they were very happy. Had it not been for their anxiety to reach and succor Clayton they would have drawn out the sweet pleasure of that wonderful journey indefinitely.
It took them several days to travel to the coast. Where the path was simple, they strolled hand in hand beneath the bending branches of the giant trees, just like their ancient ancestors might have done long ago. When the underbrush was dense, he would lift her into his strong arms and carry her effortlessly through the woods, and the days felt way too short because they were so happy. If it hadn’t been for their worry about reaching and helping Clayton, they would have happily stretched that amazing journey out forever.
On the last day before they reached the coast Tarzan caught the scent of men ahead of them—the scent of black men. He told the girl, and cautioned her to maintain silence. “There are few friends in the jungle,” he remarked dryly.
On the last day before they reached the coast, Tarzan picked up the scent of men ahead of them—the scent of black men. He informed the girl and warned her to stay quiet. “There aren’t many friends in the jungle,” he said dryly.
In half an hour they came stealthily upon a small party of black warriors filing toward the west. As Tarzan saw them he gave a cry of delight—it was a band of his own Waziri. Busuli was there, and others who had accompanied him to Opar. At sight of him they danced and cried out in exuberant joy. For weeks they had been searching for him, they told him.
In half an hour, they quietly approached a small group of black warriors heading west. When Tarzan saw them, he shouted with happiness—it was a group of his own Waziri. Busuli was there, along with others who had gone with him to Opar. When they saw him, they danced and shouted with excitement. They told him they had been searching for him for weeks.
The blacks exhibited considerable wonderment at the presence of the white girl with him, and when they found that she was to be his woman they vied with one another to do her honor. With the happy Waziri laughing and dancing about them they came to the rude shelter by the shore.
The Black people were quite amazed by the presence of the white girl with him, and when they realized she was going to be his partner, they all tried to show her respect and admiration. With the cheerful Waziri laughing and dancing around them, they arrived at the simple shelter by the shore.
There was no sign of life, and no response to their calls. Tarzan clambered quickly to the interior of the little tree hut, only to emerge a moment later with an empty tin. Throwing it down to Busuli, he told him to fetch water, and then he beckoned Jane Porter to come up.
There was no sign of life, and no response to their calls. Tarzan quickly climbed into the small tree hut, only to come out a moment later with an empty tin. He threw it down to Busuli, telling him to get water, and then he waved for Jane Porter to come up.
Together they leaned over the emaciated thing that once had been an English nobleman. Tears came to the girl’s eyes as she saw the poor, sunken cheeks and hollow eyes, and the lines of suffering upon the once young and handsome face.
Together they leaned over the frail figure that had once been an English nobleman. Tears filled the girl's eyes as she looked at the poor, sunken cheeks and hollow eyes, and the lines of pain on the once young and attractive face.
“He still lives,” said Tarzan. “We will do all that can be done for him, but I fear that we are too late.”
“He’s still alive,” said Tarzan. “We’ll do everything we can for him, but I’m afraid we might be too late.”
When Busuli had brought the water Tarzan forced a few drops between the cracked and swollen lips. He wetted the hot forehead and bathed the pitiful limbs.
When Busuli brought the water, Tarzan managed to get a few drops between the cracked and swollen lips. He dampened the hot forehead and washed the pitiful limbs.
Presently Clayton opened his eyes. A faint, shadowy smile lighted his countenance as he saw the girl leaning over him. At sight of Tarzan the expression changed to one of wonderment.
Presently, Clayton opened his eyes. A faint, shadowy smile lit up his face as he saw the girl leaning over him. When he spotted Tarzan, his expression turned to one of amazement.
“It’s all right, old fellow,” said the ape-man. “We’ve found you in time. Everything will be all right now, and we’ll have you on your feet again before you know it.”
“It’s okay, buddy,” said the ape-man. “We found you just in time. Everything will be fine now, and we’ll have you back on your feet before you know it.”
The Englishman shook his head weakly. “It’s too late,” he whispered. “But it’s just as well. I’d rather die.”
The Englishman shook his head faintly. “It’s too late,” he whispered. “But it’s fine. I’d rather die.”
“Where is Monsieur Thuran?” asked the girl.
“Where is Mr. Thuran?” the girl asked.
“He left me after the fever got bad. He is a devil. When I begged for the water that I was too weak to get he drank before me, threw the rest out, and laughed in my face.” At the thought of it the man was suddenly animated by a spark of vitality. He raised himself upon one elbow. “Yes,” he almost shouted; “I will live. I will live long enough to find and kill that beast!” But the brief effort left him weaker than before, and he sank back again upon the rotting grasses that, with his old ulster, had been the bed of Jane Porter.
“He left me when the fever got worse. He’s a monster. When I begged for the water I was too weak to get, he drank it in front of me, threw the rest away, and laughed in my face.” At the thought of it, the man suddenly felt a surge of strength. He propped himself up on one elbow. “Yes,” he almost shouted, “I will live. I will live long enough to find and kill that beast!” But the momentary effort left him weaker than before, and he sank back onto the rotting grass that, along with his old coat, had been Jane Porter’s bed.
“Don’t worry about Thuran,” said Tarzan of the Apes, laying a reassuring hand on Clayton’s forehead. “He belongs to me, and I shall get him in the end, never fear.”
“Don’t worry about Thuran,” said Tarzan of the Apes, placing a reassuring hand on Clayton’s forehead. “He’s mine, and I’ll get him in the end, don’t worry.”
For a long time Clayton lay very still. Several times Tarzan had to put his ear quite close to the sunken chest to catch the faint beating of the worn-out heart. Toward evening he aroused again for a brief moment.
For a long time, Clayton lay completely still. Several times, Tarzan had to lean in close to Clayton's sunken chest to hear the faint beating of his tired heart. Toward evening, he regained consciousness for a brief moment.
“Jane,” he whispered. The girl bent her head closer to catch the faint message. “I have wronged you—and him,” he nodded weakly toward the ape-man. “I loved you so—it is a poor excuse to offer for injuring you; but I could not bear to think of giving you up. I do not ask your forgiveness. I only wish to do now the thing I should have done over a year ago.” He fumbled in the pocket of the ulster beneath him for something that he had discovered there while he lay between the paroxysms of fever. Presently he found it—a crumpled bit of yellow paper. He handed it to the girl, and as she took it his arm fell limply across his chest, his head dropped back, and with a little gasp he stiffened and was still. Then Tarzan of the Apes drew a fold of the ulster across the upturned face.
“Jane,” he whispered. The girl leaned in closer to hear him. “I’ve hurt you—and him,” he nodded weakly toward the ape-man. “I loved you so much—it’s a weak excuse for what I’ve done to you; but I couldn’t stand the thought of losing you. I’m not asking for your forgiveness. I just want to do now what I should have done over a year ago.” He fumbled in the pocket of his coat for something he had found there while he lay in fever. After a moment, he found it—a crumpled piece of yellow paper. He handed it to the girl, and as she took it, his arm fell limply across his chest, his head dropped back, and with a little gasp, he stiffened and went still. Then Tarzan of the Apes pulled a fold of the coat over the upturned face.
For a moment they remained kneeling there, the girl’s lips moving in silent prayer, and as they rose and stood on either side of the now peaceful form, tears came to the ape-man’s eyes, for through the anguish that his own heart had suffered he had learned compassion for the suffering of others.
For a moment, they stayed kneeling there, the girl silently praying, and as they stood up on either side of the now peaceful figure, tears filled the ape-man's eyes, for through the pain his own heart had experienced, he had discovered compassion for the suffering of others.
Through her own tears the girl read the message upon the bit of faded yellow paper, and as she read her eyes went very wide. Twice she read those startling words before she could fully comprehend their meaning.
Through her own tears, the girl read the message on the small, faded yellow paper, and as she read, her eyes widened. She read those shocking words twice before she could fully grasp their meaning.
Finger prints prove you Greystoke. Congratulations.
D’ARNOT.
Fingerprints confirm you are Greystoke. Congratulations.
D’ARNOT.
She handed the paper to Tarzan. “And he has known it all this time,” she said, “and did not tell you?”
She gave the paper to Tarzan. “And he’s known it all this time,” she said, “and didn’t tell you?”
“I knew it first, Jane,” replied the man. “I did not know that he knew it at all. I must have dropped this message that night in the waiting room. It was there that I received it.”
“I knew it first, Jane,” the man replied. “I didn’t realize he knew it at all. I must have left this message that night in the waiting room. That’s where I got it.”
“And afterward you told us that your mother was a she-ape, and that you had never known your father?” she asked incredulously.
“And later you told us that your mom was a female ape, and that you had never met your dad?” she asked in disbelief.
“The title and the estates meant nothing to me without you, dear,” he replied. “And if I had taken them away from him I should have been robbing the woman I love—don’t you understand, Jane?” It was as though he attempted to excuse a fault.
“The title and the estates meant nothing to me without you, dear,” he replied. “And if I had taken them away from him, I would have been stealing from the woman I love—don’t you get it, Jane?” It was like he was trying to justify a mistake.
She extended her arms toward him across the body of the dead man, and took his hands in hers.
She reached out her arms to him over the body of the dead man and took his hands in hers.
“And I would have thrown away a love like that!” she said.
“And I would have thrown away a love like that!” she said.
Chapter XXVI
The Passing of the Ape-Man
The next morning they set out upon the short journey to Tarzan’s cabin. Four Waziri bore the body of the dead Englishman. It had been the ape-man’s suggestion that Clayton be buried beside the former Lord Greystoke near the edge of the jungle against the cabin that the older man had built.
The next morning, they headed out on the short trip to Tarzan’s cabin. Four Waziri carried the body of the deceased Englishman. It had been the ape-man’s idea to bury Clayton next to the former Lord Greystoke, near the edge of the jungle by the cabin that the older man had built.
Jane Porter was glad that it was to be so, and in her heart of hearts she wondered at the marvelous fineness of character of this wondrous man, who, though raised by brutes and among brutes, had the true chivalry and tenderness which only associates with the refinements of the highest civilization.
Jane Porter was happy that it was going to be this way, and deep down, she marveled at the incredible character of this amazing man, who, even though he was raised by savage people and surrounded by savagery, possessed the true chivalry and kindness that only comes with the refinements of advanced civilization.
They had proceeded some three miles of the five that had separated them from Tarzan’s own beach when the Waziri who were ahead stopped suddenly, pointing in amazement at a strange figure approaching them along the beach. It was a man with a shiny silk hat, who walked slowly with bent head, and hands clasped behind him underneath the tails of his long, black coat.
They had walked about three miles of the five that separated them from Tarzan's beach when the Waziri in front suddenly stopped, pointing in surprise at an unusual figure coming toward them along the shore. It was a man wearing a shiny silk hat, who walked slowly with his head down and hands clasped behind him under the tails of his long black coat.
At sight of him Jane Porter uttered a little cry of surprise and joy, and ran quickly ahead to meet him. At the sound of her voice the old man looked up, and when he saw who it was confronting him he, too, cried out in relief and happiness. As Professor Archimedes Q. Porter folded his daughter in his arms tears streamed down his seamed old face, and it was several minutes before he could control himself sufficiently to speak.
At the sight of him, Jane Porter let out a little gasp of surprise and happiness, and hurried ahead to meet him. When the old man heard her voice, he looked up, and upon realizing who was in front of him, he also cried out in relief and joy. As Professor Archimedes Q. Porter wrapped his daughter in his arms, tears flowed down his wrinkled old face, and it took him several minutes to regain his composure enough to speak.
When a moment later he recognized Tarzan it was with difficulty that they could convince him that his sorrow had not unbalanced his mind, for with the other members of the party he had been so thoroughly convinced that the ape-man was dead it was a problem to reconcile the conviction with the very lifelike appearance of Jane’s “forest god.” The old man was deeply touched at the news of Clayton’s death.
When he recognized Tarzan a moment later, it was hard to convince him that his grief hadn’t affected his mind, because he and the others in the group had been so sure that the ape-man was dead. It was a challenge to reconcile that belief with the strikingly realistic appearance of Jane’s “forest god.” The old man was deeply affected by the news of Clayton’s death.
“I cannot understand it,” he said. “Monsieur Thuran assured us that Clayton passed away many days ago.”
“I don’t get it,” he said. “Mr. Thuran told us that Clayton died a while ago.”
“Thuran is with you?” asked Tarzan.
“Thuran is with you?” Tarzan asked.
“Yes; he but recently found us and led us to your cabin. We were camped but a short distance north of it. Bless me, but he will be delighted to see you both.”
“Yes, he just recently found us and brought us to your cabin. We were camping just a little north of it. Wow, he will be so happy to see both of you.”
“And surprised,” commented Tarzan.
"And surprised," said Tarzan.
A short time later the strange party came to the clearing in which stood the ape-man’s cabin. It was filled with people coming and going, and almost the first whom Tarzan saw was D’Arnot.
A little while later, the unusual group arrived at the clearing where the ape-man’s cabin was located. It was bustling with people coming and going, and almost the first person Tarzan noticed was D’Arnot.
“Paul!” he cried. “In the name of sanity what are you doing here? Or are we all insane?”
“Paul!” he shouted. “What are you doing here? Are we all losing our minds?”
It was quickly explained, however, as were many other seemingly strange things. D’Arnot’s ship had been cruising along the coast, on patrol duty, when at the lieutenant’s suggestion they had anchored off the little landlocked harbor to have another look at the cabin and the jungle in which many of the officers and men had taken part in exciting adventures two years before. On landing they had found Lord Tennington’s party, and arrangements were being made to take them all on board the following morning, and carry them back to civilization.
It was quickly explained, like many other seemingly strange things. D'Arnot's ship had been patrolling the coast when, at the lieutenant's suggestion, they anchored off the small, landlocked harbor to take another look at the cabin and the jungle where many of the officers and men had exciting adventures two years earlier. Upon landing, they found Lord Tennington's group, and plans were being made to take them all on board the next morning and bring them back to civilization.
Hazel Strong and her mother, Esmeralda, and Mr. Samuel T. Philander were almost overcome by happiness at Jane Porter’s safe return. Her escape seemed to them little short of miraculous, and it was the consensus of opinion that it could have been achieved by no other man than Tarzan of the Apes. They loaded the uncomfortable ape-man with eulogies and attentions until he wished himself back in the amphitheater of the apes.
Hazel Strong, her mother Esmeralda, and Mr. Samuel T. Philander were almost overwhelmed with happiness at Jane Porter’s safe return. Her escape seemed almost miraculous to them, and everyone agreed that it could only have been made possible by Tarzan of the Apes. They showered the awkward ape-man with praise and attention until he wished he were back in the ape amphitheater.
All were interested in his savage Waziri, and many were the gifts the black men received from these friends of their king, but when they learned that he might sail away from them upon the great canoe that lay at anchor a mile off shore they became very sad.
All were curious about his fierce Waziri, and the black men received many gifts from these friends of their king, but when they found out he might leave them on the large canoe that was anchored a mile offshore, they became very upset.
As yet the newcomers had seen nothing of Lord Tennington and Monsieur Thuran. They had gone out for fresh meat early in the day, and had not yet returned.
As of now, the newcomers hadn't seen anything of Lord Tennington and Monsieur Thuran. They had gone out early in the day to get fresh meat and still hadn't come back.
“How surprised this man, whose name you say is Rokoff, will be to see you,” said Jane Porter to Tarzan.
“How shocked this guy, whose name you say is Rokoff, will be to see you,” said Jane Porter to Tarzan.
“His surprise will be short-lived,” replied the ape-man grimly, and there was that in his tone that made her look up into his face in alarm. What she read there evidently confirmed her fears, for she put her hand upon his arm, and pleaded with him to leave the Russian to the laws of France.
“His surprise won’t last long,” the ape-man replied grimly, and there was something in his tone that made her look up at his face in alarm. What she saw there clearly confirmed her fears, so she placed her hand on his arm and begged him to let the Russian face the laws of France.
“In the heart of the jungle, dear,” she said, “with no other form of right or justice to appeal to other than your own mighty muscles, you would be warranted in executing upon this man the sentence he deserves; but with the strong arm of a civilized government at your disposal it would be murder to kill him now. Even your friends would have to submit to your arrest, or if you resisted it would plunge us all into misery and unhappiness again. I cannot bear to lose you again, my Tarzan. Promise me that you will but turn him over to Captain Dufranne, and let the law take its course—the beast is not worth risking our happiness for.”
“In the heart of the jungle, my dear,” she said, “with no other form of right or justice to rely on besides your own powerful strength, you would be justified in punishing this man as he deserves; but with the might of a civilized government available, it would be murder to kill him now. Even your friends would have to accept your arrest, and if you resist, it would lead us all back to misery and unhappiness. I can’t bear the thought of losing you again, my Tarzan. Promise me that you will just hand him over to Captain Dufranne and let the law handle it—the beast isn't worth risking our happiness for.”
He saw the wisdom of her appeal, and promised. A half hour later Rokoff and Tennington emerged from the jungle. They were walking side by side. Tennington was the first to note the presence of strangers in the camp. He saw the black warriors palavering with the sailors from the cruiser, and then he saw a lithe, brown giant talking with Lieutenant D’Arnot and Captain Dufranne.
He recognized the wisdom in her request and agreed. Half an hour later, Rokoff and Tennington came out of the jungle, walking side by side. Tennington was the first to notice the strangers in the camp. He saw the Black warriors chatting with the sailors from the cruiser, and then he noticed a lean, brown giant talking with Lieutenant D’Arnot and Captain Dufranne.
“Who is that, I wonder,” said Tennington to Rokoff, and as the Russian raised his eyes and met those of the ape-man full upon him, he staggered and went white.
“Who is that, I wonder,” said Tennington to Rokoff, and as the Russian looked up and locked eyes with the ape-man, he staggered and turned pale.
“Sapristi!” he cried, and before Tennington realized what he intended he had thrown his gun to his shoulder, and aiming point-blank at Tarzan pulled the trigger. But the Englishman was close to him—so close that his hand reached the leveled barrel a fraction of a second before the hammer fell upon the cartridge, and the bullet that was intended for Tarzan’s heart whirred harmlessly above his head.
“Wow!” he shouted, and before Tennington understood what he was planning to do, he had raised his gun to his shoulder and aimed straight at Tarzan, pulling the trigger. But the Englishman was right next to him—so close that his hand touched the aimed barrel just a split second before the hammer hit the cartridge, causing the bullet that was meant for Tarzan’s heart to zip harmlessly above his head.
Before the Russian could fire again the ape-man was upon him and had wrested the firearm from his grasp. Captain Dufranne, Lieutenant D’Arnot, and a dozen sailors had rushed up at the sound of the shot, and now Tarzan turned the Russian over to them without a word. He had explained the matter to the French commander before Rokoff arrived, and the officer gave immediate orders to place the Russian in irons and confine him on board the cruiser.
Before the Russian could shoot again, the ape-man was on him and had snatched the gun from his hands. Captain Dufranne, Lieutenant D’Arnot, and a dozen sailors had hurried over at the sound of the gunshot, and now Tarzan handed the Russian over to them without saying a word. He had already explained the situation to the French commander before Rokoff showed up, and the officer quickly ordered that the Russian be put in chains and locked up on the cruiser.
Just before the guard escorted the prisoner into the small boat that was to transport him to his temporary prison Tarzan asked permission to search him, and to his delight found the stolen papers concealed upon his person.
Just before the guard led the prisoner into the small boat that would take him to his temporary prison, Tarzan requested to search him and, to his delight, discovered the stolen papers hidden on him.
The shot had brought Jane Porter and the others from the cabin, and a moment after the excitement had died down she greeted the surprised Lord Tennington. Tarzan joined them after he had taken the papers from Rokoff, and, as he approached, Jane Porter introduced him to Tennington.
The gunshot had drawn Jane Porter and the others out of the cabin, and moments after the excitement died down, she greeted the surprised Lord Tennington. Tarzan joined them after taking the papers from Rokoff, and as he approached, Jane Porter introduced him to Tennington.
“John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, my lord,” she said.
“John Clayton, Lord Greystoke, my lord,” she said.
The Englishman looked his astonishment in spite of his most herculean efforts to appear courteous, and it required many repetitions of the strange story of the ape-man as told by himself, Jane Porter, and Lieutenant D’Arnot to convince Lord Tennington that they were not all quite mad.
The Englishman couldn’t hide his shock, even with his best efforts to be polite, and it took several retellings of the bizarre tale of the ape-man by him, Jane Porter, and Lieutenant D’Arnot to convince Lord Tennington that none of them were completely crazy.
At sunset they buried William Cecil Clayton beside the jungle graves of his uncle and his aunt, the former Lord and Lady Greystoke. And it was at Tarzan’s request that three volleys were fired over the last resting place of “a brave man, who met his death bravely.”
At sunset, they buried William Cecil Clayton next to the jungle graves of his uncle and aunt, the former Lord and Lady Greystoke. It was at Tarzan's request that three shots were fired over the final resting place of "a brave man, who faced his death with courage."
Professor Porter, who in his younger days had been ordained a minister, conducted the simple services for the dead. About the grave, with bowed heads, stood as strange a company of mourners as the sun ever looked down upon. There were French officers and sailors, two English lords, Americans, and a score of savage African braves.
Professor Porter, who was a minister in his younger days, led the simple funeral services. Around the grave, with their heads bowed, stood an unusual group of mourners that the sun had ever shone upon. There were French officers and sailors, two English lords, Americans, and a number of fierce African warriors.
Following the funeral Tarzan asked Captain Dufranne to delay the sailing of the cruiser a couple of days while he went inland a few miles to fetch his “belongings,” and the officer gladly granted the favor.
Following the funeral, Tarzan asked Captain Dufranne to postpone the cruiser’s departure for a couple of days while he went a few miles inland to get his “belongings,” and the officer willingly agreed to the request.
Late the next afternoon Tarzan and his Waziri returned with the first load of “belongings,” and when the party saw the ancient ingots of virgin gold they swarmed upon the ape-man with a thousand questions; but he was smilingly obdurate to their appeals—he declined to give them the slightest clew as to the source of his immense treasure. “There are a thousand that I left behind,” he explained, “for every one that I brought away, and when these are spent I may wish to return for more.”
Late the next afternoon, Tarzan and his Waziri came back with the first load of “belongings,” and when the group saw the ancient ingots of pure gold, they crowded around the ape-man, bombarding him with a thousand questions. But he smiled and stayed firm against their pleas—he refused to give them any hint about the source of his immense treasure. “For every one of these I brought back, there are a thousand I left behind,” he explained, “and when these are gone, I might want to come back for more.”
The next day he returned to camp with the balance of his ingots, and when they were stored on board the cruiser Captain Dufranne said he felt like the commander of an old-time Spanish galleon returning from the treasure cities of the Aztecs. “I don’t know what minute my crew will cut my throat, and take over the ship,” he added.
The next day he came back to camp with the rest of his ingots, and when they were stored on the cruiser, Captain Dufranne said he felt like the captain of an old Spanish galleon coming back from the Aztec treasure cities. “I don’t know when my crew will stab me in the back and take over the ship,” he added.
The next morning, as they were preparing to embark upon the cruiser, Tarzan ventured a suggestion to Jane Porter.
The next morning, as they were getting ready to board the cruiser, Tarzan made a suggestion to Jane Porter.
“Wild beasts are supposed to be devoid of sentiment,” he said, “but nevertheless I should like to be married in the cabin where I was born, beside the graves of my mother and my father, and surrounded by the savage jungle that always has been my home.”
“Wild animals are thought to lack feelings,” he said, “but still, I would love to get married in the cabin where I was born, next to the graves of my mother and father, and surrounded by the wild jungle that has always been my home.”
“Would it be quite regular, dear?” she asked. “For if it would I know of no other place in which I should rather be married to my forest god than beneath the shade of his primeval forest.”
“Would it be normal, dear?” she asked. “Because if it is, I can't think of any other place I'd rather get married to my forest god than under the shade of his ancient forest.”
And when they spoke of it to the others they were assured that it would be quite regular, and a most splendid termination of a remarkable romance. So the entire party assembled within the little cabin and about the door to witness the second ceremony that Professor Porter was to solemnize within three days.
And when they talked about it to the others, they were assured that it would be completely normal and a truly magnificent ending to an incredible love story. So the whole group gathered inside the small cabin and around the door to witness the second ceremony that Professor Porter was going to officiate in three days.
D’Arnot was to be best man, and Hazel Strong bridesmaid, until Tennington upset all the arrangements by another of his marvelous “ideas.”
D'Arnot was going to be the best man, and Hazel Strong the bridesmaid, until Tennington messed everything up with one of his brilliant "ideas."
“If Mrs. Strong is agreeable,” he said, taking the bridesmaid’s hand in his, “Hazel and I think it would be ripping to make it a double wedding.”
“If Mrs. Strong is on board,” he said, taking the bridesmaid’s hand in his, “Hazel and I think it would be great to have a double wedding.”
The next day they sailed, and as the cruiser steamed slowly out to sea a tall man, immaculate in white flannel, and a graceful girl leaned against her rail to watch the receding shore line upon which danced twenty naked, black warriors of the Waziri, waving their war spears above their savage heads, and shouting farewells to their departing king.
The next day they set sail, and as the cruiser moved slowly out to sea, a tall man dressed in crisp white flannel and a graceful girl leaned against the railing to watch the fading shoreline where twenty naked, black warriors from the Waziri danced, waving their war spears above their fierce heads and shouting farewells to their departing king.
“I should hate to think that I am looking upon the jungle for the last time, dear,” he said, “were it not that I know that I am going to a new world of happiness with you forever,” and, bending down, Tarzan of the Apes kissed his mate upon her lips.
“I would hate to think that I’m seeing the jungle for the last time, dear,” he said, “if it weren’t for the fact that I know I’m heading to a new world of happiness with you forever,” and, bending down, Tarzan of the Apes kissed his mate on the lips.
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!